O
PRINCETON,
BR 142
^-^^Z/".,
.09
N.
J.
'Âť^''
Oxenham, Henry Nutcombe, 1829-1888. Short studies in ecclesiastical history and
'-i.\
'^\-M
>.
l^
^MM 'M y.!^?;
!••
^l
.^;
w
SHORT STUDIES IN
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
AND BIOGRAPHY
SHORT STUDIES
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
AND BIOGRAPHY
BY THE
Rev.
H.
N.-'OXENHAM,
M.A,
LATE SCHOLAR OF BALLIOL COLLEGE, OXFORD
Sonboii
CHAPMAN AND HALL, 1884 [./!//
rights reseri'ed.^
Limited
inngag: CLAY AND TAYLOR, PRINTERS.
\
TO
^t mx^
gcij.
loljit
^Mm,
g.g.,
DEAN OF MANCHESTER, IN
GRATEFUL RECOGNITION OF A VALUED FRIENDSHIP LASTING FROM OLD OXFORD DAYS,
IS
WITH MUCH REGARD AND AFFECTION INSCRIBED.
PREFACE. The
Essays are reprinted, by the kind per-
following
mission of the Editor, from the Saturday Reviezv, with
some sion
corrections
and additions, and the occasional omis-
of matter of merely temporary interest.
one
In
or two cases portions of different articles bearing on the
same subject have been incorporated.
It
was of course
inevitable in dealing, under the necessary limitations of
space, with themes of wide
and varied import, on many
of which whole volumes might be written, that a of treatment
method
should be adopted suggestive rather than
exhaustive, with a view to bringing out the salient points,
and thus refreshing the memory or stimulating the minds of those
also
who may
lack leisure or opportunity for
And
in
a
busy and
a reading age, but
is
somewhat apt
serious
study.
restless,
more
which
to regard
is
"a
great book, as a great evil," the author ventures to hope that to
may
many
readers such aids to
their
own
reflection
prove not unacceptable.
While however he has thousjht
it
most suitable to
PREFACE. the all
character of the work
to
avoid, as far as possible,
display of learning, and not to load his pages with
references,
which to some might appear wearisome and
to others superfluous,
it
must not therefore be supposed
judgments expressed have been
that the
lightly formed,
or are based on authorities which have not been carefully verified.
honest, as
It if
of a
has been his aim throughout to offer an
but a modest and
single
stone,
towards
great temple of historic truth.
May
I,
1884.J
fragmentary, contribution, the
building up of the
CONTENTS. PAGE I.
II.
III.
IV.
V. VI. VII. VIII. I.K.
X.
XL XII. XIII.
XIV.
XV. XVI.
CHRISTIANITY BETWEEN TWO FOES
I
CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN ART
9
CONFLICT OF EARLY CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN THOUGHT
1
RELIGIOUS ATTITUDE OF THE EMPEROR HADRIAN
2/
HELLENISM AND
ITS
...
REVIVAL
35
THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND THE CHURCH
42
UNITY AND VARIETY IN CHURCH AND STATE LATIN CHRISTIANITY RISE
...
49 57
'
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM
64
LATIN HYMNOLOGY
74
FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY
86
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA
94
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES
PROPHECY OF
ST.
I04
MALACHY
112
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY
I20 '
...
I30
XVII.
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM
140
XVIII.
"black and BLOODY GARDINER"
151
ICONOCLAS-M
163
CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON THE RIGHT OF REBELLION
171
XXI.
DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS
180
XXII.
FESTIVAL OF CHRISTMAS
19I
MIRACLE PLAYS
199
XIX.
XX.
XXIII.
CONTENTS. XXIV.
XXV. XXVI. XXVII. XXVIII.
XXIX.
XXX. XXXI. XXXII. XXXIII.
ORIGIN AND GROWTH OF UNIVERSITIES
2o8
JEWISH PATRIOTISM
219
THE yUDENHASS
IN HISTORY
REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE
228
239
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM
248
FORCE OF INDIVIDUALISM IN RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS
259
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN
269
HUGO GROTIUS
281
^
SWEDENBORG AND SWEDENBORGIANISM
289
STRAUSS
297
XXXIV.
JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS
309
XXXV.
BISHOP DUPANLOUP
318
XXXVI. XXXVII. XXXVIII.
XXXIX. XL. XLI. XLII. XLIII.
CANON OAKELEY
32s
GUMMING
333
DR.
DEAN STANLEY
344
WILLIAM GEORGE WARD
358
DR. PUSEY
AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT
THE LATE PROVOST OF ORIEL
367 375
ARCHBISHOP TAIT
385
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS
394
SHORT STUDIES ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
I.
CHRISTIANITY BETWEEN
TWO
FOES.
In an address which he delivered some years ago before a rehgious Congress at Munich, Dr. DoUinger starts from the assertion that by the cradle of Christian theology stood
two mighty
foes,
heathen philosophy and the heretical
gnosis, with both of
which
it
both also had much to learn.
had to contend, and from
No
student of ecclesiastical
But
history will question the correctness of his statement.
a
still
broader truth
is
conveyed
in
a remark
we came
across the other day, which applies, not only to the early
Church, but to the whole course of Christian history from the beginning until now. in
Christianity,
it
was observed, has
every age been confronted by two rival religions
;
its
morality has been threatened by the higher Paganism, or
worship of beauty;
its
doctrinal system
by a
scientific
Theism, or worship of what claims to be pure and absolute truth.
With both
of these
it
has always been
in conflict,
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
2
and yet tions
;
to both
and
this
own
has been constrained to
it
its
obliga-
mutual interchange of blows and courtesies
was never more conspicuous than
our
in
own
day.
A
distinguishing feature of the last half-century has been the revival of artistic taste
and culture
throughout Europe, of which
movement
is
in the service of religion
the
one subordinate phase
grown up a
ecclesiastical restoration there has artj
independent of
them much
all
Ritualistic
religion of
theological restraints, and looking on
Roman and
as the
so-called
but alongside of this
;
Florentine literati of the
Mean-
Renaissance looked on the reforms of Savonarola. while the dominant scientific school
is
impatient of any
Deity that cannot be resolved into an impersonal abstraction,
and declines to
proffer
more than
"
a silent worsh'p
Unknowable and Unknown."
at the altar of the
Yet, at
the same time, the exponents of the extremest form of scientific
Atheism loudly
prophets of a
new and
however much we
may
assert
their
be
claim to
exclusively true religion.
the
And,
smile at the half-grotesque details
of the Comtist creed, with
elaborate
its
mimicry of the
hierarchy, the discipline, and the ritual of Catholicism, no
one can
fail
unexpected a homage to
to be struck with so
the inextinguishable cravings of the religious sentiment,
which
it
Nor can
as fully recognises as
it
entirely fails to satisfy.
the Church, which has in former periods accepted
the services of an Augustine, an Aquinas, and a Pascal, affect to
ignore
in
our
champions of her cause.
own day
the need for scientific
may
perhaps be said that
It
these opposite forms of faith or scepticism, in whichever light
we choose
and impetuous
to regard them, are in their assault
now more
confident
than has usually been the
TWO
CHRISTIANITY BETWEEN case before, and that they functions, not of
Whether
or
Theist— and
more
mere negative
FOES.
distinctly
criticism,
3
assume the
but of rival creeds.
not Mr. Mill could be fairly considered a his nearest
approach to
it
a kind of revived Manichean dualism
appears to have been
—he inculcated a kind
of religious and ethical system of his own, often borrowing .the language, if not
which he rejected. writers
the ideas, of the historical religions
This
who would be
category with him.
may
And
be said of some living
also
more or
classed
less in the
same
thus again the artistic religion
of Paganism finds a passionate apologist in Mr. Swinburne.
But
if
there
is
some
difference in their
the same triangular duel, so to call
and
its
two powerful
since the
first
rivals
it,
methods of warfare, between Christianity
has been in progress continually
The two mighty by
preaching of the Gospel.
antagonists stood, to repeat Dr. Bollinger's language,
the cradle of the nascent faith
proved strong enough to coerce, rather succeeded in bending
yet mightier than
been no doubt
them
not to strangle, them, or
power
to the service of a
Some change
themselves.
in their relative
but the infant Hercules
;
if
has
there
importance, as mankind has
gradually advanced from what has been termed the mythological to the physical stage.
Pagan
art
was a
formidable opponent to reckon with in the
than Pagan philosophy
;
far
first
more
century
the opposition of science, which
cannot always be thrust aside as
false,
gives
much
greater
trouble to the apologists of Revelation in the nineteenth.
Let us begin with
From
art.
the earliest period of which
has been
mankind.
any records remain,
a powerful factor in the religious It
art
development of
has been by turns the instrument and the B 2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
4
tyrant of the national
AND BIOGRAPHY.
or sometimes both together.
faith,
Greek reHgion, which was the worship of natural beauty, expressed
itself in
those unrivalled artistic forms which
have riveted the admiring gaze of successive generations for
above two thousand years; but the chisel which wrought
so marvellously in
service
its
was tracing the
most exquisite
Its
corruption.
was the
art
lines of its
efflorescence
The gods who were worshipped with
of decay.
sincere
devotion were the deities of Homer, not the creations of Pheidias,
that
and
it
was only by crushing the genius of
its artists
Egypt so long preserved the sombre grandeur of
hereditary faith.
its
Christianity could afford to be less jealous,
although the early fathers betray an uneasy suspicion of
whatever had been associated with Paganism. ingly the Catacombs, which were the
first
shops, as well as the sepulchres, of the fusely
And
accord-
homes and work-
new
religion, are pro-
ornamented with sculpture borrowing the imagery of
existing forms of
art.
A refined and graceful Christian sym-
bolism was by degrees superinduced on these ancient models
but
it
showed nothing of that darker and sterner aspect
of Gospel teaching which was afterwards so abundantly
exhibited
in
churches and cemeteries
;
there were no repre-
sentations of hell or purgatory, or of the Last
and, what seems stranger, there were at
first
Judgment
no represent-
The fiery persecution, through which who were thus piously commemorated
ations of the Passion.
so
many
of those
had passed
to their reward,
was but distantly alluded
occasional picture of Daniel
among
holy children walking unharmed amid the flames.
was changed of course
to in
an
the lions, or the three
All this
at a later date, and, in spite of the
triumphs of mediaeval architecture,
it is
true to say that, as
CHRISTIANITY BETWEEN
TWO
the purely religious sentiment attained
FOES.
5
ascendency
its
in
the "ages of faith," aesthetic art on the whole declined, to revive with the irreligious, or at least non-religious, outburst
Yet Christianity never
of the Renaissance.
narrower and more mission imposed on
creeds, that
artificial it
at
forgot, like
its
world-wide
once the capacity and the obliga-
tion of
embracing every genuine product of the human
intellect
and
if
we
only hold
own
its
proscribing
by
against the inroads of idolatry
The Arabian
art.
not prevent his
could
said,
The contrast is strikingly exemplified, moment to Mahometanism, which could
heart.
turn for a
prophet,
it
from worshipping
disciples
images, except by absolutely forbidding them
any
•made
to
make
he preserved his religion from idolatry, but
the deadly
it
since.
to
"
and thus
;
sternly
has been truly
The same
the illogical
enemy
of art," as
has remained ever
it
criticism applies, in a
more limited
sense,
compromise by which the Iconoclastic
controversy was eventually settled in the Eastern Church, permitting pictorial, sentations
but
sculptured,
prohibiting
of sacred subjects.
On
Renaissance was not a religious movement.'
development there been noticed
in
is
In
its artistic
a close analogy to what has already
the case of ancient Greece.
Instead of
using his art to do honour to religion, the painter
conceptions
religious artistic
are
power.
distinct,
dominate natural
in
that
The
subservient to
the
made
display of
his
devotional and the aesthetic temper
though not incompatible, and seldom prethe
same
class
of minds.
an ardent reformer
head a crusade against a not only the
repre-
the other hand, the
arts,
like
classical revival
but the
It
was perfectly
Savonarola should
which had brought,
tastes, the sensuality,
and the
6
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
scepticism of classical Greece in
AND BIOGRAPHY.
its train.
It
had
already-
been strongly denounced, and indeed forcibly suppressed,
by Paul
II.,
though
his successors in the
some time afterwards by no
Roman
rrieans followed his
See
for
example
in
But neither Pope nor preacher could perma-
this respect.
nently arrest the degradation of religious art which rapidly followed, and the course of which
may
even be traced
comparison of the earlier and later pictures of
There cannot be said
to
be a school of religious painters
some of the
the present day, though
may have
prse-Rafifaellites
in a
Rafifaelle.
earlier
suggested an anticipation not
In another department
destined to be realised.
in
works of the
we have
indeed witnessed a remarkable resuscitation of distinctively religious art, for
is
it
and the love of
it
quite true that Gothic architecture are
intimately connected
Christian, as contrasted with the
of mind
;
and Mr. Lecky
"we mainly owe
is
Pagan or
with the
secular, habit
certainly right in saying that
the revival of Gothic architecture to the
Catholic revival of the present century," though a party
powerful of
late
in
the
Roman
Catholic
Church have
betrayed their instinctive aversion to history by opposing
it.
In the early Christian centuries physical science was not sufficiently
advanced to present any serious
the Christian apologist.
St.
difficulties to
Augustine could easily dispose
of Manichean objections to the Mosaic cosmogony in a fashion which would never occur to a very inferior class
of thinkers pleustcs
now
— carried
and
in
the sixth century
public opinion with
the antipodes,
among
;
Cosmas Indico-
— the special butt of Mr. Matthew Arnold's in his
raillery
him when he argued against
TopograpJiia Christiana, for this reason,
others, that St. Paul speaks of all
men
living
"on
CHRISTIANITY BETWEEN
TWO
the face of the earth," which proves that
round. later,
It is right to
add that when
to
saint,
and not
two centuries
profoundly scandalized. critical instance
We
bishop,
but the religious world
of the day, which found a mouthpiece in
St. Boniface,
was
need not stay to dwell here
of the Copernican controversy, but
notorious that there has been a chronic feud between
theologians and is
flat
it is
Virgilius,
condemn him, and he became a
and eventually a canonized
on the
7
maintained the existence of the antipodes, Pope
Zachary dechned
it is
FOES.
men
of science, which one class of writers
fond of representing as the gradual triumph of science
over a dwindling supernaturalism. for instance, frequently
This
the leading idea,
is
avowed and always implied, which
runs through Mr. Lecky's History of Rationalism.
On
the
other hand, as was pointed out before,
if
been jealous of
encroachments on
her
scientific, as
own domain,
of
artistic,
the Church has
she has numbered great philosophers as
well as brilliant artists
among
her most devoted servants.
In the fifteenth century, Christianity appeared to be engaged in
an internecine struggle with the Pagan revolt against
her ethical code
;
day the controversy has passed arguments which were Bishop Butler
fail
philosophy
in the eighteenth, a Deistic
questioned the primary articles of her creed. into a
unanswerable
new
in
to convince disputants
In our
own
phase,
and
the
mouth
who
repudiate,
not his reasoning, but the premisses admitted in at the
time by himself and
his opponents.
It
of
common is
not
unreasonable, however, to believe that a religion which has survived so
equal to the in
many open or insidious attacks will still be crisis. A way may be found in the future, as
the past, for acknowledging the legitimate claims
of
8
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BICGRAPHY.
science, without resolving into a beautiful but
Aberglaube the soled the
Meanwhile
last it
faith
which has ennobled the
life
visionary
and con-
hours of sixty generations of Christians. is
significant that the great
positive philosophy in
master of the
France should have passionately
proclaimed the indestructible necessity of a religion, while the chief upholder of a similar system in England has
left
on record his conviction that the Christian religion has certainly been useful,
part at least
may
if
not indispensable, hitherto, and in
not impossibly be true.
n.
CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN ART. It has been of decay.
said,
with some truth, that art
There are two senses
understood, poHtical and reh'gious.
modern Europe the highest
artistic
"
bloom
may be
The zenith of Athenian ;
and
in
rank has been attained
that country which was popularly said,
be a
the
is
this
decay of pohtical power
art coincided with the
by
which
in
lately, to
till
geographical expression," and which has over and
over again been the battle-field but never the leader of the nations.
Of
Rome, on the
ancient
contrary, the poet's
words were emphatically verified; her "arts" were those of conquest and of empire
;
what she borrowed
in
her later
days from the conquered Greece never became more than
an exotic growth, and served but to grace the decadence of
There
her imperial might.
is
planation of this phenomenon.
of course one obvious ex-
A
people whose energies
are absorbed in political or military struggles lack both the
time and the taste for
artistic niceties
on the other hand, that where there grandeur of national
life,
intellectual
;
is
while
it
is
natural,
lese of the stir
and
and
artistic cultivation
should be more eagerly pursued, as the resource of faculties that
for
might otherwise
instance,
one
reason
lie
dormant.
why German
This
is
no doubt,
scholarship -and
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
lo
many departments
literature are in
so far superior to our
But there must be some other explanation of the
own. fact, if
such
it
be, of religious art
— and art has been — illustrating the decay in all
ages closely dependent on religion
rather than the vigour of religious
To
faith.
extent
a certain
The
this is especially true of ancient art.
oldest
and most profoundly reverenced images of the gods were
The
more than hideous blocks.
little
beautiful creations of
Pheidias or Praxiteles were admired, but not worshipped, by
a people who, to say the
mythological
about Christian
He
least, sat
very loosely to their
Mr. Ruskin has a remark somewhere
belief. art,
w^hich points in the
same
direction.
says that, so far as he has observed, the pictures which
excite popular devotion are invariably staring daubs, while
the masterpieces of Rafifaelle or Perugino are gazed at with appreciation
critical
by the
cultivated few, and
may
this
at least be
admitted
neither
So much
appreciated nor reverenced by the vulgar.
either case, that art
in
as is
necessarily self-conscious, whereas the natural atmosphere
of devotion
unconscious awe.
is
It
was not
till
they had
begun
to theorize about their
gods that the Greeks could
make
elaborate sculptures of
them
istic religion, to
not, of course,
theorize
means
;
and, with a polythe-
This need
to rationalize.
be the case with Christianity.
Frescoes of
Good Shepherd," and
other typical subjects of Chris-
tian teaching, were traced
on the walls of the Catacombs
the
"
in the ages of
martyrdom.
Yet we can hardly
under any circumstances, the "Sistine faith.
It
but that,
Madonna" being is
if
it
or
the
painted in those days of early
not simply that the genius for
there,
conceive,
" Transfiguration "
would have been
it
was wanting,
differently
employed.
CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN ART. That profound sense of the unseen which made the beings of another world almost a visible presence to the primitive Christian,
and taught him to
listen in
each fresh political
convulsion for the tokens of the approaching Judgment,
could hardly consist with a minute attention to the details of artistic effect.
There
a great step even from Fra
is
Angelico to Raffaelle, and we
feel at
once that the
artist
has triumphed over the saint.
But
if in
this respect there is
must not be pressed too art,
far,
some analogy, though
some very observable
there are
it
between Christian and Pagan
The
differences.
which has so often been dwelt upon, that sculpture special glory of ancient, as painting
is
of modern,
fact,
is
the
art, is at
once suggestive of some deeper contrast than meets the eye at change.
first
sight.
The
Many
reasons
higher and
may be
given for the
more scrupulous standard of
purity introduced by the Gospel, and which shrank from
the exhibition of the nude form,
Another may be found atry,
in
is
of course one of them.
the dread of a relapse into idol-
which long exercised so marked an influence over
ecclesiastical discipline
and worship, and of which we have
a permanent record in the prohibition of sculptured images, as distinguished from "icons," or pictures, in the
Greek Church.
dently do not go to the root of the matter.
maintained
still
But explanations of
this
An
kind evi-
observation
of Winckelmann's, quoted by Mr. Lecky, suggests what
probably the real solution of the problem.
beauty of Greek than female."
art,"
he very justly
And
insists, "is
pected, for
is
genuine art
this
is
The supreme male rather
Strength, freedom, masculine grace are
prominent characteristics. all
"
was only
its
to be ex-
the expression of a moral
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
12
ideal,
and the moral
ideal of
Paganism
in its best
days was
Courage, independence, constancy,
essentially masculine.
patriotism, were the qualities
it
most highly honoured
the
;
softer virtues of charity, gentleness, meekness, benevolence,
kindness, loftiest
pressly distinguishes " as
males
differ
Without
this.
Stoicism was the
either despised or ignored.
it
Pagan conception of excellence, and Cicero exit
from
all
other philosophical sects
from females."
Christianity reversed
all
discrediting, except in a relative sense, the
masculine virtues,
gave a wholly unprecedented import-
it
ance to the feminine type of goodness.
Compare the
Beatitudes with the moral standard of Stoicism, or of the best classical literature, whether poetry or prose, and they
read almost like an explicit condemnation of qualities
which Christ pronounced
it.
Of all
" blessed," there is
the
not
one which the Pagan ideal would recognise as virtuous there
is
more than one which
contemptible. the
artistic.
And
it
would
reject as
;
simply
the ethical ideal in either case inspired
Sculpture was instinctively chosen by the
Greeks as best suited to the expression of masculine grace.
There was a further reason, partly growing out of the former, which
it
is
impossible to dwell upon, though
The
cannot be passed over. cises of the palaestra,
public
which accustomed the Greeks
habitual contemplation of the nude
it
games and the exer-
human
to the
form, tended
to foster the masculine ideal of beauty and the peculiar
forms of vice with which world.
And
it
was connected
in
the ancient
the taste thus generated sought both
pression and aliment in contemporary
art.
The
ex-
type, as
well of courage as of passion, which the Greeks desired especially to idealize
is
sufficiently illustrated
by the
fact
CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN ART. that the
first
men were
by Athenians
statues erected
13
to their country-
Harmodius and Aristogeiton.
those of
It
is
not
type should have been so well pre-
a Httle curious that the
served in the. days of Rome's lowest moral degradation in the perfect purity of the Antinous.
The artistic
led
reasons which
made
sculpture the chosen vehicle of
utterance to the Pagan are precisely those which
Christian art to eschew
gave but inadequate
It
it.
scope for the expression of those virtues which Christian
sentiment had learnt to canonize, and
it
suggested an ideal
partly indifferent and partly abhorrent to the sense.
Painting, on the other hand,
for bringing
purity,
new
religious
was admirably adapted
out those feminine attributes of tenderness,
and patience which belonged to the Christian
saint,
and which mediaeval piety found most perfectly embodied
Take
the Virgin Mother.
Madonna and
the Belvedere Apollo.
pletely satisfies the tian ideal.
Both
Pagan
in
as typical instances the Sistine
The one
com-
as
as the other satisfies the Chris-
ways are of matchless
in their respective
beauty, but the one expresses devoutness, the other strength.
To
the mediaeval Catholic the Belvedere could be no
wholly unintelligible to Greek
taste.
It is a striking
firmation of this view that, so far as the artist
by the Christian or the
classical sentiment,
give expression to the other. tions of our
Lord
more
Madonna would have been
than a curiosity, and the Sistine
is
con-
dominated
does he
fail
to
Michael Angelo's representa-
in the Sistine
Chapel are as conspicuous
a failure as Perugino's frescoes of the ancient heroes and sages.
His figure of Cato, says an
approaches the type of that a poet of our
own
St.
John."
days,
observer,
Nor can
whose
artistic
it
"almost
be accidental
sympathies are
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
14
intensely classical, also rebels fiercely against the ethical
We may again
standard of Christianity. tration from ancient
borrow an
With
sort of diiTerence reappears.
which only bring out the general
a few trifling exceptions,
fact
more
clearly, there
nothing tender or subjective in classical poetry. instance,
illus-
and modern poetry, where the same
no single ancient poet ever dwells on
is
Thus, for his child-
hood, while scarcely any modern poet of note has failed to
do
so.
we
If
we
turn from sculpture and painting to architecture,
shall find
something of the same contrast, though other
considerations also
come
long to enter upon here.
has
said, that,
"
it
human
architecture
noble masses."
may
properly speaking,
arts possible to the
and that
which
in,
It
But
is
be "
it
would take us too
true, as a great
— sculpture
race
judge
there are only two fine
and painting,"
only the association of these in
for practical convenience, at all events,
requires to be separately treated.
And
Gothic, which
was the creation of mediaeval Europe, may be
fairly called
the specifically Christian type of architecture, as bearing the intellectual impress of that period of
when men's minds were most ruled then,
history
by purely religious influences. Speaking broadly, we may say that size and symmetry are the dominant
characteristics
of the Grecian
;
delicacy, tenderness,
reverential awe, of the Gothic style.
to exhibit the greatness of man,
that there
and a
modern
exclusively and powerfully
is
a
God above him
;
The one
calculated
and the other
to suggest
the one to rouse admiration
feeling of pride, the other to inspire humility.
quite in accordance with this,
and
is
if
It is
the story be true, that
Louis XIV., who was so great an admirer and promoter of
CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN ART. Renaissance
the
have
should
style,
himself
expressed
shocked at hearing that Christ spoke the language of the
The
humble and poor.
heroes and philosophers of anti-
We
quity would have entirely agreed with him. carry out the comparison into
its
need not
low
details here, but the
doors and lofty roofs, the elaborate carving, even where
be seen, the disregard of mere symmetry,
least likely to
and the subdued
light,
which are characteristic of Gothic
There
churches, will serve to illustrate our meaning. further
point to be borne in
mind
is
a
reference both to
in
Christian painting and architecture as distinguished from
The former was designed
Pagan. latter.
Greek
art
commemoration
secrated to the
like the priesthood
religious, that
it
for
the
And
but,
functions of the
in the ancient world.
time presented
first
;
had no
and the prophet were kept separate, and the
preacher in the same person.
con-
is,
gods or heroes
and worship of Paganism,
had no existence elsewhere tianity
of
Even under Judaism the
didactic office. priest
to teach, but not the
was indeed mostly
latter
Chris-
the priest and the
Christian
art,
from the
rudest frescoes on the walls of the Catacombs to the most finished compositions of the great mediaeval painters,
designed not simply to Pheidian period, but
and to teach." this
also, or rather chiefly, " to
Painting
reflex action
was observed
which gave
it
is
much
strengthen
obviously more available for
So
far as ancient sculpture
on popular morality,
it
would tend,
just now, to foster the ethical conceptions
birth.
Painting and architecture in later
times would do the same
probably
was
charm," like the sculpture of the
purpose than sculpture.
had any as
"
less
widely
;
but this kind of influence felt
than
we
is
are apt to imagine,
i6
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
and would be pretty well confined to the cultivated
—the
immense majority
of citizens
Athens, but a small minority
by
in
classes
perhaps in ancient
any modern
State.
It
was
the personages, scenes, and stories represented that the
picture and the painted
window were expected
direct instruction to the multitude.
actual effect, both in nature oailis siibjecta fiddibus,
What
to
convey
has been the
and extent, of these appeals
on the
faith
and devotion of Chris-
tendom, would be an interesting subject of inquiry historian of religion or of art.
for the
But the question has been
so darkened and perplexed by the rival zealots of image
worship and iconoclasm, from the days of Charlemagne
downwards, that fiction,
and
it is
decision.
ctiiu
a
far
from easy to disentangle
fact
from
arrive at the requisite data for a trustworthy
-ling of
^
quite in accordan*-
Louis XIV., who was
III.
CONFLICT OF EARLY CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN THOUGHT.
At (for
tian
the opening of a paper in the Contemporary Review 1879), on "
May,
Philosophy,"
struggle
Origen and the Beginnings of Chris-
Dr.
philosophy during the is
Westcott touches on
between the Pagan and
at once a
first
Christian
We
think, in a loose sort of
great
three centuries of our era, which
deeply interesting and a
subject of inquiry.
the
systems of
much
neglected
are apt to speak, or at least to
way
of the
conversion of the
Empire, as though up to the year 313 A.D. Christians were
undergoing a chronic and almost unintermittent persecution, until
suddenly the whole edifice of Greek and
Paganism collapsed,
like the
Roman
walls of Jericho before the
trumpets of Joshua, and thenceforth the Church was coextensive with the civilised world. that a view
conceived.
more grotesquely
It
need hardly be said
unhistorical could hardly be
Christianity, in spite of frequent outbreaks of
persecution, very unequal in duration
and
intensity,
was
carrying on an active and continuous conflict, and on the
whole making a steady advance, during the time of which preceded
Paganism
its
public recognition.
On
trial
the other hand,
after the formal conversion of the
Emperors
still
i8
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
retained
hold on a large proportion
its
majority
— of
— at
first
the population under their rule
outward forms and
splendour
—
its
a decided
and even
;
— maintained a protracted,
ments, and ceremonials
what precarious existence, long
after
its
endow-
priesthoods,
some-
if
might have been
it
supposed that imperial edicts or popular sentiment would public manifestations of a defeated and
have suppressed
all
decaying
The
faith.
Dr. Westcott puts
between the closed
by a
rival forces of
in
There were,
;
they met
"
new and
the old in the
political
words, conflicts
we
was the second, not the
creed,
market
in the discussions of the schools
of thought, and of the State of thought, with which
three centuries, as
They met
the
the institutions of
in other
first
the history of a threefold contest
threefold victory.
and the house they met
history of the
it, is
in
the region of
and the victory
;
;
government."
in the
life,
world
are at present chiefly concerned,
first.
"
The
victory of the soldiers
"
— the common mass who supplied the multitude of martyrs, confessors,
practice
and humble examples of Christian
— came
Christ's army,"
" the
before
who
victory of
the
The
period
of
during which this
second conflict was waged Dr. Westcott defines, speaking," to be
and
vindicated the philosophical claims of
the conquering creed.
"
faith
captains
"
roughly
from the middle of the second to the
middle of the third century"— the special age of what are called " the Apologists,"
Fathers,"
Of course
longer, but for
correct enough. this, that, in
moment
its
which precedes the age of
the
discussion
immediate purpose the
And
one of
its
limit of time
is
leading characteristics was
the words of another recent writer,
in the history of the
" the
much
really lasted
it
"
was a
human mind when East and
CONFLICT OF CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN THOUGHT, West were blending
their traditions to
rg
form the husk of
Christian creeds and the fantastic visions of Neoplatonism,"
while moreover
its "
whole creative and expansive force
in the despised Christian sect."
The
peculiar centre
lay-
and
point of contact of these diverse influences, at once conflicting
and yet converging, was found
at Alexandria, " the
forge of fanciful imaginations, the majority of which were
destined to pass like clouds and leave not a wrack behind,
while a few fastened with the force of a
conscience of awakening Christendom." far
wrong when he says
dogma on
Mr. Lecky
that "the influence
is
which
the
not this
[Alexandrian or Neoplatonic] school exercised over Christianity forms
one of the most remarkable pages
ecclesiastical history," in
suggesting that Neoplatonic modes of
reflected in St. John's Gospel.
Newman's
part played
politah
one familiar with Dr.
his works, can
be ignorant of the important
by the Alexandrian school
Christian "
No
it,
thought are
Aria?is of the Fourth Century, one of the earliest
and greatest of
of
in [early]
though he certainly exaggerates
doctrine.
in the
development
After referring to the
tendencies of the age. Dr. Westcott adds
As
"
cosmo-
:
a necessary consequence, the teaching of the Bible Greek began to attract serious attention among the heathen. The assailants of Christianity, even if they aff"ected contempt, showed that they were deeply moved by its doctrines. The memorable saying of Numenius, " What is Plato but Moses speaking in the language of Athens.-"' shows at once the feeling after spiritual sympathy which began to be entertained, and the want of spiritual insight in the representatives of Gentile thought. Though there is no evidence that Numenius studied or taught at Alexandria, his words express the form of feeling which prevailed there. Nowhere else were the characteristic tendencies of the age more marked than in that marvellous city. Alexandria C 2
accessible in
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
20
had been from its foundation a meeting-place of the East and West of old and new the home of learning, of criticism, of syncretism. It presented a unique example in the Old World of that mixture of .races which forms one of the most important features of modern society. Indians, Jews, Greeks, Romans, met there on common ground. Their characteristic ideas were discussed, exchanged, combined. The extremes of luxury and asceticism existed side by side. Over all the excitement and turmoil of the recent city rested the solemn shadow of Egypt. The
—
—
thoughtful Alexandrian inherited in the history of countless ages, sympathy with a vast life.
And
he goes on to
cite the
personage of philosophical
though
times,
grounds
on
testimony of a prominent
tastes,
with being actually a
credited
who has indeed some-
absurdly
fact that the
vogue there
Alexandrian Museum, and
;
practice of
Celsus, according to Origen, "
taught by Egyptians."
showing that
reached the
its
period
a
revelation
the
first
immediately
in
possible."
the
preceding
successful
remarkable that
some
made
efforts in
among men
for
and a conviction Incredulity
and
in,
had
during
following
From
century a reaction began to set
expiring Paganism
compared the
who have been
Roman Empire
of the Christian era.
a growing desire for
rarily
was
extreme point
commencement
a curious
Dr. Westcott naturally interprets
there was a longing
sensible revelation of the unseen,
such
that
"
is
it
magic was already coming into
miracles of the Lord with the feats of those
some
Emperor
Hadrian had himself disputed with the pro-
Hadrian,
fessors at the
this as
been
inadequate,
Christian, the
the
the middle of
and there was
positive religious belief
The
desperate and sometimes tempoto
doing so
satisfy this it
desire,
was constrained
and
it
is
to borrow,
consciously or unconsciously, from the powerful rival whose
CONFLICT OF CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN THOUGHT. advance of
this,
was striving to
it
A
of Hadrian.
startling
example
it, is
closely connected with the
recent writer has traced out with
care and ingenuity the true significance of
what he
canonization of Antinous," which has proved a
calls " the
standing puzzle to historians. "
One
which helps to support Dr. Westcott's argument,
though he does not notice
name much
arrest.
Milman speaks
of the act as
tending to alienate a large portion of the thinking
already wavering in their cold and to
21
class,
doubtful polytheism,
any purer or more ennobling system of
religion,"
and
quotes a prediction from the Sibylline (probably Christian) poet about Hadrian TTaiba deov
:
b^LKi'vcrei,,
airavTa a^^acrfxaTa Kvcrei.
was by no means the immediate
This, however,
effect of
the procedure, which served rather to bolster up than to
shake the tottering
There was nothing of course
fabric.
out of the
way
favourite.
These posthumous compliments were a common
in itself in the deification of
fashion of the Empire,
Christian times
But what
is
;
at
and strangely enough lasted on
there were fifty-three of first
sight
them
into
altogether.
very perplexing— especially
considering the circumstances as is
an imperial
commonly reported
the exceptional duration and tenacity on popular senti-
ment of a
cult
which
may
in the first instance
have sprung
from a mere personal whim of the reigning Emperor. This might account
for the fact of the city near
death of Antinous occurred being rebuilt and him, and a
new
same time being
which the
named
constellation which appeared
after
about the
identified with his glorified spirit.
It will
not account for the rapid spread of his worship throughout
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
22
AND BIOGRAPHY.
the provinces of the Mediterranean, and
some three works of
art
games were
survival for
produced to perpetuate his memory
;
public
periodically celebrated at Antinoe, at Mantinea,
and elsewhere,
Eleusis, Athens,
in his
temples, priesthoods, oracles, miracles
wreaths of
its
Medals were struck and countless
centuries.
red
on
lotus
his
;
honour; he had great cities wore
His worship
day.
feast
extended not only over Greece and Asia, but into Italy also,
where
his
name
frequently found in
is
Neapolitan inscriptions, and his statues
No
the Campagna. a
other imperial apotheosis took such
hold on popular
success his
.''
It is
Roman and
in various cities of
What was
belief.
the secret of
elaborate discussion of the
its
Symonds
into
different versions of
the
needless here to follow Mr.
legend about the death of the Bithynian slave boy, and the
comparative evidence on which they
rest.
But he seems
to have clearly established the actual motif, so to say, of his
cult
as
it
came
to
be generally accepted.
It
was
adopted as supplying a nobler and more spiritual element to the effete forces of the ancient Paganism. there, in
"
Here and
the indignant utterance of a Christian Father,
stung to the quick by Pagan parallels between Antinous
and
Christ,
we
catch
emotion upon which
godhood or
perverted
his vicarious sacrifice,
to the sublimity of his short,
a
his cult reposed,
young
life
echo of the popular
which recognised
his
and paid enduring tribute untimely quenched."
In
"the most rational conclusion seems to be that
Antinous became
in truth
some new need
Paganism,
in
and more respectable
a popular saint, and satisfied for
which none of the elder
deities sufficed."
The
belief in the
value of vicarious suffering, of which classical literature
CONFLICT OF CHRISTIAN AND PAGAN THOUGHT.
many
presents so
illustrations,
and
23
which Christian
to
preaching had given a fresh and powerful impulse, attached
new demigod, and
the
itself to
time to have become more or
appears
in process
of
recognised by
Prudentius, Clement of Alexandria,
Christian Apologists. Tertullian,
this
less distinctly
Eusebius, Justin
Martyr, Tatian,
all
inveigh
against the base adulation of the worship of the imperial favourite
—which
however
and increase long
not explain
will
after Hadrian's death
its
maintenance
but Origen treats
;
the matter more seriously in his controversy with Celsus.
Celsus had
Antinous
deliberately put forward the self-devotion of
in rivalry
replies, justly
with the
Christ.
Origen
real parallel
between
sacrifice of
enough, that there
is
no
the lives thus strangely compared, and that the alleged divinity of the favourite
the
is
a
fiction.
method of treatment on both
Antinous had become endeared to
and formidable, or
at
least
originated,
it
how
his
is
clear
from
name
the
Pagan
of
votaries,
odious rather than simply
contemptible, to Christian Apologists. it
But
sides
His
cult,
however
had been adapted, by a kind of plagiarism
very characteristic of the age, for the satisfaction of cravings which
the
Christian
doctrines of self-devotion and
immortality had awakened throughout the
Roman
world.^
Alexandria, at the opening of the third century, offered
an epitome of the old world which Christianity aspired to quicken in
all
was made,
in
its
parts.
the second
And
there too the
first
attempt
century, to give a philosophic
form to the Christian solution of the problems of the age.
To
the questions uppermost in men's minds at the time
1 This curious problem is discussed more fully Excursus of my Catholic Doctrine of the Atonement.
in
the
Third
24
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
three types of answers were being returned, the Gnostic,
the
Neoplatonist, and
the
Gnostic, the teachers of the
universe was created, not or bad, but
by any
faith
against
the
maintained that the
inferior demiurgus,
by the one Supreme Deity, and that
not inherent
by the
As
Christian.
new
good
evil
is
matter, but due to the misuse of free will
in
As
creature.
against the Neoplatonist, they insisted
on the separate and true personality of the Deity, and the reality of the Incarnation
and
alien
from the world
and that man
He
As
its results.
alike they maintained that the Creator
is
against both
distinct but not
made, which was originally good,
the crown and end of creation.
is
Moreover,
while Gnostic and Neoplatonist were agreed in despairing of the world as
it is,
and saw no salvation
for the multitude,
the Christian was content to appeal not to the few but to
the many, and claimed to be the bearer of a message
common divine faculty, to all who bore the stamp of the Creator, and were the But while his answer subjects of a common redemption. addressed, in virtue of a alike
propounded was a widely
to the difficulties
the
Christian
teacher was prepared
philosopher on his
own ground.
to
He
"did not lay aside
the philosopher's mantle in virtue of his
assumed
it "
;
so literally indeed
was
different one,
meet the Pagan
office,
but rather
this the case that
convert philosophers continued to wear the cloak or mantle
which had been the outward badge of
their
former calling.
At Alexandria a Christian School '—the well-known Catechetical School— arose by the side of the Museum,"
"
'
and from the
first
more than mere in later
they were connected with each other by
local proximity, as
was curiously
typified
days by the intimate relations of Hypatia with
AND PAGAN THOUGHT.
COx\FLICT OF CHRISTIAN
25
Synesius, both before and after his conversion and elevation
Both Pantoenus and Clement, the
to the episcopate.
names
great
first
were led
School,
Catechetical
the
in
to
embrace the Gospel through the study of philosophy, and both of them carried on their philosophical studies as Origen, the most famous of them
Christians.
was born
all,
of Christian parents, and trained from the cradle in the exercise of piety father
was
became
and
He was
faith.
and
martyred,
but sixteen when his
before he was
eighteen
a teacher in the Catechetical School.
Ammonius
shrink from attending the lectures of
he
Nor did he Saccas,
the founder of Neoplatonism, whose lessons appeared to
him
to unveil fresh depths in the Bible
when charged with
;
and
in after years,
listening to the opinions of heretics
and
heathens, he defended himself by the example of Heraclas, his fellow disciple in the school of
now
a presbyter at Alexandria,
Ammonius, who, "while wears the philosopher's
still
He
dress and diligently studies the works of the Greeks."
exhorted his theological scholars to study
moment
in his Christian steadfastness,
his fault that the torture
him
in the
But
a discussion of the
he
and imprisonment
and
it
faltered
was not
inflicted
upon
Decian persecution were not consummated by
a violent death.
As
the philo-
Yet he never
sophers and poets of every nation. for a
first
this is not the
life,
writings,
place to enter into
and opinions of Origen.
a great master of the Alexandrian Catechetical School,
may
be taken to
illustrate
the
points as
well
of
contact as of divergence between the Pagan and Christian
modes of thought It
is
true,
of comm.on
as
at the beginning of the third century.
was observed
life "
preceded
in
before,
the
that " the victory
long struggle of the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
26
early
Church
" the
organization."
orbem
As
force.
and
of thought,"
of "
civil
St. Augustine said afterwards, domiiit
scd ligno, by patient
iion ferro,
outward
victory
The martyrs came
suffering, not
by
before the Apologists,
and the populace were already being won over before philosophers and teachers of the
statesmen would lend an ear to the
new
religion.
In Dr. Westcott's words,
"the discipline of action precedes the as,
we may add,
effort of reason," just
the process of reasoning precedes
elaboration of the formal rules of logic.
stage
is
not less indispensable than the
the
But the second
first.
The triumph
of Christianity in the world could never have been assured
able to satisfy the intellectual no
if it
had not proved
less
than the moral cravings of mankind.
itself
IV.
RELIGIOUS ATTITUDE OF THE EMPEROR HADRIAN.
An
on
article
Emperor Hadrian and
" the
Christianity,"
from the pen of M. Renan, which appeared some years ago in
an American periodical, deals with a vexed question of ac-
knowledged to throw
historical interest,
much new
light
though
on the
it
can hardly be said
That Hadrian
subject.^
among
has usually been reckoned by Christian writers " the
good Emperors
"
over, a notion has prevailed in
not only
"
an earnest
devoted the best and
was self
that he
was
with rare virtues,
who
some quarters
man endowed
finest part of his life to
more than half a convert
at least
The two main grounds
appears, are,
first
But more-
was of course notorious.
that
for
mankind," but
to Christianity him-
this
belief,
so far as
he caused certain temples to be
erected in which no images were placed, and which
absence of any description, dedication, or
known
—
in
the
object
he was not unreasonably supposed to have intended for Christian churches
;
and secondly, that a policy of
tion
was consistently pursued during
two
facts there
his reign.
can be no doubt; the question
are to be explained.
And
it
will
is
tolera-
Of
these
how they
perhaps be found that
the same explanation, based on a careful estimate of the '
See North American Review for May, 1878.
28
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Emperor's character and tone of mind,
sufficiently
will
account for both alike without having recourse to what, without some better evidence to support
say the
deed we are told that
"
difficult to restrain
"seemed
?)
whom
of
for "
Christian
apology,"
Such a monstrous
last
demon
(does he
mean Satan
from the
most
sufficiently startling,
is
at all
fact of its
more
and favourites had
Narcissus
and
sister,
Emperors and
among
apotheosis.
it
true,
is
Claudius to his grandmother, Nero
Pallas,
favourite
worshipped
freedmen of
far higher
his
uncle.
and more permanent
the gods than any previous subject of imperial
The
city of
Antinoe or Antinopolis was
over the spot where he died
games celebrated he had
often,
his wife Poppaea, Vitellius
But Antinous obtained a place
it
Caius assigned these posthumous
been deified before.
and
nor would
having bequeathed to us one of the
their relations, wives,
to his father
it
tolerable to the early Christians
perfect models of ancient sculpture.
honours to his
—whether
act of heroic self-sacrifice or a selfish
subsequent deification and cult of the
departed favourite
have appeared
or
more ancient and
story of the death of Antinous be accepted
was an accident or an
— the
is
Certainly, whatever version of the
easy to reach."
immolation
it
adds
act,"
every one had heard was employed
to overthrow the other gods, which were less
in-
to be the culminating point of the
This
reign of Satan.
Antinous
a smile.
be, to
When
even Hadrian's relations with
Antinous became a theme
the writer,
would
it,
a somewhat violent hypothesis.
least,
in his
;
honour
at
Mantinea and elsewhere;
prophets, priests, and oracles
coins bearing his likeness are
built
temples were erected and
still
all
found
over the Empire in
Greece, Syria,
RELIGIOUS ATTITUDE OF THE EMPEROR HADRIAN. Asia, and
Egypt
covering a
new constellation which represented
spirit.
What
;
and astrologers were not long
is still
dis-
in
his glorified
was so
stranger, this worship
ending with Hadrian's reign that
29
far
from
lasted for centuries
it
afterwards, especially in Egypt, where the
new
deity con-
tinued to work miracles which both Christian and Pagan
An
writers have noticed.
explanation of this remarkable
phenomenon has been suggested elsewhere^; but
it
not
is
one that would occur to contemporary Christians, who fact
ad absurdinn
providentially designed for a rcdiictio
whole system, and of the Eighth
this
Book
is
of the
distinctly implied in a passage
of the Sibylline Oracles
could hardly attribute any such intention to it
in
regarded this abnormal development of polytheism as
its
;
but they
author,
and
must have been with important reservations that they
spoke of him as an earnest and virtuous man.
The
remains that Hadrian discountenanced persecu-
fact
But persecution
tion of the Christians,
use
a
" political "
stitious
in
those days, to
phrase of Mr. Goldwin Smith's, was rather than theological.
among
There was
Its
the vulgar, prudential
little real
belief in the
" tribal "
or
motive was super-
among
their rulers.
gods of Olympus surviv-
ing in either class, but the populace were shocked at the
open defiance of the established worship, which was so inextricably
and
social
men who
mixed up with
life,
the
main incidents of
deliberately disobeyed the law.
there was something "
civil
To both
alike
uncanny " about such stubborn and Hadrian,
who was
of a speculative
intellectual cast of mind, felt
probably
little
exceptional perversity,
and
all
and the magistrates suspected the loyalty of
1
Cf. supr. p. 22.
sympathy
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
30
with these sentiments or
fears.
AND BIOGRAPHY.
He took indeed an
exceed-
ingly practical view of the interests of the Empire, as
shown
in
one of
his first acts,
when he withdrew
was
Roman
the
garrisons from Mesopotamia, Armenia, and Assyria, and
once more made the Euphrates the boundary of the
Nor can
world.
it
under his sagacious
Gibbon
and the minutest
same
rule.
embraced
says,
Roman
be doubted that the Empire flourished
at
details.
His vast and active genius, as once the most enlarged views
But
it
is
equally true, as the
writer proceeds to observe^ that the ruling passions of
his soul
were curiosity and vanity.
His curiosity
may
not
improbably have led him to inquire about the Christian as well as about other forms of contemporary belief, but letter to Servianus is genuine, in
which Christianity
if
his
studi-
—whether from ignorance as Milman — with the worship of Serapis, the result of
ously confounded thinks, sarcasm
is
or,
these inquiries cannot have produced any very deep effect
on
However, he issued a
mind.
his
sul of
rescript to the procon-
Asia forbidding Christians to be punished
ence to popular outcry, without a formal tion of all
some
legal offence,
false accusers.
were
left
And
trial
in defer-
and convic-
and ordering the punishment of
as a matter of fact the Christians
unmolested during his reign by the Government,
though they suffered horrible tortures at the hands of the
may have helped to open the Roman masters to the distinction between rival religionists whom they had been accustomed loosely to identify as members of the same sect. At all events,
Jewish insurgents, which eyes of their
when Hadrian
rebuilt
Jerusalem under the
name
of Colonia
new
city,
which the Jews are said to have been forbidden to
enter,
yElia Capitolina, Christians flocked into the
RELIGIOUS ATTITUDE OF THE EMPEROR HADRIAN. and certainly did not approach
31
perhaps the dedication of
;
a temple to Jupiter Capitolinus on the
site
of their
own
ancient temple would alone have proved a sufficient de-
But
terrent to them.
Rome
it
was neither on Jerusalem nor on
but on Athens that the affections of the philosophic
He
and cultivated Emperor were concentrated.
spent a
winter there enjoying to the utmost the strenua inertia of learned
dilettantism,
building,
and endeavouring to reproduce a kind of shadowy
" Panhellenism "
disputing,
on the old
conversing,
He
historic site.
numerable philosophical chairs
;
in-
;
he completed
Temple of Jupiter Olympius and
rebuilt the
one quarter of which received the name of Hadriano-
city,
polis
;
he chose to be
initiated in the Eleusinian mysteries
and he solemnly assumed the ancient and
founded
he fused the laws of Draco
and Solon into a new Athenian constitution the unfinished
legislating,
titles
At Athens he was regarded
" agonothetes."
only philosophical but very religious
;
" of " archon
— somewhat
as not in
the
sense in which St. Paul applied the term to the Athenians
of his
own day
tastes
led
a
him
— and to
the spirit of discussion which
foster
new development
of
did
undoubtedly give
Christian
literature,
his
rise
to
though
it
cannot plausibly be maintained to have inspired him with
any Christian
belief.
His mind was
sceptical, in the strictest sense of the
in fact essentially
word
;
he neither
accepted nor denied any religion or philosophy, but bal-
anced one impartially against another, or rather played with each in turn.
The very levity
to his " aninmla, vagnla, blandula "
the
man
as truly as the savage
recorded words
marks the very
of his dying apostrophe
marks the character of blasphemy of different
spirit
his
last
of
the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
32
Emperor him
:
—
Julian two centuries later.
" II
M.
St.
Croix says of
parut constamment livre a cette incertitude
d'opinions, fruit de la bizarrerie de son caractere, et d'un
savoir superficiel ou
We
mal digere."
have said that Hadrian's policy gave occasion to a
novel species of Christian
already borne
fruit at
literature.
Athens
Rome
as at
Christianity
contrast of the two great centres of ancient
was reproduced
tion
None
of the early Popes were
literary distinction still
;
relations
their
in
the very
men
names
had
but the secular
;
Pagan the
to
civilisa-
Church,
of any intellectual or of several of
them are
But from a very early period some-
open to dispute.
thing of the old imperial instinct seems to have
taken
possession of them, and whereas Eastern theologians and prelates were exercised on the subtlest questions of the
Divine nature and attributes, the
—towards
Roman
Pontiff
first official
utterance of a
the close of the fourth century
enjoins the observance of clerical celibacy. speciality of Athens, as
M. Renan words
" individual Christian thinkers,"
were found the
who from time
to time
its
outward symbol
fession they naturally
;
title
The
" philosophers "
its
feel it
or the peculiar dress which
being writers and orators by pro-
became the
advocates of their adopted
had never been put on
was the
embraced the Gospel did not
necessary to abandon their
was
It
to produce
and among these thinkers
" Apologists."
first
it,
faith.
doctors, disputants,
Hitherto
and
Christianity
defence, argumentatively that
is.
Its strongest and only available arguments had been written in
the blood of martyrs.
Even had the advocates been
prepared, there was no one ready to listen to them. previous
Emperor had challenged such explanations
No or
RELIGIOUS ATTITUDE OF THE EMPEROR HADRIAN. would have deigned
to read them,
and Christ ianos ad
33
leoncs
was a method of attack that did not admit of controversial But Hadrian's
rejoinder.
temper and known
inquisitive
love of free discussion invited overtures, which
would have been scornfully ignored; flattered
by an appeal
by one Quadratus, who at the time
it
Christians,
To
is
Apology on record
first
been a disciple of
said to have
but
It is lost, unfortunately,
was highly esteemed
to have refuted
was
to his superior discernment.
him accordingly was addressed the
the Apostles.
then
till
his very vanity
;
we know
the author
the calumnies of "evil
men "
is
that
reported
against the
and to have dwelt on the miracles of our Lord,
men whom He had healed or raised from the alive. The Emperor had probably heard miracles already from his secretary, Phlegon, who
insisting that
dead were of these
still
was familiar with the subject. Another convert philosopher, Aristides, also presented an
we only know his
least
mind there
is
have confirmed
ness of the
Apology
was not
it
less
to Hadrian, of
new
no reason
we have
They must
to doubt.
at
his conviction of the perfect harmless-
religion,
and there
is
some evidence of
having shown signs of genuine respect as
which
admired than that of
That these writings made some impression
Quadratus.
on
that
seen, the
erection
of a
for
it.
number
He
his
ordered,
of temples
or basilicas, which were never dedicated, and the precise destination of which
is
not distinctly known.
When
in the
next century Alexander Severus expressed a desire to build a temple to Christ, the Christians asserted, not with-
out plausibility, that Hadrian had design,
and had only at
last
entertained a similar
abandoned
response of the oracles that,
if
it
on account of the
such a temple was
built, all
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
34
the others would be deserted, and the world would Christian.
They pointed
in
become
proof of this to the singular
omission of placing any images in these temples, and the alleged ground of Hadrian's pausing in his design in
accord with
all
we know
of his character.
is
quite
Several of
these Hadriaiia were in fact turned into Christian churches after the conversion of the
way
proves that
Empire.
Still
Hadrian ever meditated
Christian, but only that
he was disposed,
all
this in
no
becoming a
like Severus, to
provide a niche for the Founder of Christianity in his
comprehensive pantheon.
V.
HELLENISM AND In the short and which he deHvered lecture, Dr.
ITS REVIVAL.
very imperfectly reported
M. Kenan's
at the close of
last
address
Hibbert
Martineau drew out what he conceived to be
the moral of the whole course more pointedly than the lecturer
had cared to do himself.
in the early Christian ages.
to call Hellenism in a
— and
Paganism
He
considered that, as
— or what he preferred
Atheism were apparently engaged
death struggle for religious supremacy
Empire, which however resulted
in the
in the
form of belief ignored or trampled on by both in our
own
between the
day,
when
Roman
triumph of a third alike,
so
the future of religion seems to
lie
rival forces of Christianity
and Agnosticism,
a third solution of the problem might eventually be found;
and
his
hearers were
would be a
may
purified
left
to infer that this tertium quid
and enlightened Theism.
Whatever
be thought of the analogy suggested between the
traditional
Paganism of the Empire and the
Christianity of to-day, or of the proposed
traditional
Church of the
Future, Dr. Martineau had good reason for tracing in the present
unsettled
and fluctuating condition of
thought something analogous to the
restless
religious
temper of the
age when a corrupt and exploded Paganism was gradually
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
36
to the nascent faith of the sect that
succumbing
He
where spoken against.
was every-
might indeed have gone
further,
and have shown how one of the most curious among the moral and intellectual phenomena of our own day "
of spurious revival of rather than fifteenth
a kind
is
darker
its
Renaissance of the
brighter features the
its
century.
common
the
Hellenism," recalling in
But that Renaissance did not end
in
and Christian
absorption of the Hellenic
elements into some newer, and presumably nobler, phase of creed or culture, but in the great schism of the sixteenth century,
and the
somewhat divisions
of-
of spiritual
striking revival
different
which
forms,
followed
We
Western Christendom.
life,
under
in
both
it,
need not essay
prediction, but no fairly intelligent observer can have failed
to notice that peculiar
own day which itself at
once
is
in
classical
Pagan
or
a present and a patent art, in
literature,
and
revival of our
in social
recent Catholic writer has not inaptly described
reappearance of a passionate love in
revealing
fact,
and a desire
for,
A
as " the to rest
and thoroughly sympathize with, mere nature, accom-
panied by a more or
less
complete and sympathetic rejec-
tion of the supernatural,
and
One
its terrors."
must
its
classic
desire to speak with
does not widely
differ
aspirations, its consolations,
of the leading prophets of the
evangel, of whose high
from
and
respect,
literary culture
Mr.
J.
[i.e.
this external estimate,
the
will
of
a
modern
it
and
Divine Governor," whereas
Greek morality was radically
which
all
when he "
Christian] morality has hitherto been theological,
has implied
new
A. Symonds,
rem.inds us (to the discredit of the former) that
"
life.
it
scientific
eventually rested was a belief in
;
the belief on
(pvaL?, in
the order
HELLENISM AND of the universe
one system Christ,
is
is
"
and to die
in Gothe's
37
and accordingly, while the motto of the
;
contained in
St. Paul's
words, "
gain," the other
is
well-known
resolut zu leben."
ITS REVIVAL.
lines, "
may
Gothe
may
Im Ganzen,
To me to live summed up
be
Guten, Schonen
indeed be fairly taken as the
typical representative or precursor of this revived Hellenism. It is
recorded of him that " repugnance to the supernatural
was an inherent part of approach of death
might
still
"
his
mind
" ;
and therefore on the
he only calculated the chances that
remain to him of
means he might employ
and enjoyment, and the
life
for increasing
them,
among
the
foremost of which he placed care in keeping at a distance all
gloomy thoughts," and when the end was
hand
his last
light
may come
own day among of this
"
words were,
close at
more
the shutters, that
room."
the
into
Open
Conspicuous
in
our
the literary exponents, in prose or verse,
Pagan or
naturalistic reaction,
though
differing
widely from one another, are writers like -Mr. Pater, Mr.
Symonds, and Mr. Swinburne, the the
"Hymn we
movement
keynote of the
latter of in
whom
Walt Whitman
recognise in the obscene rhapsodies of
—which are as dull as ditchwater and a good deal its
drunken
helot.
too far to say that "all
able
but
aggressive atheists,"
many writers make it the Unknown Factor,
the
and "Our Lady of Pain," while
to Proserpine"
the shout of
strikes
such poems as
it
is
It
dirtier
would be going much
authors quite
are
avowed and "
that
true
a
good
a condition of ability to exclude .
.
.
and
in fact to
speak from the
Agnostic standpoint." This
last
extract
Hellenism and
the
is
"
Debased
the
CImrch
taken from a paper on
New
Renaissance"
in
38
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
much
inter-
esting matter, though one could wish the writer had
drawn
Quarterly Revieiv (for April, 1880), containing
out more fully and distinctly than he has done the signs
and
characteristics of the
We
demns.
movement he him
quite agree with
so earnestly con-
that, if the worst vices
of Greek civilisation and art were repeated, and
exaggerated
own
both of literature and
schools,
repeat them now, and that a protest
That
this
if
possible,
Rome, the tendency of some of our
old
in
seems to be to
art,
is
accordingly needed.
new Renaissance should emulate,
as indeed that
of the fifteenth century did, the lower and debased rather
than the higher moral tone of Greek art and culture, was
perhaps inevitable, and
would
is
Those who
certainly the fact.
revert from belief in a Divine Ruler of the world to
belief in
Nature
— to
distinction of the
adopt Mr. Symonds's account of the
two systems
with thinkers of an greatest
among
really "looking
— are not
in
the
same
position
age who, like some of the
earlier
the old Greek poets and philosophers, were
through nature up to nature's God."
an echo of the baser, not the
men exchange
the
" lilies
better,
It is
Hellenism that bids
and languors of virtue
for the
raptures and roses of vice," and calls on the dethroned
goddess of virtue."
lust
There
is
to "
come down and redeem
moreover a
to apply a phrase used in another connection
Newman — " bad
us
from
fatal defect inherent in this
by Cardinal
imitation of polished ungodliness."
Every
attempt at the galvanized revival of a defunct form of civilisation
doubled
is
necessarily
in this case, for
it
unreal, is
an imitation of an imitation. descent
first
from
Pericles
but
the
unreality
is
not merely an imitation but
to
We
have to measure the
Politian,
and then from
HELLENISM AND Politian
modern pretenders who ape
the
to
ITS REVIVAL.
39
his
worst
extravagances. It
that
any attempt among
delighted
animalism of Greek
has been already shown
ourselves to revive " the life" is a
ually,
very different thing, both morally and intellect-
from what the pursuit of their cherished ideal was to
who had never known
those old Athenians,
any better and purer
boyhood
learnt from
faith.
But that
is
something
to gaze in
admiration on that wonderful product of
Athens of
not
human
who being dead
and whose glowing words have rung music
a perfectly natural one
recent poet puts '*
genius, the
;
yet speak,
the spectacle
is
our admirunique, for
such another marvel to record.
history has not
it
have
in the ears of
And
some seventy generations of mankind. is
We
like a rapture of
and Pheidias and Socrates, of those
Pericles
unrivalled orators and poets
ation
or rejected
all.
As
a
:
Every thought of all their thinking swayed the world for good or Every pulse of all their life-blood beats across the ages still."
ill,
But then we must remember that there was also a darker side to the picture, from which, as Professor Jovvett
prejudiced or unfriendly
critic
— observes,
"
turned away with loathing and detestation." darker side
would be
— not
felt
of course in
to
its
be intolerable
— no
we should have
And
that
naked deformity, which
—
is
what some of our
classical revivalists, like their predecessors four centuries
ago,
seem constrained or determined
Two prominent may be specified, slavery.
The
to unveil.
causes of the moral decline of Athens the
critical
disorder of sexual relations and significance
of this
last
point
is
40
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
rather apt to be overlooked.
It really divides
from every variety of modern
life
and renders
all
or political
social
all
gulf,
analogies to a great
When we
extent nugatory or misleading.
the Greek
by an impassable
recollect that
mechanical labour, whatever was esteemed iSdvavaov,
or unfit for a gentleman, was devolved on a helot class
immensely outnumbering the citizens,
becomes
it
democracy
in
its
we
life
of
which
and
Greek,
still
On
that
one part of the subject
it
— for
Mahaffy here that
he shows that
in his Social it
we need not
is
difficult for
in its
dwell here. evil.
an English
darker and
its
had a nobler side
it
nobler
— by Mr.
But we may observe
Life in Greece,
art.
As Winckelmann remarked,
"the supreme beauty of Greek art female," and sculpture
is
capacity of expressing is
Roman
has a direct bearing on one prominent contrast
of Christian and classical
painting
the moral
later
has been treated with great
It
and discrimination, both
aspects
On
by any means the only cause of the
writer to speak in detail. tact
more of
domination over a subject
this absolute
class offered such fatal facilities,
Nor was
free
are familiar with, in one
and oppressive aristocracy.
sense, a close
society, to
community of
most democratic days was, as compared
with any form of political
degradation
little
once evident that the Athenian
at
superior to
feminine grace.
This
is
rather male than
as far superior to painting in the
masculine vigour and beauty as sculpture in is
the
expression
of
undoubtedly one reason why
sculpture has always been regarded as distinctively Pagan,
and painting as
distinctively Christian, the
Pagan
instinct
delighting rather to glorify the masculine and the Christian instinct the feminine qualities,
both moral and physical.
HELLENISM AND
ITS REVIVAL.
41
Here again our modern Renaissance naturally manifests unmistakable preference
its
for the
Pagan or Hellenic
as
distinguished from the specifically Christian type of excel-
not of course the recognition of masculine
lence.
It
virtues,
which must have their place and value under every
is
— amounting
system, but the depreciation
Greece and
Rome
both
in
almost to simple contempt
feminine type, which
ancient
— of
the
This one-sided conception
is in fault.
of excellence culminated philosophically in the hard and Stoic ideal, while
pitiless
lent itself
it
And
less readily to
there are not wanting ominous signs of a tendency
the bastard Renaissance of our
in
no
Harmodius and Aristogeiton.
the popular canonization of
own day
to reproduce
the twin characteristics so inseparably united old
which
civilisation
and unbridled have a
and the
life
cruelty
selfishness, for
they
in the
Italian Hellenists of
of the
the latter
;
under that
— reckless
were abundantly exemplified
root,
fifteenth century
prototype
its
Both forms of
license.
common
literature
is
is
the
exhibited with an almost
incredible shamelessness, far exceeding the worst passages
of Ovid
or Martial, in the Lusus Qtimgue
Venerem,
Poetarum
in
notably in the HerinapJiroditus of Beccadelli,
which nevertheless was much admired by contemporary scholars. in
Both have found
the " debased Hellenism
even be a
difficult,
at least literary expression
of our own.
"
It
however ungracious, task
might not to point to
ugly revelations which suggest that in some quarters these
neo-Pagan aspirations are beginning already to be translated into act.
But
of warning, not at
it
all
must
before
suffice to it
have struck a note
was required.
VI.
THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND THE CHURCH.
An
interesting paper
by Professor
Zeller of Berlin, on
the " Contest of Heathenism with Christianity as reflected in
Greek and
Roman
Literature,"
Hibbert Lectures and
bears on a cognate
^
by M. Renan, both
question to that dealt with
his
in
review article already noticed
in a
on the Emperor Hadrian.
Considering that the period
referred to includes the golden age of
Roman, which
is itself
a borrowed reflection from the golden age of Greek literature,
it
may seem
strange at
test " should occur.
and represents
Rome
its
first
For the
any such
"
con-
an age expresses
highest civilisation, and in Greece and
posterity has agreed to recognise the representative
unquestionably have
civilisation
idea, their
But Christianity and
of the ancient world.
civilisation
much
in
methods, and their history.
been justly observed, waited its
sight that
literature of
most perfect form before
till it
common
in their
Christianity,
it
has
the world had attained
appeared,
and
it
soon
coalesced and has ever since co-operated, and often seemed identical,
Both
with the civilisation which are
alike ^
based on
common
is
ideas,
See Contemporary Review for
May
its
companion.
have 1877.
common
THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND THE CHURCH. views and principles, and a
are to the one
Homer may be
has
and
patriarchs
its
to the
apostles,
considered the patriarch, and the great
Greek poets of a
later
age the apostles and evangelists,
of the typical culture of the
Greek, for the
standard of appeal,
rising out of the classics
what Scripture and the Creeds are
If Christianity
other.
common
and the studies
for the classics
43
human
already
fact,
We
must say
that
the best
race.
referred
to,
Latin literature and philosophy were mainly a transcript
from the Greek, seems
to
indicate
the familiar saying of Horace
that
— the
— according
Attic writers
to
were
destined to be, as they have in fact proved, the teachers
and schoolmasters of
all
future generations.
to use theological language, tianity
is
in
is
Civilisation,
what Chris-
the supernatural order, and there surely need
not be, and ought not
between them.
to
be,
any clash or
"
contest
Nevertheless, while in the long run they
have coalesced and co-operated, cal,
in the natural
their
aims are not identi-
and as every power has an inevitable tendency to
encroach beyond
its
own
legitimate boundaries, there have
often been quarrels between the two. conflict
of Church
and
State,
The almost
though
it
questions also of a purely dynastic kind,
sense part of the
same great dichotomy.
ences, whatever they be,
and between the
is
in
and
civil order,
other
a wider
But the
between Christianity and
ecclesiastical
chronic
involves
differ-
culture,
which are
constantly reappearing in various forms, have never since
culminated in so violent and radical a divergence as during the
first
three centuries of our era,
when
the brilliant but
deeply corrupted civilisation of the mighty Empire, already sinking into premature decrepitude, was pitted against the
44
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
vigorous and growing
of the nascent Church.
life
to that contest, so far as
It
is
reflected in the h'terature of
is
it
the period, that Professor Zeller would call our attention,
and there
much
is
that
and suggestive
fresh
is
in
his
handling of a familiar theme.
He
—what naturally follows from —that the new was not
begins by pointing out
what has been already without
many
said
religion
points of contact with the mental tendencies
and needs of the
age.
had
It
some
really in
common
with Hellenic culture than with Judaism
it
certainly
had much
contrasts, with
became current
the
common,
in
more
respects
in
in spite of
;
philosophy, whence the
Stoic
—for which
there
even the slightest probability
is
no
and
important story
real evidence, nor
— that Seneca,
if
not secretly
a Christian, was at least partly indebted to the teaching of St. Paul.
It is
thus the more remarkable that Christianity
should have appeared to
all
of
classes
Roman society "The Chrisand " Down with
something simply and unmixedly abhorrent. were Atheists
tians in the first place
the Atheists
"
martyr stake
" ;
was the cry which rung round at
Smyrna.
Being
St.
Polycarp's
they were of
atheists,
course obnoxious to the charge of every form of atrocious crime, and hence the horrible
worshipping an
ass's
and grotesque
their orgies of nameless obscenity.
historian Tacitus thinks
universally hated credited,
fables of their
head, their Thyestean banquets, and
for
it
their
Even the great
perfectly natural that
critical
"a
though untruly, with the burning of Rome.
to him, as to his ally, their
more
original sin
sect
shameful deeds" should be
But
intellectual contemporaries gener-
was not atheism but
though they were not the
less for that "
superstition,
the enemies of the
THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND THE CHURCH. human
Atheism and fanaticism were indeed
race."
45
only-
different forms, suited to the capacity of the vulgar or the
learned, of conveying the
same indictment; the
We
was that Christians were monotheists. of a
modern
whose
writer,
knowledge and
his
logic,
real offence
have heard
zeal considerably outran his
beginning his attack on the
doctrine of eternal punishment with a disclaimer of any desire to adjudicate
between the opposite alternatives of
Universalism or annihilationism, though he might have
known
that the rival theories are,
if
possible,
more abso-
lutely incompatible with each other than with the doctrine
they are intended to supplant.
Romans
In
the merits of atheism and polytheism established cult in his
;
the former,
day the general
reasonable to worship it
same way the
the
did not seriously care to discriminate between
if
belief.
the latter was the
;
we may
trust Juvenal,
But whether
many gods
— to
was
was more
or to reverence none,
was equally opposed to reason and
adopt a later phrase
it
believe in
as Professor Zeller rightly observes,
to- "
civism
One God. its
It
"
— to was,
monotheism that
placed Christianity in undisguised enmity to the national religion. .
But the root of
this
enmity lay deeper than any purely
theological ideas in the national mind.
We
have seen that
Tacitus considered the Christians a sect of loathsome and criminal fanatics, though he admits their innocence of the particular crime, of setting fire to the city, for which they
were being executed. share this opinion.
Pliny,
He had
who knew no special
better,
did not
fault to find with
the Christians, except the one unpardonable sin of resisting the State religion, to which they opposed their
own
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
46
"
strange and absurd superstition
"
but for this treason-
;
able conduct he thought they deserved death,
home
judicially brought
mandate governed of
Rome
And
them.
to
hundred and
for a
fifty
when
it
was
Trajan, whose years the policy
the matter, approved his view of the case.
in
All other religions were compatible with the established
worship
;
one alone maintained a resolute
this
and Christians, whatever
isolation,
their virtues or their vices, " could
not be permitted to break the laws against making pro-
and against unauthorized
selytes
The way
societies."
which they held together among themselves, and
in
their care
to hold aloof, as far as possible, from the heathen world
around, conveyed to an outsider, educated or uneducated, the impression of a secret society, a conspiracy against
And
the established order of things.
deepened among the higher
classes
that feeling was
by
their
well-known
practice of recruiting their ranks from slaves, freedmen,
and
artisans,
equality, but
•
with
wlxom
a contempt which
whom
they associated on
their masters looked is
but faintly reflected
Southern slaveowner
of a
niggers.
Here we touch
in
terms of
down upon with in
the feelings
former days towards
at last
his
upon the root of that
hopeless estrangement between the Empire and the Church which,
if it
occasionally smouldered, broke out again and
again into fierce energy during three centuries of more or less persistent persecution.
A true, though
at first
uncon-
scious, instinct taught the ruling classes that there was' a vital
antagonism between the new
national order, which
destruction of one or the other.
known remark
in Dr.
faith
must sooner or
And
and the existing
later
issue in the
therefore a well-
Arnold's Lectures on Modern History
THE ROMAN EMPIRE AND THE CHURCH. must be regarded as only a seem to a casual reader Dollinger in his Christians
"
them now,"
Rome
hereafter, but
men who might change as men who disobeyed and immediate motive
true of the conscious
is
of the early persecutors
;
it
may-
is
That the
Church.
the
were punished, not as
the laws of
it
be partly endorsed by Dr.
to
Age of
First
though
half truth,
47
only very partially true of
the later and more intelligent representatives of the same Dr. Dollinger says, with his usual accuracy, that
policy. "
the authorities and philosophers did not for some time
understand clearly
was the
how completely
Roman
rival of the
have persecuted by
and
fits
the Christian Church
State, or they starts "
;
would not only
but the very form
of expression implies that they began to discern this after-
And
wards.
so only can
we account
at first so perplexing, that
for the startling fact,
Marcus Aurelius, the best of
the Emperors and one whose character and
much
belief
had
of moral and even religious affinity to Christianity,
was the severest of persecutors, and denounced the constancy of the Christian martyrs as proceeding from
"
mere
defiance." If
we come
to later
Roman
we
writers,
and worldly Lucian content to sneer fanciful
friend
Celsus takes a
imposture
;
their
serious
view of the
Founder with deliberate
but the head and front of their offending
as in the
in less
much more
them and
and
His Platonist
fanaticism of the Christian sect.
matter, and charges
still,
find the sceptical
at the foolish
days of Tacitus
vehement language
of patriotism.
—though
— their
it
is
is
expressed
exclusiveness, their
want
Originally apostates from the national faith
of Judaism, they were accused of remaining indifferent or
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
48
hostile to the welfare of the
AND BIOGRAPHY.
Roman
After the
State.
middle of the third century the antagonism to the new faith
took a somewhat different form with the
rise
of the
Philostratus and Porphyry and
Neoplatonic philosophy.
Hierocles display more of the critical and carping tone of
modern
sceptical writers,
good deal of truth and highly
in the
artificial
moribund Paganism an
elaborate
superstition,
had
and are obliged
system they
into a
new
life
from the
was
in fact
despised
which he both hated and been prematurely cut
of
"
brief
into
the
even
was doomed
failure.
wrote his ten books against Julian the
Paganism had sunk
based on Galilean
feared, and, short,
from the nature of the case to inevitable St. Cyril
The
attempt of Julian to galvanize the
plagiarism
his reign not
admit a
to
assail.
When
last
hope
grave with him, and
thenceforth even literary attacks on Christianity gradually diminished. out, that the
It
is
quite true, as Professor Zeller points
heathen polemics have been revived by
recent assailants of the Gospel, but that subject to enter upon here.
is
many
too wide a
.VII.
UNITY AND VARIETY
The in
CHURCH AND
IN
problem and puzzle of
Church or
Governments, whether
all
State, has been to
STATE.
combine authority with
freedom, or in other words, variety of action with unity
For since individual judgments^
of principle and aim. tastes,
and tendencies must always
of uniformity
level
There
tyranny.
is
differ widely, a
dead
the sure sign of stagnation or of
no necessary opposition between order
is
and hberty, though they are popularly supposed to represent contrary
if
not incompatible ideas.
There has been
a good deal of talk of late years about Imperialism, but in its
We
proper sense the word
have indeed
Empires
in
is
now
be absolute
Emperor may be as
is
less
moment, but the
Emperor
may
both
so-called,
and there are no this
our
now
little
like
may
own day in the
rise
and
fall
of
Old World and the New,
than three Emperors in Europe at distinction
between a King and an
more than a verbal
one.
A King
Louis XIV., and the powers of an
strictly limited
old
Imperialism disappeared,
who
are
by
constitutional checks,
The
the case in Austria.
still living,
be said to be obsolete.
seen the
in
the
last
shadow of the
memory
of
some
with the formal extinction of the Holy
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
50
Roman Empire
the reality had departed centuries before.
;
Empire
For
in truth
the
Romans, from
understood
become
it
in
the old sense
whom we
— means a power that
universal
;
— the
sense in which
have borrowed the term,
and hence the
is
or at least aspires to
common
difficulty
governments of reconciling liberty and authority such a rule enormously increased.
It
was
is
to all
under
this universal
domination which "the King," as the Greeks called the Persian monarch, aimed at in his assault on their liberties, to
whom
the acquisition of which Alexander, for
world was not
sufficient,"
and which was
in large
measure carried on
though with very various degrees of under the sway of imperial Rome, Caesars
was reproduced
"
devoted the energies of his
in
for centuries,
stability
And
theory and
one life,
and vigour,
the rule of the in
name
in
the
Holy Roman Empire
of mediaeval Europe, which suggested
the ideal of Dante's
De
more than an
Moiiai-cJiid,
though
ideal very imperfectly realised.
it
was never
The
counter-
acting principle of liberty was supplied then not only by the action of independent States, but spiritual
still
power, which through the long
more by the
strife
of Guelf
and Ghibelline represented, on the whole and in the long run, the cause of moral and intellectual freedom as opposed to
brute force.
garded
in
The impcrium and
sacerdotiiun were re-
mediaeval theology as the opposite poles of a
great cosmopolitan system for the government of mankind.
All later attempts to revive the scheme of universal empire,
which was supposed to be the best guarantee for universal peace and happiness, have been temporary and spasmodic,
and have passed away with their authors. It was certainly the ideal of Charlemagne and of Napoleon, possibly of
UxNITY
AND VARIETY
CHURCH AND
IN
There
is
one
51
But the conditions of the
Charles V., and of Maximilian.
modern world are
STATE.
fatal to its success.
however, which has survived the
institution,
wreck of dynasties and empires, and which from the nature of the case can hardly help laying claim to this cosmopolitan
character;
that
the
is
One of The
Church.
Christian
Cardinal Newman's old Oxford Sermons
entitled "
is
Christian Church an Imperial Power," and he explains in
the discourse that by a
kingdom
bound together by common
is
meant
laws, ruled
"
a
body
ing intercourse part with part, acting together" this particular
kingdom
or empire
in
its
ment and the hke.
And
Church has shown
that
recur here
student of ecclesiastical history
fail
then that
It follows civil
governments,
system of
to the continuance of a
fatal
ordin-
such no doubt the Christian
itself in history.
universal dominion, will
is
— extended
enemies, aggression, acts of judg-
the same problem which has perplexed
and has proved
all
the idea of a great empire
dominion, warfare on
and that
;
was to be international
and coextensive with the world, including arily involved
politic,
by one head, hold-
also.
Nor can any
to observe the con-
stant struggle carried on, in various forms
and with very
various alternations of success, between the rival principles of authority and independence.
The
conflicts of national
Churches with the sovereign jurisdiction of Council, Pope, or Patriarch claiming their allegiance, of religious orders
with bishops or Popes, of heretics or reputed heretics with ecclesiastical tribunals,
with the clerisy, are rivalry.
It is
and of
all
"
"
the lay element
generally
examples of the same standing
obvious of course that,
when the
pushed on either side beyond a certain point,
contest
it
is
becomes
E 2
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
52
fatal to the
of
maintenance of unity.
intermittent
and
conflict
After several centuries
compromise
Eastern
the
Patriarchates finally repudiated the advancing claims of
the Papacy, and period
contention
a similar
issued at a later
the disruption of Western Christendom into
in
With the
Latin and Teutonic elements.
theological
controversial aspect of these questions we. are not
The
concerned. in
this relation
Catholic and
in either
to
or
here
but complementary principles which convenience sake be designated
for
Protestant, the
must ever coexist
forces,
is
rival
may
its
centripetal
and centrifugal
the Church as in the State, and
in
sphere the great problem of sound statesmanship
harmonize the two without
sacrificing the
due
interests
of organization on the one hand or of liberty on the other.
But
is
it
a
common
temptation of rulers ecclesiastical and
civil to
imperil both alike
unity.
This
is
troversialists against the fact a
tell
who boasted by looking
Church of Rome, but
The French
wider appHcation.
Instruction
could
by confounding uniformity with
one of the stock charges of Protestant con-
that at the
who boasted
army to which he had simply "
same minute, which he
was It
same
lesson,
that his clergy
to give the
March, and they march," betrayed a
to the regimental
has in
at his watch, the children in every
school in the country were learning the
the French bishop
it
Minister of Public
and
was an
word of command,
common
method of administration.
addiction
Uniformity
their notion of unity.
has been for
many
years past a cherished object of
Ultramontane zeal to suppress every lingering trace of diversity,
Roman
whether
pale
;
in great
matters or small, within the
and accordingly during the
last pontificate,
UNITY AND VARIETY IN CHURCH AND STATE. in deference to in
France
such .wishes,
— many
them
of
judges very superior to the
The
one after another.
the various diocesan
all
in the
use
— were
known
the grave of Archbishop Darboy.
in
"
suppressed
Breviary, well
liturgiologists without as well as within the Latin
was buried
uses
*'
opinion of competent
Roman
Paris
53
to
Church,
Yet three
centuries ago not even St. Charles Borromeo, the saintly
and
strictly
Ultramontane Archbishop of Milan, would
consent to sacrifice the Ambrosian
witnessed there to
this
day
;
rite,
may be
which
and the Eastern Uniates
may
perhaps prove equally firm
rites,
which are more distinctive and probably older than
But we merely
the Ambrosian. in
illustration
of
local specialities
a
in refusing to
refer to the
general principle.
are not
to
If
surrender
matter here
be tolerated, even
in
miimticB where confessedly no difference of doctrine stake,
we may
and
national
ritual is
at
recognise at once the narrow and impolitic
temper which pursues uniformity
The Church, which
is
described
at the in
risk of schism.
prophecy
diS
circum-
amicta varietatibus, was not weaker but stronger for
important purposes when
it
included in one visible
all
body
a variety of disciplinary and liturgical arrangements, as well as
of nationalities, and
rigid uniformity of detail has
of communions and creeds. seen, the
the
ended
attempt to enforce
In the State, as
we have
scheme of an ecumenical empire has long since
been abandoned as impracticable, however plausible theory.
a
in creating a diversity
in
In the Church, as the organ of a religion which
claims to be universal, the principle must always be upheld, but
it
has
now and
again been so applied as to limit
her range of comprehension by snapping the cord
till
it
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
54
broke.
To
use theological language, Catholicity has been
sacrificed to
Ultramontanism.
How
far precisely
the con-
between the Christendom of the early ages and the
trast
modern
" spirit of disruption," in " the
but glories
which not only acquiesces
Protestantism of the Protestant religion
and the dissidence of Dissent," may be due
to this cause
be wrong
in
is
But we cannot
too wide an inquiry to be undertaken here.
assuming that what has proved a
fatal diffi-
culty of imperialism in the State has also very seriously affected the policy
and fortunes of the Church.
may
In this respect, as in some others, a certain analogy
be traced between the Greece and of modern times.
Rome alike
That imperial
instinct,
of ancient and
which the great
Latin poet claimed as the proud prerogative of his people, reappears under
new
strong hand of the
conditions in the steady advance and
Roman same
political temper, the
the
same
tenacity of purpose, the
same
pontificate
;
there
is
subordination of the abstract and ideal to the practical, the
same
stern intolerance of rivalry or opposition
;
the Ponti-
fex Maxiinus of the new order inherited the sceptre of the Greece, on the other hand, in the classic age was
Caesars.
the
home
up
into a
of philosophy, not the scat of empire
number of
rival
independence and refusing they like
fell
"
fruitful
monwealth
;
was
split
mother of speculative theology,
mother and mistress its
it
common organization, till And the Greek Church in
all
under a foreign yoke.
manner was the
not the
;
States, jealous of their separate
"
of an ecclesiastical com-
several Patriarchates were independent of
each other, and would acknowledge none but an honorary
primacy either
in
the Old or the
New Rome
;
its
schools
were the hotbeds of heresy as well as the nurseries of
UNITY AND VARIETY IN CHURCH AND STATE. sacred learning
it
;
55
aspired to shape the thought, not to
There have been Greek
rule the destinies, of Christendom.
theologians and preachers
who might
rival the subtlety of
Plato and the eloquence of Demosthenes, but no line of imperial pontiffs has sat on the thrones of Alexandria or
dominion has been the
If the instinct of
Constantinople.
ruling principle of the Latin Church, the secret alike of
weakness and
been absorbed and often wasted it
its
strength, the energies of the East have
its
in controversial discussion
;
has produced no Hildebrand and provoked the opposi-
tion of
no Luther,
internal coherence first to
And
as ancient Greece,
from lack of
and power of organization,
a Macedonian and then to a
Roman
fell
a prey
master, so has
the Eastern Church too often succumbed to the despotism
But we need not pursue the Enough has been said to show how, alike and sacred history, East and West exhibit the con-
of the Sultan or the Czar. parallel further. in secular
trast of
ization shall
an individuality tending to anarchy and a central-
hardening into despotism.
An
imperial rcginie that
combine the excellences and avoid the
faults of
both
extremes has been the dream of philosophical statesmen, since Plato imagined a republic where philosophers should reign,
and Aristotle sketched the idea of the
who should be
TTajxlSaa-iXevs
absolute in power as in justice.
world has long since resigned ideal carried out in practice
all "
;
But the
expectation of seeing the
the balance of power
replaced the MonarcJiia of Dante.
It is not so
"
has
easy for
religious minds, familiarized with the old conception of a
Civitas Dei, to
abandon
tendom of the principles
which
future
all
hope of witnessing
the harmonious
in their divorce
in the Chris-
co-ordination
of
have been subiect to so
56
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
much
perverse exaggeration.
however belongs
phecy
;
This perfect consummation
as yet to the region of unfulfilled pro-
perhaps we must wait for
—-who ought to present Pontiff— to make
Angelicus
come it
St.
fifth in
a reality.
Malachy's Pastor
succession from the
Viii.
LATIN CHRISTIANITY.
Dean Milman'S Church is
is
well-known history of the medic-Eval
There
entitled the History of Latin Christianity.
a fitness in the
title,
The author
exception.
though uses
in
one sense
it
is
to distinguish the
it
open to Western
from the Eastern Church, and he has no doubt purposely chosen a term which indicates that the distinction thing more than a geographical one. several centuries the Christian
as
it
had derived
its origin,
is
some-
It is true that for
Church received
its
impress,
The
mainly from the East.
great majority of the early Fathers and theologians, several even of the early Popes, as Dr. out,
were Greeks.
and
Milman has pointed
All the seven Councils which met before
the great schism were assembled
occasioned by Eastern heresies.
cities,
and
Pelagianism was the
first
in
Eastern
heresy that stirred the West, and characteristically enough it
concerned, not the nature of God, but the free will of
man.
On
the other hand, the
mediaeval
Councils
of
Western Christendom were concerned much more with discipline
than with doctrine.
The
subtleties of
Greek
theology and of Greek heresy were alike alien to the sterner
and more practical
spirit
which the
Roman
Church inherited from the Republic and
the
Catholic
Empire.
58
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
The
first
summoned
Eastern Council was
nature of the Trinity
;
the
first
Pope, about half a century
define the
to
recorded decree of a Latin
was
later,
to enjoin,
what the
East had never admitted, the celibacy of the priesthood.
The words
Roman poet describe no less the disRoman Church than of the Roman
of the
tinctive genius of the
people
:
Tu
And
Romane, memento
regere imperio populos,
Hte
tibi
accordingly, from the
most powerful
in
Eastern influences were
first, if
shaping the creed,
it
was
left
somewhere that the Church
is
aim of the Papacy has been not,
without
therefore,
a great idea
to
a
make
Latin Christianity.
As
it
is
West
the dominant
;
a great fact.
It
meaning that the
special
history of the mediaeval Church
to the
M. Guizot says
to organize the polity of Christendom.
is
;
erunt artes.
called the history of
the old intellectual civilisation of
the East succumbed before the inroads of the barbarians, there were no renovating influences at fresh lease of
work
Action had never been
life.
and from the time of Photius,
in
whom
its
to give
its
;
we have
bility of progressive
sive emergencies
healthy
life,
is
to succes-
an inseparable attribute of
whether mental or moral.
If
all
we compare
either the monasticism or the theology of the divisions of
sterile
to look to its rival for that capa-
development and adaptation
which
vigour
Thenceforth
out.
Eastern Christianity presents at best a spectacle of conservatism
a
the expiring flame
shot up with a bright but evanescent radiance, of thought seems also to have died
it
strong point,
two great
Christendom from the eighth century onwards,
the same conclusion
is
forced
upon
us.
There may be
LATIN CHRISTI\NITY.
much
that
one who
open to
is
59
criticism in both systems, but
will contrast the dull stagnation of
no
an Egyptian
Laura, or the passive immobility of the peopled solitude of
Mount Athos, unbroken
in
the living world around, with the studious labours of
Monte Cassino or
still
or St. Maur, or the active zeal of a Jesuit
Franciscan community, can
difference
by the revolutions of ages
to
fail
There
between them.
note the radical
an almost ludicrous
is
perversity in the popular Protestant misconception of the
mere refuge of broken
cloister, as a
and crushed
hearts, fainting spirits,
It is certainly true that the
affections.
prominent characteristic of the Western monks
and that the
fore a
was
cell
world they had
in
them
to
v^^s,
most
power,
as really a battle-field as the
And
one sense abandoned.
it is
there-
mistake of Montalembert's to attribute the origin of
the monastic
as far as they are concerned, solely, or
life,
chiefly, to a desire for solitude.
Bernard from his
cell at
Clairvaux was the adviser of popes, the healer of schisms, the mouthpiece of synods, the protagonist of Catholic ortho-
doxy, and helped
— alike
in
matters ecclesiastical and
monasticism
Church
offer
any
Nor can the
Latin form.
in its
parallel to the
civil
Such was mediaeval
to control the destinies of Europe.
huge
later
Eastern
edifice of scholastic
theology, which tasked and tested the logical acuteness of
contemporary thinkers
in the
have been the permanent the eighth century
West, however limited
result.
was her
St.
may
John of Damascus
in
last theologian.
These considerations abundantly
suffice
to explain, if
not to justify. Dr. Milman's use of the term Latin Christianity.
of
its
But, without explanation, there
misleading
us.
It
is
serious danger
must not be forgotten
that, if
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
6o
the
Roman
much
Pontiffs inherited
organizing spirit of the succeeded, there would
of the imperial and
whose throne they
Caesars, to
have been
opportunity of
little
giving practical effect to their policy, had not a very differ-
come
ent element
into play to.
supplement and regenerate
The barbarian who swept down from the North, and, like the Romans in their conflict with Greece, were van-
the decaying energies of the Latin race.
hordes ancient
quished by the civilisation of those they had conquered in war, added
much more than
Church of
the
Roman and
spirit
fifth
a merely numerical force to
adoption.
their
centuries.
the stern
Little of
among the They retained
survived
old
Italians of the fourth
the passive virtues of
submission and obedience, but the vigour, the energy, the
much
self-reliance to which, quite as
genius of Rome, Christianity owed
as to the organizing
its
noblest conquests in
the middle ages, were the contribution of the Teutonic
nations to the religion which had reclaimed
barbarism.
Latin
elements
While, therefore, the Latin as
them from
And, broadly speaking, the Teutonic and
company
parted
we may
in
at
the
Reformation.
one sense speak
along of
all
synonymous with the Western Church,
at least as true to say, in another sense, that the
Catholic
Church became the
At
Council of Trent.
Latin
its
dominion
;
it
it
gave up
No
anathemas."
" in
thus limiting the
its
strength and
after
the
of
braced up
its
it
the circumscrip-
claims upon the Greeks
repudiated with count-
Ranke immediately
doubt, as field
"owned
all
and the East, and Protestantism less
is,
that period, in the words of the
great historian of the Papacy, tion of
Church
it
Roman
operations,
all
its
it
adds,
concentrated
energies."
But the
LATIN CHRISTIANITY. and
morally
both
limitation,
6i
was
materially,
a
very
important one. In his work on TJie Church in
and
the Churches, published
1861, Dr. Bollinger observes that,
"as each new and
vigorous population enters into the Church, she becomes not
numerically
only
people, in whatever
Every
dynamically enriched.
biit
way
gifted, contributes its share
in
religious experience, ecclesiastical customs, interpretations
of Christian doctrine, in It
impress on
its
and science.
life
adds thus to the great Church capital which
product of former times and older nationalities."
Newman
says,
the Apologia,
in
with
reference to our immediate subject:
nations
who
(if
so be)
Church
are in the fold of the
to have acted for in
its
more
still
—"The
is
the
Cardinal direct
multitude of will
be found
any narrowness
protection against
Rome. ...
the various authorities at
It
stands to reason that, as the Galilean Church has in
an element of France, so of Italy.
It
seems to
it
Rome must have in it an element me that Catholicity is not only
one of the notes of the Church, but, according to the divine purpose, all
one of
European races
and assuredly say the
I
German
think that element, in
serious misfortune."
securities.
its
will ever
.
tJie
loss
its
trust
I
.
have a place
in
that
the Church,
of the English, not
to
composition, has been a
In other words, the combination of
various races, with their diversities of national character,
contributed not only numerically but morally
Dollinger words
it,
dynamically
great whole whereof they
And the
in
this
Roman
— to
—
or,
as Dr.
the strength of the
became constituent
portions.
sense " the Teutonic element " was lost to Catholic Church at the
Reformation.
It is
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
62
true
that
several
Germans and
million
several
million
English-speaking Celts, as well as a small fraction of
Anglo-Saxons,
still
merest tyro
Church history
in
mind on her
intellectual
we have
as
seen,
the very life-blood of the version.
her communion.
in
is
But the
aware how infinitesimal
date has been the influence of the Teutonic
since that
ages,
remain
It
or
the
moral
In the middle
life.
Teutonic
peoples supplied
body they joined on
was the German Emperors
their con-
the eleventh
in
century whose aid was invoked, and who, by procuring
German Popes,
the election of
the Papacy said that
"
—
after that " iron
Christ
was sleeping
largely contributed to raise
age in
"
when
the ship
it
"
was currently
— to the highest
point of authority over the conscience and convictions of
Europe
it
has ever attained.
The reforming
Councils of
the fifteenth century were convoked and carried on, and the
Council of Trent was summoned, under
But the
came too
latter
German
influences.
late to arrest the Protestant revolt,
and the Church tightened her grasp on the Latin
race, in
The German element General Council now German
despair of recovering the Teutonic.
would count
for little in a
;
Catholic divines, however eminent, have long been viewed
with something more than suspicion by the authorities at
Rome.
For the
last three centuries of
the Latin Church,
her administration, her theology, her devotional literature,
and the ruling
spirit
of her whole religious
exclusively represented Italian element.
And
life,
have almost
what Cardinal Newman
calls the
dominant Italianism
has been
this
it
the persistent aim of the Ultramontane school to import into
England
;
even the Italian language has been extolled
as peculiarly sacred, or Catholic, or "dear to Catholic hearts."
LATIN CHRISTIANITY.
One
'63
cause which has largely contributed to the preva-
lence of this exclusive spirit in the Church, for three centuries in the chair of St.
Pope
— and
Cardinals,
and a half none but Peter
— Adrian
that hence
who
also
the
the fact that
is
Italians
have sat
VI. was the last foreign great
majority of
the
are the special Senate or Privy Council of
the reigning Pontiff, as well as the electors of his successor,
have also usually been
Italians.
And
there was at least a
plausible ground for this while the Pontiff
Sovereign.
But
it
was an
Italian
noteworthy here that there are
is
Of
already signs of change.
by Leo XIII. nine are
the twenty Cardinals
non-Italian, one of
named
them being
Newman, while of the fifty-eight members at this moment composing the Sacred College no less than twentyCardinal
six
— between half and
States than Italy. Irish,
Of
a third
— are
also citizens of other
these last three are English, one
and one American, giving a much larger proportion
of English-speaking Cardinals than at any previous period either before or since the
Reformation
indeed been more than one at a time.
depend
in the future of
Teutonic clement
:
there has seldom
Much
will
probably
Catholicism on the influence of the
among
the advisers
chief Pastor of the Church.
and electors of the
IX.
RISE
Few
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM. when we penetrate
things are so remarkable,
at all
beneath the mere surface aspect of events, as the silent revolutions of history, and the unnoticed insignificant or accidental agencies
depend.
No
moral as
in
and seemingly-
on which they so often
doubt there are occasional cataclysms the material universe
what Newton
in the
but for the most part
;
said of the order of nature
is
true equally of
the progressive sequence of national, as of individual,
changes
in
life
The most momentous
non vcro per saltiun.
Continuo,
the character of a society or an institution are
accomplished quietly succeeds, but
it "
the old order passes and the
;
cometh not with observation," and
recognised long afterwards in
We
its results.
is
new only
can point to
the Edict of Milan as marking the precise date of the public
recognition of Christianity, yet
it
did but proclaim and
sanction the ultimate issue of a process which had been secretly
working
for centuries.
the triumph of the
new
faith
Had
that recognition of
over the old civilisation
from Marcus Aurelius, instead of from Constantine' looks like a mere accident that late the difference
it
it
did not
might have made
history of Christendom
?
We
come
— and
it
—who can calcu-
in the
subsequent
can point our finger again,
if
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM.
RISE
65
not to the exact year, to the very decade, somewhere
between 835 and 845, when the Isidorian forgeries were compiled
in the province of
Tours, and palmed off on the
patient credulity of an uncritical age centuries that their full significance
but
;
it
was not
was revealed
altered relations of the Papal See to the hierarchy,
estrangement of East and West.
final
to the spurious Decretals
—
still
less,
It is not,
as
is
most mistakenly imagined, to Hildebrand
montanism owes was
its rise.
in
for
the
and the
however,
popularly^ but
— that
Gregory VII., whatever
Ultra-
his faults,
too great a man, both morally and intellectually, to
far
stoop to the vulgar ambition of ruling as a despot over
and the system so often associated, both by
willing slaves
;
his admirers
and
his enemies, with his
name, can lay no
claim to so venerable an antiquity or so distinguished a
He
parentage.
sought to work out in practice, imperfectly
enough, no doubt, but honestly and
in
accordance with the
needs and circumstances of his day, that ideal of the of
God
greatest his
"
"
City
which had floated as a glorious vision before the
mind of the ancient Church.
It
was no part of
aim to convert the Church into a vast bureaucratic
despotism, with a well-drilled episcopal police obedient to
every intimation of the unseen hand that pulls the wires at
He
the Vatican.
left
it
for lesser
men and a later age to down all the taller
essay the Tarquinian policy of cutting
poppy-heads, and importing into the ecclesiastical govern-
ment that of so
vicious centralisation which has been the
many
secular States.
bane
Gregory desired to strengthen
the hands of metropolitans and primates, whose influence it
afterwards
depress, partly
became the policy of by
his
curtailing their privileges,
successors
to
and partly by
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
66
multiplying their number; so that at the present daythere
is
one archbishop on an average
bishops of the Latin
five
there
— since
— a single
rite
is
the suppression of the old Gallican hierarchy
province containing as
originally assigned
The etymology
many
to the primates
But we are anticipating.
of the term " Ultramontane
cating a party or principle dominant
meaning an
suffragans as were
by Gregory the Great
of Canterbury and York.
"
four centuries has attached in
Northern
application which for the last
theological
had been used
as indi-
",
beyond the Alps,"
Italian one, sufficiently reveals its
origin, in the
it
for every four or
throughout the world, nor
Italy,
to
At an
it.
earlier period
but in a purely geographical
sense, to describe nations lying to the north of the Alps.^
In the century immediately preceding the Reformation,
when
the demand,
more loudly uttered from day
for " a reform of the "
bers
Church
head and
in her
had become the watchword of
was passing over her whole
spirit
all
to day,
in her
mem-
serious men, there
and constitution one of
those silent changes, the origin and growth of which
not
difficult
final issue.
to trace, but
The
it is
which has not yet attained
" seventy years' captivity " of
Avignon
its
in
the thirteenth century, and the schism of the anti-Popes
which followed directly on
men
the Church must be held to reside
a Council
when, 1
in
practical
.''
The
?
Was
it
in a
Pope or
question received an authoritative answer
1409, the Council of Pisa, acting in the spirit of
^., Urban VI., in 1378, "openly avowed his design to so large a nomination (of Cardinals) that the Italians should
Thus,
make
had forced on
its close,
the important inquiry, where the supreme authority of
^.
recover their ascendency over the Ultramontanes." CJirist. viii. 42.)
(Milman, LaL
RISE
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM.
Gerson's famous work
De Aiiferibilitate Papce, deposed
the rival Pontiffs, and appointed Alexander V. place
and again, eight years
;
later,
67
both their
in
when the Council of
Constance, having deposed two Popes and extorted the resignation of a third, proceeded to elect Martin V. to the
Had
chair of St. Peter.
consistently upheld
the principle then affirmed been
— and,
above
all,
had not the Council
of Constance, against the urgent reclamations of earnest members, elected
who
at once dissolved
Church
to be taken
it,
to appoint
first
In checking
its
most
new Pope,
and leave the reformation of the
up afterwards
— the future of
history might have been very different from
was.
a
what
Christian it
actually
reforms that did not emanate from
all
themselves exclusively, and
in
drawing continually tighter
the reins of the central autocracy, Martin V. and his successors were at once sowing the seeds of
and of the Reformation.
From
Ultramontanism
that time forward the de-
pression of national Churches, the exaltation of purely Papal authority,
and the
fatal
plan of seeking to get rid of scandals
not by correction of abuses but by silencing complaints,
became the normal policy of the Roman Court. been
said,
with substantial
if
It
has
not with technical accuracy
and we are of course exclusively concerned with the matter here in
its historical,
hitherto the Popes
not
its
theological, aspect
—that whereas
had claimed extraordinary, they hence-
forth claimed ordinary, jurisdiction over national Churches.
This
may
be illustrated from the history of the English
Church during the
with
the
century which
intervened
between
Council of Constance and the complete severance
Rome
between the
under Henry VIII. rival
Indeed
the
struggle
systems, though seldom breaking out
68
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
into
open antagonism, forms the chief element
ecclesiastical history of the period.
the
in
The appointment
of
Cardinal Beaufort to the purple, without consent of the
Crown, and the attempt to make him legate a the
first
latere,
was
encroachment, and was resisted, with only partial
by Archbishop Chicheley. When, soon afterwards, Kemp, Archbishop of York, was made a cardinal, the Pope
success,
that he
ruled
Primate of
should take precedence, as such, of the
England, on the curious ground that the
all
Cardinals were "those venerable priests mentioned by Moses in
Deuteronomy, and that they were afterwards
by
St.
Peter
"
;
instituted
which reminds one of M. About's equally
remarkable statement, at the opening of his pamphlet on the
Roman
Question, that " the Catholic Church
erned by a Pope and seventy Cardinals, Christ and
the twelve Apostles."
Reformation, some bishop always, the Primate
— who
in
Thenceforth
was
is
gov-
memory
of
till
the
usually, but
not
—was made legate a latere in England,
and three of the Archbishops of Canterbury
— Kemp, who — were
was translated from York, Bouchier, and Morton also Cardinals.
It
was as Cardinal Legates, not as national
Primates, that they were to exercise supreme ecclesiastical authority in the country
;
and
this of course
increased the actual power of the Pope,
immensely
who began
to inter-
much more than before in episcopal appointments and other matters. The last effective resistance made to the new system occurred in Henry VI. 's reign, in the case of
fere
Pecock, Bishop of Chichester, istic
whom
Foxe, with character-
blundering (probably in this case ignorant rather than
dishonest), has
metamorphosed
He
excited general opposition by his extreme
had, in
fact,
into a Protestant martyr.
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM.
RISE
Ultramontane views, as we should ing
among
though
it
them now
call
;
69
maintain-
other things, what was then a startling novelty,
has since been revived by some of the Jesuit
Papacy
divines, that the
is
the sole Divine institution in
the Church, and the Episcopate a creation, not of Christ,
Pecock was charged with seeking to
but of the Pope.
change the religion of England, and was censured heresy and imprisoned
wards prevailed.
but his leading principles
;
was by Papal authority only that
It
Archbishop Morton and Archbishop
Warham assumed
the
which served to expose but not to
visitatorial functions
remedy the crying abuses of the existing monastic
institu-
In Henry VII. 's reign indulgences were publicly
tions.
hawked about papal
for
after-
sale
for
England, under sanction of a
in
by one John de
bull,
Gigliis, for all sorts
of crimes,
including simony, theft, murder, and uncleanness.
while
in Italy
well as the
throne,
Pius
name
Meanwho had abandoned the opinions as ^neas Silvius on ascending the papal
II.,
of
condemned
in a
bull
Exccrahilis the appeal from a
thus annulling on his at three ^
own
with the ominous
Pope
title
of
to a General Council,
authority the principle affirmed
General Councils held during his own lifetime.^
The claim
of Pisa to be reckoned
among
the General Councils has
by Ultramontane writers, and is still made matter of dispute, but no doubt was entertained about it at the time by the Council itself, by Pope Alexander V., whom it elected in place of the two rival claimants it deposed, or in Europe generally. The (Jecrees entitle it "Sancta at Universalis Synodus, Universalem Ecclesiam repraesentans," and the Bull of Alexander sanctions them as " Universahs Ecclesiae auctoritate et corcordia facta.''
been subsequently called
in question
Milman justly describes it as "the most august assembly as to the number and rank of the Prelates, and the Ambassadors of Christian Kings, which for centuries had assumed the functions of a representative
{Du
Senate of Christendom" {Lat. Christ, viii. 114). Bishop Maret Concile Geniral, i. 380) says, " Legitime dans sa convocation, le
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
70
In Spain the practical
fruits
AND BIOGRAPHY. new system were ex-
of the
hibited in the establishment of the Inquisition
the earliest
;
mito-da-fc was held at Seville in 148 1, and no less than two
thousand heretics were burnt
The
in that year.
epoch of Ultramontanism, which commenced
first
with the Council of Constance, closed with the Council of
For a while the two principles hung
Trent.
had the counsels of men
balance, and
Contarini prevailed, cessions the
can be
who
strove to avoid
consummation of the
like
in
the
Pole and
by timely con-
religious schism, there
doubt that a bond fide reformation of at
little
least the graver practical corruptions
would have followed,
and
have conquered
the Teutonic element would
itself its natural place
and recognition
in the
for
development
The
of the Cathohc Church,
But
movement which
Europe from the obedience of
Rome
rent half
it
was not
its
allegiance.
paved the way
for the
was
in
in
to pre-
doing so
growing pretensions which culmin-
movement of the
fifteenth, that
contributing to the success of the Reform-
also preparing
Concile de Pise
much
East and West, and
ated in the Ultramontane
movement,
tightly
If the Isidorian
Decretals of the ninth century had done cipitate the severance of
be.
more
riveted the chain of Latinism all the
on the half which retained
ation,
to
its
own temporary ascendency
dans sa composition, car il reprdsenta vdritablement I'Eglise Universelle. On ne pcut douier de cette tiniversalUd^' &c. Hefele indeed declines to acknowledge it, but on grounds the reverse of convincing, and which would prove equally fatal to the claims of other mediaeval Councils (such as Constance, e.g) whose title has not been seriously impugned in the West. Even the Ultramontane Bellarmine, while he abstains from positively committing himself, was too much of an historian not to call it a General Council, and he gives very sufficient grounds for so regarding it. fut g(^ndral
RISE
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMONTANISM.
within the more limited area
became
Catholic
to
left
still
71
When
it.
of Ultramontanism was an inevitable sequel, even
had
the
virtually the Latin Church, the victory
not been avowedly one of the
first
if
it
aims of the
master mind of Ignatius, in organizing those indefatigable " praetorians
of the Papacy," of
whom
has been said
it
not by their enemies, but their admirers last three centuries
in to
became
doctrine
the
obsolete, the
of spiritual terrorism and pious frauds
take their place.
the
is
Church gone into Commission.''
the old methods of persecution
new methods
" for
the history of the Jesuit Order
history of the Catholic
As
—that
It
asserted in the
was dangerous
name
came any
to question
of the Church, though
it
might be merely the private opinion of an individual or a school
;
and equally dangerous to admit any estimate
claimed to represent her. or Audin, or
Dom
Historians, like
Rohrbacher,
Gueranger, too plainly show that the
favourite temptation of theological partisans of to
lie " for
charm.
the greater glory of
Jn one Roman
between the after the
more
rival
who
Church, or to those
to the
of facts discreditable
God
Catholic
",
country the
systems was continued
Reformation, and the great
illustrious for his
tion of the national as
all
schools,
has not yet lost
for
its
struggle
two centuries
name of Bossuet
is
not
eloquence than for his bold vindica-
opposed to the Ultramontane theory
of Catholicism.^ But, in this as in other respects, the Revolution sealed the fall
^
work of the Reformation, and with the
of the old Galilean Church the last corporate protest Ultramontanism, in its contest with
has been defined by an impartial
this later
phase of Gallicanism,
"a
jealousy of liberties,
critic,
as
stimulated by an equal jealousy of authority."
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
72
Papacy was ex-
against the raodern pretensions of the
A
tinguished.
opportunity
national
Church's
necessity
Rome's
is
and though the devout and high-minded
;
Pius VII. deeply resented the pressure put upon him by
Napoleon, and only yielded unwillingly at avoid greater
away
and
last,
less certain that to
not the
to
sweep
one stroke of the pen the hierarchy of a thousand
at
years,
evils, it is
and substitute another
of Papal power which as yet
in its place, its
was an exercise
extremest advocates had
In an age like ours there could
scarcely dared to claim.
not well have occurred a contingency more favourable to the progress of those principles which the
Bossuet so resolutely the French
Church
of
but which the Church of
resisted,
Empire was content
to
make
her own.
The Ultramontane movement gained
a fresh impetus,
not only from the incidents of the French Revolution,
but from the line adopted by the reactionary school of Catholic apologists to which
it
gave
birth, of
whom De
Maistre and Lamennais, in his orthodox phase, were the chief representatives.
The
latter,
according to Bishop
even more than De Maistre, the true founder
Maret, was,
"
of modern
Ultramontanism," and he illustrated
later career
what has too often proved the
in
his
effect of
such
opinions on a sensitive nature and keen intellect.
Of
De
Maistre Maret justly observes that "his mind was
essentially
aim was in the
the to
and eminently
political"
and that
his leading
to restore the principle of authority or sovereignty
Divine order.
Hence
" the political dictatorship of
Popes, the theocracy of the middle ages, appeared
him the
ideal of Christian society,"
an extreme view of Papal
and he advocated
infallibility
—which
had not
AND GROWTH OF ULTRAMOxMTANISM.
RISE then in
any sense been authoritatively proclaimed
grounds neither theological nor " infallibility is
was not his
room was
judgment, whether
mattered
for
little,
to
any
a
sary in the nature of things that
and
argument State.
is
Pope
Council or to conscience
appeal
authority savoured of revolution.
his
If the
an appeal against
for
left
— on
but because
historical,
identical with sovereignty."
infallible,
73
against
it
the
supreme
was therefore neces-
It
should be
infallible, if
to be consistently applied, alike in
Church
Indeed, he says expressly that " infallibility in
the spiritual order and
sovereignty in the temporal
terms perfectly synonymous." principles in detail
of minds from
De
was the work of a very Maistre's,
are
But to carry out these different class
who would have turned
scorn or disgust from the petty jealousy of
personal independence which busies
itself,
in
all
local or
e.g.,
with the
suppression of national liturgies, or the gagging of "writers,
however eminent, and however sincerely and intensely Catholic,
who cannot frame
shibboleths.
In an age
the Inquisition
can
make
is
little
their lips to re-echo its peculiar
when education
is
general,
and
out of date, this sort of Ultramontanism
way
with thoughtful
minds.
indeed, a reaction has visibly set in against
a sceptical or a Protestant point of view, but
devoutest believers and deepest thinkers
in
Already,
it,
not from
among
the Church.
the
X.
LATIN HYMNOLOGY. It has been justly observed by a recent writer
in the
Quarterly Revieiv} that not the least important side of the history of the Christian Church that
and
is
written in her hymns,
is
of course the history of her internal development
religious
" It is with a
life.
hymn
that
it
opens, the
sublime Canticle of the Incarnation, Magnificat aiiiina vica
Domimim ; and
in the
Apocalyptic vision which presents
the last glimpse of the City of
God
the glorious
company
Lamb have we may add,
gathered in adoration around the Immaculate '
a
new song
'
in their
the Bencdictus and
hymns
mouths."
And
hence,
Magnificat, the two great prophetic
of the Incarnation, have held from an early period
a prominent place in the Lauds and Vespers respectively of the Latin Breviary, from which they were transferred
Nor
to the English Prayer-book.
is it
only the history of
the Church, but the history of every great religious move-
ment
in the
Church, that has been marked by a fresh
outburst of hymnology.
Two
Nicene and the Qnicunqiie creeds,
and may be said
of the ancient Creeds, the
vult, are
to
hymns
celebrate an
onward march of the Church as well as of her doctrinal system.
as
epoch
well
as
in the
in the elaboration
Thus Cardinal Newman speaks
of the Quicunque as " the war-song of faith," celebrating 1
Quarterly Review, July, 1882.
LATIN HYMNOLOGY. a triumph over
hymn
of
Arian assailants
its
of
praise,
75
" it
;
a psalm or
is
and of profound,
confession,
self-
prostrating homage, parallel to the canticles of the elect in
the Apocalypse
as
much
call
the
Nicene Creed a
Rugby
services of
later times, the
to the
appeals to the imagination quite
it
"
And
Dr. Arnold used to
hymns
hymn
triumphant
and made a point of having
giving," in the
;
to the intellect."
as
School
To come to much
Chapel.
German Reformation owed of Luther, with
quite as
to the
was largely indebted
to
hymns
of
its
founder, and
exaggerate the influence
popularising the
of
double
captivating
their
The Wesleyan
rhymes, as to his translation of the Bible. revival again
of thanks-
always chanted
it
for its early successes it
the
would be
difficult
Christian
Year
in
and teachings of the more im-
spirit
movement which succeeded it. It is not indeed much to say that every religion, Christian or not, relies more or less on its hymnology, as may be exemplified in the Vedic songs of our Aryan ancestors, just as ballad portant too
poetry, like the songs of Tyrtus,
history of almost every nation,
" Give
me
the
however,
is
making of making of
leave you the
fourth century
body
of
power
in
laws."
Our
what
it
is
— or as
hymns
to
more
—
and
for its origin dates
which age
Spiritus of a
I
will
present concern, calls the
correct to call the Latin
Dean Church
from the Ambrosian
the early
familiar saying,
a nation's ballads,
its
hymnology of the Church
its offering,
a
with what the Quarterly Reviewer
mediaeval, but
ful
is
whence the
puts
after
it,
"
from the
that wonder-
age has contributed
hymn
to the Veni Sancte
King of France, the Pange lingua of Thomas
Aquinas, the Dies Ires and the Stabat Mater of the two
76
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Franciscan brethren,
Thomas
of Cclano and Jacopone."
His predecessor, Dean Milman, observes that singularly solemn
Hemans, by the
The
and majestic tone." by, considered
the Sfabut
"has a
it
Mr. C.
late
Mater
more probably the composition of Pope Innocent century earher, than of Jacopone.
It is
and
English,
to
splendid
this
Catholic devotion, the principal the
subject
who both hymns as well
own day should both German
writers,
treasure-house
of
old
English contributors to
Newman and
being Cardinal
a
only natural then
that the great ecclesiastical revival of our
have drawn the attention of learned
to be III.,
the late Mr.
Isaac Williams,
edited and translated the greater
part of the
of the
Roman
Breviary, Archbishop Trench, Mr.
has translated the poems of
Adam
late Dr. Neale, ^vho both edited
the Latin
Hymns and
as of the Parisian
Digby Wrangham, who of St. Victor, and the
and translated many of
Sequences, and discussed the general
question in a paper on "the Ecclesiastical Latin Poetry of the Middle far indeed,
or any of
hymns
Ages " and
them
in
How
in the Encyclopaedia Metropolitana.
what
relative degree, these translations
are satisfactory, or
how
far
again translated
are as a rule suitable for use in public worship, are
questions which
we cannot do more than glance
at here.
All translation, and notably translation of poetry,
is
con-
fessedly a difficult problem, and there can be no doubt that
the Latin lator,
hymns
present peculiar difficulties to the trans-
from the obvious
fact that
they are cast in the mould
not only of another language but of another age. not easy to avoid the opposite dangers either of exactness,
which produces a
stiff
It
is
literal
and pedantic version
wholly unsuitcd to popular singing, or of substituting
LATIN HYMNOLOGY. paraphrase for translation.
And,
'j-j
as to the latter,
it
may
be questioned whether original hymns embodying the same ideas would not really possess for English congregations
more of the spontaneity and verve of the
originals
;
to
and idiom of a Latin hymn, whether of
transfuse the spirit
the fourth century or the twelfth, into a modern English
hymn
is
— certainly not
impossible, for
it
has sometimes at
Newman and Dr, much more common
been achieved, notably by Cardinal
least
Neale
—but
is
a task -where failure
And
than success.
here
it
may
the righteous protest of John
and inexcusable
—
many
in
is
be well to put on record
Wesley against the
cases illegal
reckless
— manipulations to
which the makers of hymn-books, almost without exception, are
lated,
wont
to subject the compositions, original or trans-
whom
whether of living or departed authors,
pl-eases
them
to fancy they can
adapt or improve
it
:
Many gentlemen have done my brother and me, though without naming us, the honour to reprint many of our hymns. Now they are perfectly welcome to do so, provided they print them just as they are. But I desire they would not attempt to mend them, for they really are not able.
None
of them
is
able to
mend
either the sense or
the verse.
Both Dr. Neale and the ologist of the
late Dr. Faber, the great
day among English
whose pieces have found
Catholics,
hymn-
and many of
way into various Protestant make similar complaints, as illustrious composers who have
their
compilations, found reason to well
as other
and
suffered from the
to the Latin It
less
same fraudulent
dealing.
But
to return
Hymns.
would be a complete misapprehension to look on the
hymnology
of Western
Christendom as a corrupt and
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
78
deteriorated excrescence on the silver, or post-silver, age of
Latin Classicalism. created
Age
tion, in his First
passed
It really represents a
by the Church.
of the CJnirch, to the change which
Greek
over the
new language
Dr. Dollinger has called atten-
language when " the richness,
them
depth, and speciality of Christian ideas constrained [Christian writers] to form
a
much by
as
new words
coining
The Latin
old ones."
new terminology, not by giving a new sense
so to
tongue, which became the vehicle
of theology and worship for the most powerful and energetic portion of the
new community, underwent
a yet
more
thorough transformation, and nowhere perhaps does revolution
show
itself
contrast between
in its best estate
this
the
in
The
and Christian poetry.
classical
Rome
poetry of ancient
more conspicuously than
had been a more
or less skilful imitation and adaptation of Greek models
poetry was not in any form germane to the
and could only were
artificial,
and the
There
refined.
is
its
origin
for the exigencies
and
its
had any ballad poetry of
And
a type of literature
form was the
of a popular religion.
least fitted
The
characteristic of Latin ecclesiastical poetry, from its
other peculiarities were ultimately derived,
and
essential popularity of its construction.
of the Gospel
graces
in their national infancy the
deserving the name.
so unreal in
genius,
no clear proof, begging Lord
stern nurslings of the she-wolf
own
its
;
and appealed exclusively to the learned
Macaulay's pardon, that even
their
Roman
flourish as a delicate exotic
in
those days of
advance lay not so much
in
its
is
leading
which
all
the intense
The
strength
early struggles
and
the power of intellect, or the
force of logical demonstration, or the prestige of authority,
LATIN HYMNOLOGY. as in
its
man
appeal to
as
naturaliter Christiance ;
man, to the
anhncB
testiinoniuui
answer
in the
79
offered to the
it
immemorial yearnings of our common humanity.
any external
therefore not in obedience to
but
in
mere
It
was
arbitrary law,
her mission and from the nature of
fidelity to
the case, that the Christian Church gradually, and to
some
extent unconsciously, evolved a literature of her own,
which
and vigour
in its passionate directness
by graces of
and was too stern
diction,
set little store
in
its
objective
sublimity to hanker after the studied prettinesses of foreign
The
imitation.
process was necessarily a gradual one, for
the Church could only utilise the materials placed ready
and
to her hand,
Reviewer therefore Latin
effete
is
no uncouth
is
time went on, her
infuse, as
somewhat
their
into
right
formalities.
and principles of
definite rules
but a real language, with its
own and
"
can no more
be judged by Augustan standards than Westminster
by the The
spirit
Quarterly
observing that mediaeval
in
patois,
own
The
Abbey
rules of Vitruvius." first
great change, not so
much adopted perhaps
as
unconsciously evolved, was the substitution of accent for quantity, as better meeting the needs of public singing
or recitation in the Church service, where, as Archbishop
Trench remarks, " the
classical or prosodical valuation of
words would have been clearly inappreciable by the greater
number of those who worship.
.
.
.
it
was desired should take part
Quantity, with
its
in the
value so often fictitious
and involving so many inconsistencies, could no longer be maintained as the basis of harmony. ally
fell
back on accent, which
appealing to the
common
is
The Church essentially
natur-
popular,
sense Šf every ear, and in
its
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY,
8o
broader features,
which full
simple
in its
The next and
all."
rise
and
fall,
appreciable by
more important
still
transition, to
change led the way, was consummated by the
this
development of rhyme, which, however, began
assonance of vowels, and hardly reached
in
mere
perfection
its
Dr. Neale
before the age of Hildebert and St. Bernard.
distinguishes two great periods of Latin hymnology, the
marked by a decay of the
chiefly
first
old
life,
and ending
with Gregory the Great, the second illustrating the growth of a
new and
better
life,
and beginning with Venantius
Fortunatus, who, however, only survived Gregory by years,
dying
To
in 609.
Ambrose, the reputed author of the Te Deiun, and
whom, by
of Latin hymnology," to
nine of the twenty-one
hymns
the way, not
regularly, or display a
those which
;
him
rhyme
want of metrical exactness, though
The
be certainly rejected.
Veni Redemptor Gentiinn,
who
father
not infrequent in his undoubted poems, must
is
tion here.
"
more than
traditionally ascribed to
can with any confidence be assigned
rhyming
five
the former period belongs St.
To
is
noblest of his compositions, too well
known
to need quota-
the same early period belongs Prudentius,
in his fifty-seventh
year
first
devoted himself to the
production of the ecclesiastical poetry which has conferred
And
on him an enduring fame.
Gregory the Great,
at
its
authentic
hymn, Primo dicrum
tendency
towards
Fortunatus, it,
Bishop of
His
two
but not
omnium,
the
itself.
comes
growing
Venantius
been, as Archbishop Trench puts
vers de societies' but
Poitiers,
least,
whose undoubtedly
in
rhyme manifests
who had
"a master of
last,
close,
became afterwards
opens a new epoch
grandest poems,
Vexilla
in
hymnology.
Regis prodeunt and
LATIN Pangc lingua
HYMN O LOGY.
— not to be confounded with
Pange lingua of Aquinas
— are
Passion-tide offices of the
the Sacramental
both embodied
in
the
and have become
Breviary,
famihar to EngHsh readers and worshippers in Dr. Neale's
The second, beginning
excellent translation.
Pange lingua
lauream
gloriosi
certarainis,
from which the following characteristic stanzas are extracted,
is
a fine specimen of the rolling trochaic tetrameter
which had been once or twice incidentally used before, but
which
was
he
the
systematically to
first
arrange
or
adopt :— Crux
fidelis, inter
omnes arbor una
nobilis,
germine Dulce lignum, dulci clavo dulce pondus sustinens.
Nulla talem silva profert fronde,
flore,
Flecte ramos arbor alta, tensa laxa viscera, Et rigor lentescat ille quem dedit nativitas,
Ut
superni
membra Regis
Sola digna tu
miti tendas stipite.
pretium
fuisti ferre
\
sceculi,
Atque portum pra^parare area mundo naufrago, Quem sacer cruor perunxit fusus Agni corpore.
Between the century and
its
rise
of the
Victor in the twelfth,
hymns
of
new
school
the seventh
in
Adam
culmination in the verse of
unknown
we
of St.
have, besides several striking
authorship, such masterpieces as the
Veni Creator by Charlemagne, the Veni Sancte Spiritus
by King Robert of France, the Chorus Novce HieriLsalem of St. Fulbert,
and a
hymn on
to St. Augustine, but
the Joys of Paradise, attributed
which
Damiani, and later on the Bernard, and the exquisite
is
really the
work of
St.
Peter
Jcsu, dulcis mcnioria of St.
hymn by
his
contemporary
and countryman, Bernard of Morlaix, which has attained a wide
popularity in
Dr.
Neale's
ringing
translation,
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
82
"Jerusalem the Golden." The introduction of
sung between the Epistle and Gospel which
their
in
Notker Balbulus
St.
" the
Trench
ages," as
Sequence. great
it
;
"
was
proses
the
"
Adam
left for
Sequences,"
VictinicE
ascribed to
is
of St. Victor
the sacred Latin poets of the middle
him
calls
must
It
of
a notable example,
is
among
foremost
form
earlier
Paschali for Easter
"
in the Missal, of
— to
suffice to
hymns composed by
develop the rhythmical
mention
St.
in passing the four
Thomas Aquinas
for the
newly-instituted festival of Corpus Christi, the greatest of
which,
Lauda Sion Salvatorem, has been
modern
by the noble music
ears
has wedded
it.
About
fifty
to
familiarised to
which Mendelssohn
years after
Adam
of St. Victor
comes Thomas of Celano, the author of what has been
own age down to that of Gothe and its murmured words on his
regarded from his Sir
W.
lips
— as
is
Scott
—who
died with
the masterpiece of ecclesiastical poetry, while
it
rhyme
in
also the solitary extant
which
it
too well
is
composed
known
;
example of the
the solemn and pathetic
his
on the four Evangelists, a
Sequence on
Two
to require citation here.
stanzas, however, shall be cited from a St. Victor
St.
Agnes, quoted
Jucundare, plebs
Cujus Pater est
hymn
finer
in the
fidelis,
in ccelis,
Recolens Ezechielis Prophetce prteconia;
Est Joannes testis ipsi, Dicens in Apocalypsi,
Vere vidi, vere scripsi Vera testimonia,
Circum throna
Cum
triple
majestatis,
spiritibus beatis,
of
Z^/Vi- Irce,
specimen
Adam
of
one even than
Quarterly
;
LATIN HYMNOLOGY.
83
Quatuor diversitatis Astant animalia ;
Formam primum
aquilinam,
Et secundum leoninam, Sed humanam et bovinam
Duo
From
gerunt
alia.
the close of the thirteenth century the old founts
of Christian inspiration, in poetry as in theology, and even in
"
were beginning to run dry.
architecture,
Sinai
and
Calvary were deserted for Parnassus and Olympus," and
under the blighting influence of the Renaissance "imitation took the place of invention, pedantry of inspiration."
was the
a purely negative one.
evil
and
Renaissance Popes
It
poetasters,
like
Clement VII. and Zacharius Farrerius, to
Nor
seemed good to Medicean
the
whom
he com-
mitted the ignoble task, to replace the splendid heritage
hymns by a new series of pseudo-classical made to order, in the style of the following
of old Breviary
compositions
Horatian doxology Unus
:
est
divum sacer Imperator,
Triplicis formae, facie sub una.
Qui polum,
terras,
tumidosque
Temperat
The volume strosities
fluctus
alti.
containing this collection of mongrel
and authorized
happy and
for use in the
rather
Divine
unaccountable
office,
but by some
accident
clergy
the
declined to avail themselves of the proffered boon. ecclesiastical authorities,
of the existing it
on
The
however, were not so easily to be
balked of their pet scheme, and
to reform
mon-
was actually published with Papal approbation
hymnology
if
they could not get rid
altogether, they
classical models,
determined
and the charge was finally
G
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
84
by Urban VIII.
entrusted
to three' Jesuit fathers,
among
the most approved pedants of their day, of reducing the old
hymns
" ad
bonum sermonem
et metricas leges,"
A
adding some new ones to the Breviary.
Abbe Pimont —whose work
siastic of the present day, the
Hymns
on the
of the
and
French eccle-
Roman
Breviary,
is
it
fair to say,
was published with the express imprimatur of the
Pope
—has justly
complained how
in this revision "
late
under
the pretext of elegance or clearness the correctors have
too often, alas
!
on the whole, merely
for the
sacrificed,
sake of classical expressions, the primitive words which
were nearly always mysticism."
rich
In his
in
symbolism and a profound
Introduction the
Abbe
insists
at
length on the very important point already referred
to,
that
" Christianity
the expression of
He
inadequate."
made some
created
a
new Latin language °
ideas to which
might,
further,
classical
till
advantage have
with
reference to the collection of hymns, decidedly
superior on the whole to those of the
which
for
forms were
Roman
Breviary,
within the last few years were sung in
all
or
The ruthless scythe of that ultramontane centralising movement which culminated under the last pontificate has swept away the Paris Breviary, in common with many other local or national
nearly
all
French churches.
" uses," but
and
may be
it
ritualist,
fabulous legends,
Roman
still
lectionary
Bute's translation its
permitted to the Christian scholar
as well as to those left
— touched
— to
who
after
scruple at the
with a gentle hand in
deplore
its
fall.
many
prunings, in the
several
Not
least
Lord
among
merits were the preservation in their pristine form of
ancient
hymns which Urban's
correctors
had done
their
LATIN HYMNOLOGY.
85
best, to use a phrase of Ruskin's, " to polish into inanity,
and the wonderful beauty of some of the modern ones of comparatively recent date, which were not unworthy to
There are few,
stand beside them.
Latin
hymns
of
any age
the musical rhythm and
e.g.,
to equal,
subhme
among
still
the shorter
fewer to excel,
simplicity of the lines
beginning
O
luce qui mortalibus
Lates inaccessa, Deus,
which some in
may
recollect hearing
France, and will
regret
to
opportunity of hearing again.
sung at Sunday Vespers
know they But
can
have no
this is not the place
to enter on a discussion of comparative
hymnology.
XL FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY. In the year 1880 there was observed throughout the whole Benedictine Order, and especially at the famous
Abbey
Cassino, which was the cradle and
Monte
of
the centre of
still
its
organic
anniversary of the birth of dict, in
may
480.
The
its
first
informing hand, since established
centenary
is
in
fact
the Latin Church.
apart from
all
to
Benedict
Western monasticism,
impetus and
mould from
its
his
religious orders, or at least
Reformation, are directly or
before the
modifications
founder, St. Bene-
was a natural one.
all later
indirectly
in
its illustrious
celebration
is
the fourteen-hundredth
justly be styled the father of
which received
all
life,
of
his
rule.
To
celebrate
his
keep the birthday of monachism
And
the institution
is
one to which,
theological or ethical differences of view,
Protestants need not be, and of late years have not been,
slow to acknowledge their indebtedness. as Mr.
Lecky has
It is not only,
rightly pointed out, that to the
and especially to the Benedictines, we owe dignity of labour
forms of
came
civilisation
modern Europe.
it
to be appreciated, as
it
monks,
that
the
under Pagan
never ha,d been appreciated, in
Nor was
the rapid spread of monasticism
due simply to the popular belief— a
beh'ef not difficult to
FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY. account for
in a
87
rude and barbarous age, when " conver-
sion" seemed almost to imply seclusion from the world that the cloister
was the
sole or the shortest road to heaven.
had other and more sublunary attractions
It
classes of minds.
It
combined the elements of
and democratic power of the abbot,
whom
for
many
aristocratic
the princely position and prestige
in
who ranked with
the highest of the land, from
common-
indeed he was often sprung, and the vast
wealth of monks, where peasants and emancipated serfs
found a secure refuge, and took their place side by side with the tonsured knight or noble,
influence of vast wealth
the choir and chapter
in
There too was seen the corporate
house or at the plough.
— generally,
the merit of individual poverty. the philanthropic, and
—
—
in
And
inviting than to the devout.
— combined with
thus to the ambitious,
Benedictine
to the studious, the cloister offered
less
houses especially attractions hardly
Monasteries were the
nurseries not only of labour but of learning
;
great eleemosynary institutions of the age
abbots
Of
made
this vast
and comprehensive system
Nursia was the founder, and from him
been intimated already, not merely
it it
all
they were the ;
and mitred
and parliaments.
their voices heard in courts
shape and form which, throughout
remember,
fair to
it is
expended with discretion and benevolence
St.
it
its
Benedict of
derived, as has origin,
but the
variations of detail,
has substantially preserved from his day to our own.
be true that "the Benedictine statutes
living code, written
in
in
If
remain a
the heart of multitudes in every
province of the Christian world," that
remarkable union
still
is
partly due to the
the person of their author of those
opposite characteristics, active and passive, which usually
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
88
divide
mankind
-and a
thinker,
he had the instincts at once of a worker
;
a ruler and
And
a recluse.
whole
his
nature was dominated by that fervent yet profound enthu-
siasm without which no
such an age as his
— can
man
—
any age
in
hope
least of all in
to exert a lasting influence
over his fellows.
Benedict was born at Nursia,
in the
480, of respectable parents, and,
gave early presage of ristic
hymns
for his education,
of the capital
which
is still
duchy of Spoleto,
we may
his future sanctity
mother's
in his
if
womb.
and took refuge
in
by singing eucha-
He was
but the sensitive boy
in
credit Mabillon,
fled
sent to
Rome
from the vices
a cave near Subiaco,
pointed out to travellers, not far from the
site
of Nero's villa of SnblaqneHin, and here he was wont, like St.
Jerome, to subdue his animal passions by rolling his
naked body among the thorns and sharp points of the
At
rocks.
his sanctity led a
fame of
to choose
him
and attempted
broke
in his
neighbouring convent of monks
for their head, in spite of his earnest
They soon
strances. .rule
length his hiding-place was discovered, and the
tired,
to poison him, but the
their
wickedness
possible for him.
grew up around
thither
Little his
us,
and
the youthful
after
abbot
But solitude was no longer
returned to his old solitude.
including
cup miraculously
hands, as the Breviary assures
calmly reproving
remon-
however, of the severity of his
communities of monks or hermits
retreat
and under
his
government,
some noble youths from Rome who were drawn
by
afterwards
his
growing reputation, one of whom, Maurus
known
as St. Maur, founder of the Order in
France— began very soon There was another attempt
to share
his
gift
of miracles.
to poison him, the culprit this
FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY. named
time being a priest his fame, left
and then
envious of
at last, about his fiftieth year, Benedict
He
Subiaco, never to return.
travelled to a hill over-
looking the fountain head of the
Liris,
where an ancient temple of Apollo
Monte
Cassino,
have been
said to
is
standing, to which the ignorant peasants brought their
still
Benedict converted them, destroyed the idol-
offerings.
atrous temple, cut
on
who was
Florentinus,
89
its
site;
and
down
the grove, and raised a monastery
Milman's words, "arose that
here, to use
great model republic, which gave
whole of Western Monasticism." retreat he
was not
swept over
Italy,
visit
him,
when
the saint rebuked
We
in this final
The storm
Totila, the Gothic
predicted his conquest of years.
laws to almost the
But even
undisturbed.
left
and
its
him
Rome and
of war
monarchy came to
for his cruelties, his
and
death after ten
are told that the last days of Benedict were
darkened by a vision of the destruction of
his
abbey by
the Lombards, which happened forty years afterwards, but
consoled by another vision, which also
came
true, of the
extension of his rule throughout every part of Europe.
He
died
March
21,
543,
and was buried
in the
oratory
of St. John the Baptist, which stood on the site of the
demolished sanctuary of Apollo.
The Benedictine Rule
is
of course
bound
together, as
its
animating principle, by the threefold cord of monastic perfection
—poverty,
chastity,
and obedience
occupations into which the Benedictine day are divine worship, study, and
manual
of which found no counterpart the East.
and the three is
apportioned
labour, the last
among
Monte Cassino was not
;
two
the coenobites of
a reproduction of the
Egyptian Laura, or the model of Mount Athos.
But the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
90
comprehensive vigour and wisdom of
made kind
the model for
it
Western Europe
in
all
his pohty,
which has
subsequent institutions of the
the skilful adjustment of abbatial
;
dominion with universal suffrage of the monks, concentrating power and diffusing
it
;
at
once
and that prescient
human heart, which has moulded some men and women (for there are Bene-
insight into the
forty generations of
nuns
dictine
ments of capacity
in
observes,
may
—
all this
for
reject the theory
"a phenomenon
affording
And we may
curiosity."
liberal
James Stephen
Sir
who
well appear to those
a
instru-
does certainly show a legislative
founder which, as
the
of supernatural guidance exercise
and submissive
into voluntary
also)
his will
ample further
agree with him that, great as are the services rendered
by
the Benedictine Order for
many
centuries,
by
their agri-
cultural labours, their marvellous architectural achievements,
and
their priceless libraries, their greatness
attested
by the names of so many worthies
for active piety, for administrative
The names
would alone
to
suffice
show the
most signally
illustrious alike
wisdom,
learning, for devout contemplation, and,
missionary enterprise.
is
for
profound
we may
of Lanfranc and
add, for
Anselm
influence produced
by
mediaeval Benedictines on English history and theological thought. fulfilled
seen.
The dying
vision of
St.
Benedict was indeed
with a rapidity which he could scarcely have fore-
In Italy houses of his Order began at once to
rise,
increasing as time went on in spaciousness and splendour,
from Calabria to the Alps, and to
this day, or at least
till
the recent changes, scarcely a town of any size was without its
Benedictine convent.
Cassino expressed
it,
His monks, as an abbot of Monte
"swarmed
like
bees,"
and began
FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY. everywhere to plant new monasteries. Italy that they have
won
Yet
French Benedictine abbey
first
rose at Glanfeuille on the Loire near Angers.
of
many
learning,
and
It
and noble foundations, famous
rich still
Before
Maurus had
the death of Benedict, his faithful disciple
first
hardly in
it is
their highest reputation.
crossed the Alps, and the
" the
name
91
of St.
Maur
is
was the for their
dear to
letters."
During the seventeenth century no fewer than a hundred and
five writers
of that Congregation shared their literary
renown, and to them we owe the best editions the works of
many
as well as of
some
later celebrities, not to
the gigantic task accomplished Spicilcgiiim, his
dictine Order,
To to
of
speak here of
by Mabillon alone
Acta Sanctorum,
Annals of
his
in
his
the Bene-
and other works.
English readers
remember
known
of the Fathers, both Latin and Greek,
it
may be more
directly interesting
that with St. Augustine the rule of St. Bene-
we might almost To quote Milman once more,
dict passed into this country, and,
say,
took possession of
" In
it.
every rich valley, by the side of every clear and deep stream, rose a Benedictine abbey, and usually the most convenient,
and peaceful spot
fertile,
be found to have been the
will
may
be generally assumed,
contrary,
that
an
English
till
in
site
any part of England
of one of them."
It
evidence appears to the
monastery belonged to
this
Order, for the Cistercian was only a stricter reform of the
Benedictine
rule.
Far the greater number of our old
many
parish churches
The names
of Canterbury,
abbeys, several of our cathedrals, and
were St.
in
Benedictine hands.
Albans, Westminster, Glastonbury, and Tewkesbury in
the south, of
Wearmouth, Yarrow, and Lindisfarne
in
the
92
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
north, will recall ecclesiastical
many
others to those familiar with our
So strongly
history or our ruined shrines.
indeed were the English Benedictines rooted
the
in
soil,
that after the suppression of their houses at the Reformation they resolved at least to retain in the Order
all their
old titular dignities, in the hope of better days.
And we
believe that at this
moment Dean Bradley
existence somewhere
—though
it
is
has a rival in
not on record that he
has ever claimed his seat in the Upper House
shape of a mitred Abbot of Westminster. England, as on the Continent before the
rise
—
in
the
In mediaeval
of the Jesuits,
the education of youth was conducted chiefly in the schools
attached to Benedictine monasteries. these schools are frequented
upper
classes,
liberal
many
of
whom
To
this
day indeed
by Roman Catholics of the prefer their milder
and more
discipline to that of the Jesuit teachers.
But
in
the present stage of civilisation, religious orders, whatever their
permanent merits from an
ascetic or theological point
of view, are hardly likely to reconquer the wider influence or reputation that once belonged to them.
They
still
of
course have their uses, but their glories must be sought rather in the past than the present.
which has flourished already
And
and shows no signs of decay, may afford laurels
community
to repose
on
its
and dwell with a pardonable pride on the memory
of a founder whose
amid
a
for nearly fourteen centuries,
all
name
is
honoured and
his will
obeyed,
the social and moral revolutions of later ages, by
a multitude of
and beyond
men and women throughout modern Europe To a thoughtful observer this abiding
it.
influence in a world so
full
of change will perhaps appear a
greater miracle than any of those which his biographers
FOURTEENTH BENEDICTINE CENTENARY. have recorded. his
associates
It
would have amazed John Knox and
know
to
93
that,
three
centuries after " the
rookeries had been pulled down, and the rooks had fled,"
a large Benedictine monastery and school would be erected in the heart of Presbyterian Scotland,
Caledonian Canal
on the banks of the
while another, not without architectural
;
pretensions, has arisen almost under the ford Cathedral,
and as the centre of a
shadow of Hererival See, to
say
nothing of the more ambiguous establishment set up by "
Father Ignatius
granted,
by
"
friends
at
and
Llanthony.
It
may
at
least
be
foes alike, that St. Benedict has
more than earned the honours of
his fourteenth centenary.
XII.
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA.
There
has never probably been a period or a nation in
the world's history that has not
borne witness to that
craving for a knowledge of the hidden future, which seems
human mind, whilst it human faculties to inevitFrom the savage who reads in a
to be an ineradicable instinct of the is
doomed by
the limitation of
able disappointment.
thunderstorm or an eclipse the anger of his offended Deity, or the
somewhat more systematic reasoner who argues,
cometafulsit, bdliim
of
"
erit,
to the
most elaborate organization
wizards that peep and mutter,"
common
all
feeling of hopeless curiosity
to gratify
it.
Even
who had been down in the cave
Saul,
destroying witches, bows
by thousands among the educated
even formed while, is
in
Endor.
classes,
America the basis of a
on the other hand,
science,
if
ternatural power have
many
its
In
vota-
and has
religious
sect
;
the Positivist theory
to be accepted, proposes to establish
that prescience in which so
a
zealous in
so at
our own day the spirit-rapping superstition counts ries
by
are dominated
and a common desire
by
rival
competed and
natural methods
claimants to prefailed.
There
is,
however, this distinction, broadly speaking, between the prophecies of the ancient and modern, or rather,
let
us say,
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA.
— —that
the Pagan and Christian world
we
are not concerned here
95
with Jewish prophecy
for
the former was purely
national, referring mainly to wars or approaching political
revolutions, while the latter has also wider bearings,
often points to a
more distant
future.
The
and
nations of
mediaeval Europe, without losing their separate individuality, felt
themselves to be parts of a great religious com-
monwealth,
in which,
moreover, the three leading nations
Germany, France, and tinct
and special
Italy
—were
the chief priesthood, to
supposed
To
offices to fulfil.
Germany
Italy
to
have
dis-
was committed
the Empire, to France
We may again
the leadership of intellectual culture.
make
a fourfold division of the subject-matter of Christian pro-
which are either purely
phecies,
come
those bearing on
Church
— predictions,
religious, or dynastic, or
Under
cosmopolitan.
national, or
the last
the fortunes of
e.g., of a
reunion of separated bodies
affect
And
if
Universal
great reformation, or of the
— which,
however, have often
a secular as well as an ecclesiastical aspect,
they
head would
the
in so far as
the history of the principal civilised nations.
we turn from
these prophecies
their subject-matter to their origin,
seem sometimes
neous product of the
soil
to be a kind of sponta-
or of the temper of the age,
sometimes to be deliberately framed with a view to pro-
moting
their
own
fulfilment,
and sometimes
to be
due to
the predictive glance of genius, inferring the future from
the past.
Prophecies with a purpose, which
" prospective history, as history
is
are such as John of Bridlington's
Edward is
III.,
where a bitter
satire
may
be called
retrospective prophecy,"
poem
in the reign of
on contemporary vices
disguised under the form of a prediction.
So again a
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
96
good specimen of dynastic prophecy may be found
Enghsh proverb of EHzabethan
old
When hempe
in the
days, spun,
is
England's done
where the five
of the
five letters
word
hempe " stand for the VI., Mary and
"
Tudor monarchs (Henry VIII., Edward
and the chances of invasion or revolu-
Philip, Elizabeth),
Such, too,
tion at Elizabeth's death are indicated.
the
is
old catalogue of mottoes for successive Popes, ascribed to St.
Malachy, who died
in 1148,
which begins with Celestine nine Popes felicity,
tolicus,"
still
to
come.
but
II.
and Pius IX.
"
interpretation
Sometimes
it
crux de cruce
may
heard of
eagles.
who was torn from his To Leo XIII. is assigned
"
in coelo."
" "
peregrinus apos;
while a more
Dr. Dollinger
— one
like the Papstfdheln,
of those
the appropriate
thrown
Era, published
little
off
"
to
throne by the French
These remarks are partly suggested by a short the Christian
to
has had a curious
adapt " aquila rapax
Pius VII.,
on PropJiecies of
in 1595,
and extends
1143,
as in giving Pius VI. the motto
far-fetched
lumen
first
in
satellites,
title
of
treatise
in 1871,
by
so to speak,
from his larger works
in
the process of composition, and bearing similar evidence to the wonderful range and minute accuracy of his information.
In
it
is
given a sketch of the course of popular
prediction in successive Christian ages, which in
some
is
of course
respects a measure of the course of popular feel-
ing and belief.
It
must be remembered that the early
Christians inherited from the Jews
composed partly
the Sibylline books,
before, partly after, the time of Christ, to
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA.
97
which both alike attached a high authority, and whence the Christians inferred the triumph of the Church over the
For many ages indeed the chief subject of
Pagan Empire.
Christian prediction
was the reign of Antichrist and the
end of the world, which
was believed from
last, in
the tenth century especially,
be very near at hand, but
to
the Apocalypse
who was expected
— could
to be a Jew,
— as was gathered
not ensue
till
Antichrist,
had appeared, and tyran-
nized for three years and a half over the afflicted Church. It
was not of course
shaping
itself into
till
later,
when. Christendom was
separate States, that there was
room
for
national prophecies to spring up, which, so far as they are
not distinctively religious, seem usually to be the expression of the
common hopes
or fears of the people.
they cannot be referred to any known author
some mythical personage, such Orpheus,"
as
be accepted as an historical
Merlin, "the
illud Merlini," or " ut
who has is
British
reality.
English chroniclers
high repute in which Merlin was held
their frequent use of such phrases as " tunc
work,
Often
and then
usually credited with them, and comes to
is
testify to the
fridus,
;
impletum
impleretur Merlini prophetia."
by est
Gal-
incorporated Merlin's prophecy into his
open to the reproach of having altered the legend
about him by making a dcsmon incubus his father, and thus sanctioning the dark superstition, afterwards raised almost into a
dogma by Aquinas, and even authorized by Popes, lives of so many thousands of innocent per The tough hold which national prophecies get on the
which cost the sons.
popular mind
may be
illustrated
from a contemporary
writer, O'Curry,
who
script Materials
of Irish History, \hdX
Irish
Manu"he himself knew
says, in his Lectures on the
H
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
98
hundreds, including highly-educated
men and women, who
neglected the ordinary means of obtaining provision for hfe from
predictions
in
faith
of a great restoration in
Ireland, for which, however, no fixed period
was
In the middle of the seventeenth century the in Portugal, the Jesuit Vieira,
assigned."
first
preacher
wrote a History of the Future,
announcing that Portugal was to be the centre of a
Empire of the world. the
zeal, for
But he paid dearly
Inquisition
fifth
for his patriotic
of Coimbra scented
out some
occult heresy in the book, and, after a year's imprisonment,
compelled him to recant.
Among
the most copious at once and most interesting
of mediaeval prophecies are those relating to the city of
Rome, which has been
for
above two thousand years one
of the chief factors in the history of the world.
heathen period
was
it
Nursia
"
in the sixth
and earthquakes. wasted by its
barren
fire
site.
brow of the apocalyptic
Babylon the Great."
St.
by
harlot
Benedict of
St.
century foretold that
destroyed, not indeed
its
was the name
early Christians, like St. Jerome, thought this
of blasphemy written on the
and designating
In
called the " Eternal City," but the
Rome
would be
by tempests
foreign invasion, but
Bridget predicted that
it
would be
and sword, and the plough should pass over St.
Frances of
Rome
at
one time believed
that her intervention had arrested the impending woe, but
afterwards she had another vision of the destruction of the city.
An
English
dicted that
from the tions.
its fall
Roman
In
1
5
19
monk
century pre-
of the fourteenth
would coincide with a general separation Church, on account of
its
gross corrup-
an English prophecy was
brought to
Venice, that Charles V., then just elected Emperor, would
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA. subdue
nations,
all
and reduce the Mahometans
tion to the cross, but
would
a prophecy
in spirit,
years
fulfilled
first
burn
when Rome was taken by
later,
to subjec-
Rome and
though not his
99
Florence
;
in letter, eight
Rome had
army.
already been identified with the Babylon of the Apocalypse,
and
is
indeed called Babylon by St. Peter, and there were
prophecies as early as the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries of the seat of the
Papacy being removed elsewhere, while
Rome, the adulterous
The whole found
Jesuit
city,
was given over to destruction.
Order
accepted
Lapide.
Prophets,
necessarily to
be
their predictions.
it
which
is
and Cornelius a
must be observed, were not supposed
saints,
St.
view,
this
in writers like Bellarmine, Suarez,
nor were saints always right
Bernard was unfortunate
in
in his pro-
mises of a victorious crusade, and the announcement of St.
old,
Vincent Ferrer, that Antichrist was already nine years
and would appear shortly
borne out by the event.
St.
after his
death,
was not
Catherine of Siena was equally
at fault in ^her predictions of a vast crusade of the
whole of
Europe, and of a thorough reformation of the Church.
who spoke
the other hand, St. Bridget, ruin of the
Church and the rents
On
of the approaching
in its walls,
had her words
Indeed two conflicting streams
verified in the Reformation.
of prophecy, one of the downfall, the other of the cleansing
and restoration of the Church, arising from a
common
sense of the urgent need of reform, permeate the literature
of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. find expression in the all
sides the conviction prevailed that a free
Council,
superior
machinery
to
Both
feelings
burning words of Savonarola.
the
On
QEcumenical
Pope, was the only available
for effecting the
necessary reforms.
Cardinal
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
loo
Nicholas of Cusa predicted that the Church would sink deeper,
still
till
seemed to be
it
One
emerge triumphant.
lost,
but would again
of the earliest of these stern
censors of hierarchical and Papal corruptions was St. Hilde-
garde of Bingen on the Rhine, whose prophecies were
examined and solemnly approved
at a large Council assem-
She was consulted by three
bled under Eugenius III.
Popes, two Emperors, and innumerable bishops and abbots.
Yet she was not
afraid
to predict, in the true spirit of
Teutonic indignation against prelatical greed and ambition, peoples would strip the Papacy of
that princes and
power because of countries would
reject
would have only rule.
no
St.
it
its
its
some
and that the Popes
altogether,
Rome and
environs
under their
left
Bridget of Sweden in the fourteenth century was
outspoken than
less
the
faithlessness to its trust, that
its
St.
Catherine of Siena in denouncing
judgment of God on the crimes of Popes and Cardinals,
some of whom she described
as " like unto Lucifer,
unjust than Pilate, more cruel than Judas,
more
more abominable
than the Jews," while she roundly declared several previous
Popes
had a
Her namesake,
to be in hell.
the Irish St. Bridget,
vision seven centuries earlier not very flattering to her
countrymen, but which subsequent history cannot be said "
to have disproved.
She inquired
what Christian land were most showed her a land
in the
good angel, Of '
damned
?
The angel
'
west part of the world [Ireland].
She inquired the cause why. is
of her
souls
The
angel said, for there
most continual war, root of hate and envy, and of vices
contrary to charity saved."
;
and without charity souls cannot be
^
1
Froudc's History of Englajid,
vol.
ii.
p. 248.
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA. Passing
over
several
pausing to note that
in
kindred
and
predictions,
Roger Bacon we have the
of the Pastor Angelicus, destined to reform
lor
only
first
hint
abuses, so
all
often promised since, but so long in appearing,
we come
to the striking series of " Joachimite " prophecies, so called
from the Abbot Joachim, who founded a monastic congregation in Calabria towards the century.
He,
what God had revealed
to
him
and many French and English
in
after his death
Honorius
Richard
;
would hereafter
sit
of England,
III. affirmed his
that Antichrist
He
;
orthodoxy,
and number-
in Calabria,
miracles were ascribed to him.
King and bishops
I.
prelates, sought his advice
and he was venerated as a saint less
twelfth
Three Popes exhorted him not to keep back
his lifetime.
and
of the
close
was much honoured
like St. Hildegarde,
told the English
was already born, and
on the Papal throne
;
and, indeed, the
profound corruption of the Church through the poisonous influence of the dictions.
Roman
Curia was the keynote of his pre-
These were multiplied
after his
death by the
publication of spurious works in his name, issuing from the " Spirituals," as
they were called,
in
the Franciscan Order,
and thus a Joachimist school came to be formed. characteristic principle
three periods
was the
Its
distinction of history into
the Old Testament period, or that of the
:
Father, before Christianity, the Petrine period
Testament period, or that of the Son, up to Pauline period
;
;
the
New
A.D, 1250, the
and that of the Holy Ghost,
after 1250,
The Church, through the had been made into a brothel and
the Johannean period.
evil rule
of the Popes,
a den of
thieves, the people
pastors,
and
were deceived and corrupted by their
Rome was
the very centre and focus of
all
ZZ2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY .AND EICGRAPHY.
impurit}-
and corruption
in
Christendom, and was to be
overthrown by the Saracens and the German Empire. Then
would come the conversion of the heathen and the Jews,
and the restoration of the Church by means of a new Order This teaching was maintained for a long
of Eremites.
time in the Franciscan Order, and " Spirituals " suffered death or
XXII. in consequence of it. attributed to Joachim,
Curia should
itself
had
many hundreds
of the
imprisonment under John
The commentar)^ on
Jeremiah,
foretold long before that " the
be murdered as
had murdered others";
it
and as Boniface VIII.. the author of the
Unam
had been openly denounced as "a new
Lucifer," for his
Sauctam,
tjTanny and unchastity, the fate of the uncompromising prophets excites less wonder than regret. Rienzi,
and
his Laureate, Petrarch,
political aspirations
dictions of the
an ardent
Pafa
The
tribune
combined with their
faith in the Joachimist pre-
A/i^clicus
and the coming age of the
Holy Ghost.
The
tone of prophecy from the fourteenth centur}' to
the Reformation
Abbot Joachim. already referred
is
not very different from that of the
St. to,
Bridget and St, Catherine of Siena,
are the great xisionaries of the period
their denunciations are not less sharp than his,
him, they were honoured Popes.
St.
by
and
yet, like
theologians. Cardinals,
Pope should be confined
to the
Leonine
cit>'
—a prediction
which Italians of the present day have naturally not gotten.
and
Bridget prophesied that the sovereignty- of the
The
nearer
we approach
the
for-
outbreak of the
Reformation, the more threatening becomes the language of these prophets.
had declared on
In a similar
his deathbed, in
spirit
Bishop Grostete
1253, that only
bv
fire
PROPHECIES OF THE CHRISTIAN ERA.
103
and sword could the maladies of the Church be healed, and Machiavelli did but repeat the same sentiment in other
words when he said that either ruin or
Roman
must overtake the
Church.
bitter chastisement
It
must
suffice
here
to note in passing the unique grandeur of the character
and position of Savonarola, whose it
was nothing more
— was
visions of the future glory of the
foresight
political
seldom at
fault,
Church
closes his record of Christian Prophecies, from
examples are mostly taken.
would well repay the
The
prophecies.
subject
which these
is
one which
closer study of historians.
has been said of a nation's ballads its
await their
still
With the Reformation Dr. DoUinger
adequate fulfilment.
true of
is
If men's characters
clearly exhibited in their
hopes and
may
And
fears.
putting aside supernatural claims, which is
be judged
we
least as
prediction,
are not here
the record of the highest aspirations
or the darkest anxieties of a nation or a particular stage of
What
perhaps even more
from what they love to remember, they are at
concerned with,
— if
while his
its
existence.
Church
at
any
XIII.
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES.
The
treatise
by Dr. Dollinger noticed
Das Prophetenthum first
in the last essay.
in der chvistlichen Zeit, ranges from the
age of the Church to the Reformation.
But
it
must
not be supposed that the passion for peering curiously into the future, which seems to be an ineradicable instinct of
humanity, has died out since then, or that the demand has
The
ceased to create a supply.
second-sight of which Sir
Walter Scott has told us so much, and many of the best authenticated dreams and ghost-stories
hope
to gain
some
further
of the Psychical Society desire of
mankind
bility of gratifying " prophet,"
— bear
employed
for
in
ordinary apprehension to be
seer, or foreteller
prophet
so largely
and poet, and
employed
of the future,
in
the
Testament, does not,
strictly speaking,
of coming events at
all.
"
one who speaks
a is
Greek term
the Septuagint and the
New
it,
is
In Latin the same word
teller
translate
their robust in the possi-
Indeed the very use of the word
it.
which has come
significant indication of this.
'7Tpo(f)i]Tr]s,
and to
former disappointments,
simply identified with
may
witness to the persistent
to pierce the veil,
faith, in spite of all
— of which we
knowledge through the labours
mean
a fore-
Liddell and Scott rightly for another,"
and especially
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES. "
one who speaks
as
its
New
"
— an
This
is
" interpreter "
also, of course, its
The Jewish Prophets were
or preachers to the people
phetic" function, as
give
;
Old Testament
the interpreters of God's their predictive or " pro-
we have come
word, was entirely subordinate to
man
— and
" an interpreter of Scripture,
Testament sense
a preacher." sense. will,
God
for
105
to limit the sense of the this.
When
Dr.
New-
styled on'e of his early Anglican works Lectures on the
Prophetical Office of the Church, he was as accurate as he
always
is
in his choice of
But there can be
language.
little
doubt that nine-tenths of ordinary Christians, and probably a good
many
Christian ministers,
if
they were asked
who
the Prophets were, would reply at once, without any hesitation, that
they were persons who foretold future events
completely has that one incident of the
office
discharged in the Jewish Church obscured of their other functions
in
the
;
so
which they recognition
all
And
popular mind.
the
enormous multiplication of the prophets of Baal who "with one mouth declared " that is, predicted " good things
—
—
unto the king," but v/ho do not seem to have greatly concerned themselves about any moral or spiritual instruction,
shows that
this one-sided estimate of the prophetic office is
by no means of merely modern growth. It
has been observed that the stream of Christian pro-
phecy by no means' dried up there are, moreover, still
many
at
the Reformation, while
predictions of an earlier date
eagerly canvassed, as being unfulfilled, or only partially
fulfilled.
Many
of these,
which were not long ago popular
amongst Legitimist and Ultramontane
had reference
to a Monarchafortis,
identified with
the
First
or
circles
who was
in
at
France,
one time
Second Napoleon, and was
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
io6
afterwards supposed to be the Count of Chambord, though
the circumstance of his being sometimes described as
young prince
"
is
a
rather complicated that apphcation latterly.
With the great King was
who
"
usually associated a great Pope,
called in the prophetical catalogue ascribed to St.
Malachy, which Angelicus.
is
really
The monk
about three centuries
of Orval,
who
old,
Pastor
died in the middle of
the sixteenth century, and whose written prophecies were
buried with him, but were dug up in 1793, and afterwards
published
now
it is
—whether
with or without being tampered with
impossible to say
— adds some further —whom
According to him, three great Kings
particulars.
the Times'
Correspondent some years ago specified as the Czar, the
King of England, and a German Prince
— are
to be con-
verted to Catholicism, and two island nations also are to
embrace the true
faith.
This
is
indeed a favourite topic of
these later seers, and a famous vision, said to have been related
by Edward
the Confessor on his deathbed,
He
preted in the same sense. tree,
representing England, cut
tance of three furlongs from
This
was replaced. of
is
saw,
explained to refer to the separation for the space of
Still
more elaborate was the prophecy of lived in the twelfth century,
distant ages the Christian
St.
" in
nations would very generally
destructive, vast multitudes cities
Hildegarde,
and foretold that
depart from the fear of God, wars would
many
three
speedy conversion.
its
who
the sword, and
inter-
down and moved to a disown root, after which it
and therefore to point to
become more
is
are told, a green
its
England from Catholic unity
centuries,
we
be destroyed
;
increase
and
would perish by but, at last,
man-
kind, purified through heavy tribulations, would return to
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES. the practice of the laws of as so often it
happens
no doubt lends
in
The
Holy Church."
such cases,
itself readily to
107
language,
sufficiently vague,
is
but
the antecedents and out-
break of the Reformation and the religious wars which followed in
its
The prophetess goes on
wake.
to describe
the reign of righteousness and peace which shall follow the
repentance of the nations and usher
Second Advent,
in the
partly in language derived from Isaiah, and the conversion
A
of the Jews.
century and a half later
St.
Gertrude
expatiated in more general terms on the glory reserved for the latter days of the Church. predictions of the hermit
our
own
day,
who
Far more
explicit are the
Bartholomew Holtzhauser, nearer
foretold in detail the reunion of Greeks
and Latins, the return of England and Germany to Catholic unity, the fall of the Turkish Empire,
and unbelief
shall
general peace, while to perfection,
There are strange
here, taken
De
own
all arts
and sciences
shall
full
be brought
accomplishment."
stories of predictions of the
Garendon Park,
Unity of Christendom.
in
be given
1857 by the late Mr.
Leicestershire,
He was
kind current
may
days, of which a specimen
from a work published
Lisle of
" all idolatry
and the promises of the inspired Prophets of
the Old Testament shall receive their
even in our
and that
be rooted out, and the nations enjoy a
on the Future
travelling in
Wales
at the
time, and, in the course of conversation with the priest at
whose chapel he had been hearing mass, asked him whether he thought England would ever again become Catholic
The good
:
he priest said with much believed it would. And he added a most remarkable history that tended to confirm his opinion. About a hundred and fifty years before that time there was a saintly Catholic gardener in that very town, who was a man of extraordinary earnestness that
io8
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
•
and prayer indeed his life was one continued prayer, and next to his own sanctification no object occupied so prominent a place in his multiplied petitions to the throne of grace as the return of his own dear country England to virtue
;
the unity of the Catholic Church. One morning, three years before his happy death, he had received the holy communion, and all at once he was rapt in spirit, and Jesus, whom in the Sacrament of His love he had just received, manifested Himself to His humble servant, and with a sweet and gracious aspect said to him, " My son, I have heard your prayer so often poured out before me I At these words, the will have mercy upon England." poor gardener, overwhelmed with gratitude, exclaimed " When, Lord, oh " Not now," replied our when " Saviour " but when England shall build as many churches as she destroyed at the change of religion, and when she shall restore and beautify the remainder." ;
:
.-'
!
;
The
narrator of the tale proceeds to quote a contemporary
authority to the effect that about three thousand churches
had then
(in
1857) been restored, and nearly two thousand
new churches century, and relation
The
built,
in
Great Britain during the present
he considers that there
between the
facts
is
" a
mysterious
and the prediction."
prophecies already mentioned chiefly concern the
fortunes of the Church, and indeed there are
mediaeval predictions,
and nuns, which have not a
religious bearing,
often include political references also,
Rome, the home both of an sovereignty,
is
concerned.
tions about Paris,
few of the
many of which emanated from monks though they
and especially where
ecclesiastical
and a
civil
There are also many vaticina-
which was looked on as the second centre
many years ago seemed if we may credit high family in France who
of Latin Christendom, and these not to be
still
exerting a perceptible influence,
statements as to personages of
were then said to be holding aloof from the capital
at the
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES. moment, from dread of being involved Still more frequent, as is
destruction.
about
predictions authorities,
is
It
would be interesting
many modern and centuries, as
to
examine how
may be
far
traced to
Christian apologists of the early
well known, invariably recognised a genuine
is
prophetic element in
Paganism, as well as
and boldly appealed to
And Neander
it.
end to which
" Christianity is the
all
in
doing
development of the
But he also admits
so.
lack of critical taste or
skill,
they
Judaism,
insists that, as
religious consciousness necessarily tended," they justified in
imminent
between a Jew and a
Christian prophecies
The
a Pagan source.
its
natural, are the
who, according to some
Antichrist,
to be born of the union
Mahometan.
in
109
that,
made many
were
fully
with their mistakes,
especially in using all sorts of spurious or interpolated
writings
which
passed
under
high-sounding
mythical
names, as of the Grecian Trismegistus or the Egyptian
Thoth;- and
it
seems that Christian as well as Jewish
writers freely interpolated the Sibylline oracles themselves.
Celsus at least publicly reproached them with doing
so,
and Origen could only answer that the
earlier Sibylline
writings were also
The tendency
fabricate
of interpolations.
full
predictions and
which necessarily react on one another, spring a
common
source.
their disciples as
It
is
are
no doubt
in
in fact
knaves and
fools,
and a generation or
classification
would have
educated society as exhaustive.
still
Joanna Southcott, or
from
easy to classify the prophets and
two ago such a rough and ready passed current
to
the tendency to credit them,
There
who regard Swedenborg or even Edward Irving, as mere vulgar
persons
impostors, and their followers, past or present, as idiots or
no ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. stark mad.
But psychology and history aUke rebel against
this process of coarse rationalizing.
very doubtful
It is
any impostor ever gained a following who was not half an enthusiast, and
it
The
of fools.
certain that nine-tenths of the
is
followers in such cases are
much more
feverish hankering
may be as irrational as the any one who offers to satisfy it
futurity
to
but denunciation will do
tious,
if
at least
of enthusiasts than
knowledge of
after a
ready credence accorded is
often purely supersti-
little
to dispel a curiosity
which repeated disappointment seems wholly powerless to diminish.
was just as unreasonable
It
an excep-
to feel
tional dread about the result of the Prince of Wales's illness
on the anniversary of
his father's death,
when
sense of hopefulness
the day
and an exceptional
was over
;
yet
it
is
probable that not one in ten even of the educated classes
was altogether exempt from such a unlikely that
it
How many
selves.
feeling,
sit
if
they can help
down
start
who
belief
is
Yet
!
ladies,
who
will
this is
much more
irra-
to a prediction, not in
man
of apparently saintly
believes himself to be inspired from above.
of course
more
natural,
though not therefore
more reasonable, when the prophecy happens a surmise or a wish of our own.
perhaps a wise
politician,
by the
fact
that
to
jump with
Archbishop Laud was not
but he was certainly very far
indeed from being a visionary or a attested
from
on a journey on a Friday or
some weight
absurd, coming from a
character
And
it,
thirteen to dinner
tional than to attach itself
far
persons are there of sound digestion
and well-stored mind, and not exclusively never,
and
was shared by the Royal Family them-
he has
English Church to this day.
The
fool, as is sufficiently left
his
mark on the
late Professor
Mozley
LATER CHRISTIAN PROPHECIES. observes
:
"
That we have a Prayerbook, an Altar, even
our Episcopacy
Laud
.
.
.
itself,
we may, humanly
speaking, thank
any one of Catholic predilections can
that
belong to the English Church
Laud attached what
is
now
owing to Laud."^
is
ance to his dreams, and was not ashamed to avow the privilege of a well-regulated
mind
matters with a lofty indifference, but the privilege
may
ties, "
we
are not sure that
Man
not be too dearly purchased.
to the deduction
It is
it.
to regard all such
not only " a rational animal," as the logic manuals
and according
Yet
considered a ridiculous import-
drawn by the same authori-
a cooking animal," but he also possesses what Bishop
Butler rather unceremoniously designates "that delusive faculty
"
forward
of imagination^ which plays to the
full as
important a part in the mental development of most as the reason.
holds
is
tell us,
its
And
place, there will always
women, who
be plenty of
men and
are neither knaves nor fools, so organized as
to have a capacity for seeing visions
and a vastly greater number eager and more than half inclined 1
men
" as long as that " delusive faculty
Historical
and
and dreaming dreams, to listen to their tale,
to believe
it.
Theological Essays, vol.
i.
p. 227.
XIV.
PROPHECY OF
Under
the
title
ST.
MALACHY.
of Corona CatJiolica, and in a gorgeous
binding of scarlet and gold, Mr. Charles Kent has "offered
epigram
at the feet of the Successor of Peter" an
in fifty
many
languages, ancient and modern, and from as
differ-
ent hands, on his accession to the pontifical throne, which
he considers a suitable method of testifying reverence for the eminent virtues
The
world." is
neat,
if
and learning of the
original English stanza,
not particularly striking.
"
Ruler of the
which
is
so involved as to be rather difficult to construe
by Professor Paley,
On
classical.
be
left
critical
Sayce,
to
as
might be expected,
the greater
number of
more accomplished
subjoined,
The Latin ;
version
pure and
is
translations
linguists
to
is
the Greek,
it
must"
pronounce a
judgment, but such names as those of Professor
Max
Muller,
and Renouf may be accepted as
vouchers for the correctness of the Assyrian, Sanskrit, and Egyptian.
The English
original runs as follows
:
Through the Cross on Cross of Pius, As through Mary's Dolours Seven, Lo from Death what Life emerges, Joy from anguish, Light from Heaven. !
It will at
once be observed by connoisseurs that the two
mottoes of the late and present Pope respectively
in
St.
PROPHECY OF
worked
into this epigram,
which
Armagh,"
main object
that his
Malachy, Archbishop of to rehabihtate that curious
is
We
document, which he evidently believes to be genuine.
how
are reminded
St.
—
appears from Mr. Kent's
it
" S.
headed
is
in Ccclo
and indeed the actual words
And
occur in the Latin form. preface,
113
Crux de Cruce and Lmnen
Malachy's Prophecy are
MALACHY.
ST.
Malachy
flourished in the
half
first
of the twelfth century, and was an intimate friend of the
great
who wrote
Bernard,
St.
him
Life of
a
— which
is
hardly perhaps considered generally " to be one of his
most
says nothing at visions
St.
all
of this "most
renowned of
and prophecies attributed to heard
fact never
as Mr.
and a half
centuries
though
of,
Bernard, while
with miraculous and prophetic
friend
his
But
masterpieces."
finished
crediting
him,''
the
which was
Kent candidly admits,
after his death.
gifts,
all
It is true,
till
no doubt,
scarcely seems a sufficient explanation of this
it
long silence, that the art of printing was not invented the latter half of the fifteenth century
more had
to elapse
Prophecy of
St.
Arnold Wion, but he thinks
before
the
first
till
but a good century
;
publication
of the
Malachy by a learned French Benedictine,
in
Kent prudently rious
in
four
it
Under
1595.
these circumstances
declines to " insist
upon
its
bears a certain analogy to
Fourth Eclogue of Virgil,"
in
Mr.
authenticity," "
that myste-
which the Advent of
our Lord and His birth of a Virgin were predicted forty years before the event, and to the Sibylline acrostics. it
does, but
on that point a word
Several fresh editions century,
dedicated
and
in
1675
shall
So
be said presently.
appeared during the seventeenth
one
by permission
in
two splendid quartos was
to the reigning Pope,
Clement
X.,
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
[4
AND BIOGRAPHY.
and "formally authenticated by the notable words, con
To Mr.
licenza del siipcriori."
Kent's mind this dedication
seems to be conclusive evidence of authenticity, though he does not exactly say
A
so.
certain
Father
Jesuit
Menestrier did indeed in 1689 venture to express the
doubt as to the authenticity of the document, and
O'Hanlon
John
the' Rev.
scepticism
is
published
a Life
rendered innocuous,
if
of
Saint
But their
he reiterated that doubt.
Malacltf, in which
first
1859
in
not excusable, by the
consideration that Father Menestrier either ignored or let
us charitably hope
—was
ignorant of the fact that Pope
Clement X. had scarcely two decades before deigned accept, as Pontiff, the dedication
"
of those
quartos, in which the authenticity of the predictions
formally
Father
maintained," while
to
two splendid
O'Hanlon
was
frankly
acknowledges his regret at having been unable to obtain a sight clear,
of
"
that most remarkable publication."
X. did not go
for
Kent urges
of astounding
thinks, however,
these four, are
illustrate
It
coincidences,"
will suffice to
we may
observe,
all
invariably selected
mention
first
of which
four.
to
he
Three of
of comparatively recent
whenever
it
is
desired
to
the striking coincidences in St. Malachy's Pro-
phecy, from which are
Finally Mr.
that these Prophecies " present from
a series
date,
seems
much with Father O'Hanlon, whatever
he might have thought of the arguments.
last
It
however, that the condescending approval of Clement
It
is
only' natural
somewhat exceptional, even
be said to prove an opposite
if
rule.
to Infer that they
the exceptions cannot
These four are the
mottoes of Plus VI., Pcrcgrinus Apostolicus ; of Pius VII.,
Aquila Rapax ; of Pius IX., Crux de Cruce ; and of Leo
PROPHECY OF Lumen
XIII.,
Pope
in Ccslo.
being
first
The
who had
personage
of evidence for
pubHcation
its
—belongs
Some
history.
— and there
is
and
work on the
may
no shred
existence before the time of
its
1595
in
composition
first
its
to a vast family of visions
through the
predictions, running
little
to be Pastor Angelicus,
that St. Malachy's Prophecy, whatever
is
be the exact date of
a
is
figured in earlier vaticinations,
mentioned by Roger Bacon.
fact
Church
115
shall perceive that the fourth
after his present Holiness
this is a
and
We
MALACHY.
ST.
whole course of
years ago Dr. Dollinger published
subject, already noticed, giving copious
examples from the beginning of the Christian era to the
And
period of the Reformation. later illustrations,
human
ineradicable future.
era
coming down
It is
both
in India, as
among
confined to the Christian
all
the ancient Greeks and
Clement of Alexandria
to the Sibylline oracles Mr. long-lived,
own purpose is
In referring
testifies.
recalls the earliest,
most
these Christian pro-
all
more than questionable
discretion for
in
may have
first
of the fourteen Sibylline eight
circulation,
suggested
the
of which
we now Messianic
strangely
colouring of the Fourth Eclogue of Virgil.
But what
the origin of the Sibylline books, so far as
it
as
to
Romans, and
of helping to authenticate St. Malachy.
very possible that the
Books formerly possess,
Kent
and most famous of
phecies, but with
It
day, of this
thus a special gift of prophecy was attributed
;
virgins,
his
own
prying curiously into the
instinct for
not of course at
there have been various
to our
yet clearly ascertained
}
The
earliest
is
has been
of them was
probably composed by an Alexandrian Jew, at the beginning of the second century, B.C.
;
it
closes with predictions I 2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
ii6
of the future coming of the Messiah, borrowed from Old
Testament prophecies, and may have become known to
The second and
Virgil.
books also betray their
third
Jewish authorship, but must have been composed after the destruction of the
the end of the
Temple of Jerusalem, somewhere about century of our era. The next five
first
books are evidently of Christian composition, and are assigned
by most
critics
to
the
third
is
That
century.
fragments of the old Pagan oracles are embedded
in
them
more than probable, but they can only be regarded on
The
the whole as deliberate impostures. titles
of our Lord, to which Mr.
another on the Cross, quoted by the eighth book.
The
adopted because
it
original
Sibylline
acrostic
Kent St.
on the as
Augustine, occur
in
form seems to have been
was a known
verses.
acrostic
refers, as well
characteristic
For some
sixteen
of
the
centuries
these pretended oracles were accepted as genuine through-
out Christendom, without a shadow of a misgiving.
were habitually cited from the
first
in
They
controversy with
Pagans by the most eminent Christian Apologists and Fathers,
such
as
Tatian, Athenagoras, Justin
Martyr,
Clement of Alexandria, Lactantius, and the great Augustine himself.
Justin
Martyr ascribed the Pagan prohibition to
read them, under pain of death, to the express instigation of the devil.
Clement of Alexandria has preserved the
tradition that St. Paul advised Christians to study them.
The Emperor Constantine quoted them oration
before
the
Lactantius reproach the Pagans
with dishonesty in
in
a
solemn
Council of Nice, and both he and
— not
unjustly perhaps
seeking to discredit testimonies so
cogent against themselves.
The adoption
of the fish as
PROPHECY OF
MALACHY.
ST.
117
a sacred symbol was derived from the acrostic already mentioned, and the opening stanza of one of the grandest
hymns almost ranks
of the old Latin
the Sibylline oracles
with the inspired prophecies of the Psalter, in the famous third
of the Dies
line
missal,
though altered
expandens
The
vcxilla.
and published
Irce^
at Basle
still
some
in
first
retained in the
Roman
later versions into
by Vossius
Cnicis
books were collected
eight
and Castellio
in 1545,
about the same time pointed out that they contained passages which must be spurious. Jesuit, Possevin,
many
In the next century a
observed that there were
many
passages
purporting to be written before the time of Moses, which
must therefore have been interpolated, as the Sibyls were
known
to
have flourished at a
later date
;
but he attributed
these interpolations to the malice of Satan,
thereby to discredit the rest of the work. 1649,
^
French
who At
Protestant preacher, Blondel
ventured, for the
first
time
among
desired last,
in
by name,
Christians, to
denounce
the entire compilation as a tissue of clumsy and deliber-
And
ate forgeries.
later
at all follow, nor
is
the early Christian fathers
and the Sibylline ture of the
New
forgeries
in
Testament
does not of course for supposing, that
and controversialists did not
faith.
It
was an
uncritical age,
formed part of a whole
same ambiguous
remain to us
It
any reason
there
appeal to them in good
has established the
criticism
substantial correctness of his view.
litera-
kind, portions of which
still
the apocryphal adjuncts to both Old and e.
g. the
Preaching of Noah, the Book of
Enoch, the Epistle of Barnabas, the Apocryphal Gospels, the
Clementine Recognitions,
and
the
like,
all
spurious, though not always of fraudulent origin.
equally
ii8
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Nor has
the fount of prophecy, as was observed before,
by any means run dry
own
to our
middle ages or even down
in the
day, and these popular predictions often deal
with secular as well as religious and ecclesiastical matters.
There
is,
whole
instance, a
for
them connected
of
series
with English history, ascribed to the mythical
which
wondered
put on record.
has
Galfridus
some of
at that
It
these predictions
Merlin,
not
is
to
— like
be
those
of St. Bridget and St. Hildegarde, which pointed to the
Reformation
— should
have
There are many, no doubt, Mr. Kent
— and
been
remarkably
fulfilled.
the present day besides
in
not exclusively
Roman
Catholics
— who
attach a more or less definite credence to this Prophecy of St.
Malachy, and whose belief would not be disturbed,
were
it
who
first
conclusively proved to have originated with those
published
that
if
to the world, at the close of the
it
They would
sixteenth century.
the Papal mottoes of the
half were
mere ingenious
rising
first
historical
Hemans
of them indeed, as Mr.
argue, plausibly enough,
above the dignity of puns
four centuries and a
applications
— many
has pointed out, hardly
in their
obvious derivation
from the family names, names of birthplaces, or heraldic devices of pontiffs
no predictive
—
value.
it
does not follow that the rest have
And
they would point triumphantly
to such startling congruities as those to
which Mr. Kent
some recent popes. But the modern readers this prophetic cata-
refers in the description of
circumstance that for logue carries with
it,
by necessary
implication,
an an-
nouncement of the approaching end of the world would alone give
it
a peculiar,
many minds; and
if
somewhat sombre,
believers in Dr.
Gumming
interest to
at all events
PROPHECY OF
adumbrated
De
" In
Roman
Peter),
tribulations,
have only nine
thus mysteriously
labore
solis,
et
Nauta, Flos Jloriim,
Gloria
olives.
De
Then comes
Roman Roman (or
the last persecution of the holy
Church the chair the
is
119
Ignis ardens, Religio depopulata, Fides intre-
:
viedietate luncz,
end.
to
is
whose character or destiny
pida, Pastor Angeliais, Pastor
the
MALACHY.
Leo XIII.
cannot blame them. successors,
ST.
be
shall
who
filled
by
Peter, a
shall feed the flock
amidst ^many
which being accomplished, the Seven-hilled
City shall be destroyed, and the tremendous Judge shall
As
judge the people."
the average reign of a Pope lasts
seven years only, this method of reckoning would fix the final
of
persecution
all
things
century.
of the Church and
the consummation
somewhere about the middle of the next
And
that,
we may
fairly suspect, is
the true
explanation of this sudden revival, after two centuries of oblivion, of a critical
called
Prophecy of
and devotional St.
Malachy,
strengthened by the curious
felicity
interest in the
which
is
so-
no doubt
of the designations
severally assigned to the late and the present Pope.
XV. SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY.
The
Universelle
Bibliothcqiie
et
Revue
Suisse,
which
frequently contains articles of interest on various subjects, is
hardly as well In 1876
be.
it
known
in this
country as
it
deserves to
contained a very remarkable posthumous
paper of Montalembert's
— originally written for the
by
spo7idant, but declined
it,
and published
in
Corre-
accordance
with directions given by the author after his death. ^
Two
years later appeared a paper by M. Ernest Naville, on the " Social
Influence of Christianity," which does not perhaps
say anything very new difficult
well worn a theipe
simply certain
in
substance
—
for
it
would be
without being paradoxical on so
to be original
— but
does bring out very forcibly and
facts which,
however undeniable, are apt
the present day to be forgotten.^
writer's theological views, his historical estimate is
entitled to alike,
command
based as
it
is,
in
Whatever may be the one well
the assent of heterodox and orthodox
not on any doctrinal assumption even
of the truth of Christianity, but on a review of the course of Christian history. 1
takes as his text the concluding
See Bibliothcqjie Utiiverselle for January, February, March, April,
and May, "-
He
Ibid.,
1876, "
L'Espagne
August, 1878.
et la Liberie."
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY.
121
sentence of a paper read by M. Troplong in 1842 before the Institute of France
:
—
the foundation of our social
we
The
Christian philosophy It lies at
life.
though the
principles of right; and,
recognised,
"
fact
much more by
live
is
is
the root of our
not universally
than by the ideas
it
which have survived from the ruin of the Greek and
Roman
This
world."
when we
refused to be
made
centuries
And
a King,
was
this
Yet what
Church.
the result
is
moreover
question
— from
to
which
civil
the
Christ
We
.''
life
Newman
the principles
of
His
must distinguish
— which
is
not here
bearing on social and
rise.
It is
one of the most
quite true, as striking
Oxford Sermons,^ that the
characteristic of his
of influence
has given
it
out in
points
for the first
condition
the
strictly
the Christian faith as a religious system in
as
that
recollect
claimed nor exercised any political power, and
neither
three
more remarkable,
the
is
reviewer justly observes,
latter
and kind
not the direct and primary object of the
is
Gospel, which addresses itself to the spiritual nature and
needs of man.
always
done
far
As M.
But
more
in the
almost
is
are
"
Christian
satirical as
and the policy of nevertheless.
It
also true that Christianity has
borrow an untranslatable phrase
world than
Naville expresses
deserved sarcasm, there
it
iv TTapipy(o, to
it
its
immediate ends.
Abstracting from faith and worship,
Such
nations."
language
sounds
applied to the character of individuals States, but
it
has a very real sense
designates the broad and radical distinc-
tion of Christian nations from,
See Pa7-ochial Sermons, Sake of the Elect." 1
fulfil
with grave, but hardly un-
vol.
^.^.,
iv.,
Buddhist or Mahometan
"The
Visible
Church
for the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
122
How
nations.
as
we have
is
be explained
this distinction to
seen, disclaimed all temporal power.
His disciples "render to Cassar the things that were
and
God
to
disclaimer political
Yet
the things that were God's."
Christ,
.-'
He
bade
Caesar's,
in this very-
contained the secret of the great social and
is
which
revolution
destined to accomplish in
the
Christian
was
religion
In every ancient
the world.
State the temporal and spiritual were inextricably con-
founded, whether the State ruled religion, or priests ruled the
The words
State.
of Christ for ever separated the
temporal and spiritual order.
And
hence followed at once
two eventful consequences, on which our whole system of civilisation
in great
measure depends— the emancipation
of the religious conscience, and the emancipation of
By
society.
virtue of the
first "
the
as the imperishable seed of liberty " civil constraint
The
cluded.
exercised in the
influence of Christ
was therefore
society
to
by the second
;
name
of religion
is
on national as well as individual
If
all
ex-
and of His Church on But
be "purely moral."
moral influence has produced the most momentous
consist
civil
word of Christ abides
this
effects
In what does
life.
it
.''
we come
God
to analyse the great law of love to
and our neighbour, which Christ
laid
down
pendium of the whole duty of man, we main elements of obligation
find in
those which
;
com-
as the it
three
concern the
dignity of man, as distinct from the lower animals, those
of justice, and those of beneficence. illustrations
Among
which suggest themselves of the
the copious social action
of Christianity under these three heads, M. Naville selects three
typical
examples, and
it
may
be doubted
if
any
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY. better
could have been
selection
what hes most obviously on the
we have
aspects of Christianity,
Taking
made.
surface, the
a striking confession cited
engrafted virtue of the forces which had
He
priests
life
was
endeavour to put new wine into
in the abortive
old bottles and galvanize a decaying superstition
life.
first,
beneficent
from the works of Julian the Apostate, whose absorbed
123
complained that
"
by the
destroyed
its
the negligence of our (heathen)
about the poor has suggested
the
to
impious
Galileans the notion of benevolence towards them," and he desired to recover for
piety," that
is
this
" for the progress of
im-
of the Gospel,
ism had no pity the sick, and
Paganism the advantages which
had gained
active beneficence
"
for the
Of
course he
unhappy, the
him that hath no
hospitals in ante-Christian times.
There were no
Lives that were useless
Naville observes, has even been
The
blamed
for preserving the lives of feeble children
old men.
We
a return
to the
fashion
among
is
Gospel, as for its care
and worn out
have lately heard ominous suggestions of
more
drastic
methods of treatment
in
the nations of antiquity, under the pretty
sobriquet of " euthanasia." there
Pagan-
suffering, the feeble,
helper."
to the State were not worth preserving.
M.
failed.
It
is
curious to observe
how
hardly a touch in classical poetry of that love for
childhood, and tender reminiscence of their
own
childish
days, which hardly a single Christian poet fails to exhibit.
The
reviewer quotes an interesting passage from Gratry's
works, in which he
tells
unbelieving or sceptical to take charge of
us that he has often advised
young men who consulted him
some poor
family, and that they have
always come to the same conclusion
;
"
no progressive
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
124
moral
prosperity without
no
progress,
moral
progress
This charitable influence of
without religious progress."
the Gospel then has passed into the manners and even the legislation of
But there that
Justice
justice.
is
Christian States.
all
something which comes before charity, and
is
was recognised
by Pagan philosophy, but
virtue
in the institutions of
deal with
it
How
She could not suppress
}
it,
for she neither
and the
than before.
result
was
to
make
it
was
Spartacus not
against Christian ethics to preach revolt.
long before had headed a revolt of
critical
the Church
did
claimed any temporal power, and
possessed nor
slaves,
cardinal
a
Take one
every Pagan State.
example, the system of slavery.
as
was grossly outraged
it
seventy thousand
their condition
worse
But Christianity enforced principles which
sapped the foundation of the whole system of slavery. It
proclaimed, for the
bility
and
slaves are men,
of
first
time
history, the responsi-
in
and therefore the true dignity of man;
human
men
all
are brothers.
personality must have
revelation on
the
first
taught that
it
The
sacredness
come almost
Christian converts.
Church merely proclaim an abstract
principle.
as a
Nor
new
did the
She bound
on her own members the obligation of carrying out that principle
to
its
legitimate
results.
The master who
seduced a slave was obliged to marry her, and the master
who
ill-treated a slave
was excommunicated.
Slaves were
forbidden to obey their masters in disobedience
to
the
law of God.
Christian slaves received the Eucharist, while
their masters,
if
A
penitents or catechumens, were excluded.
slave could be ordained,
and he thereby became the
superior of his master in the Church.
The emancipation
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY.
And
of slaves was encouraged and largely practised. gradually, as the Christian spirit produced
its
125
natural
slavery was softened, modified, and transformed,
till
almost disappeared from Western Europe. There
thus
fruits, it
had
indeed
is
a darker side to the picture to be seen in the revival of slavery in the fifteenth century,
among
first
the Portuguese
and then among the other nations of Europe.
Hardly a But as
century ago negroes were publicly sold in Paris. the
Mahometans had
suggested this infamous
first
to the Portuguese, so
it
was the
conscience which eventually put in
it
traffic
revolt of the Christian
In America and
down.
Russia that work has been accomplished under our
own
America the protest came from the Quakers.
In
eyes.
In England at an earlier date the work was done by " positive Christians " like
And
Wilberforce and Buxton.
the Russian imperial manifesto of February 1861 closes
with an exhortation to " the pious and faithful people to sign their
brows with the
ours to call first
down
labour."
free
cross,
and join
the blessing of the If
it
is
their prayers with
Most High on
century took part in the work, and that there of the far to
Convention liberating seek.
"The
their
objected that the eighteenth
slaves,
is
a decree
the answer
Christian tradition
is
not
had formed the
eighteenth century," and in labouring for the emancipa-
philosophers were serving the cause of
tion of slaves
its
Christianity.
And, while abolished throughout Christian
nations,
slavery
Mahometans.
still
slaves for their hard
captured in Africa, every one
who
survives
Persians,
work and and,
in
all
Arabians,
its
and
horrors
among
Turks
require
their harems.
They
are
according to Livingstone, for
arrives at the slave
market four or
five at
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
126
on the road
least die
the process.
in
auspices of the
A
;
they are mutilated, and often killed
Society has
these horrors, which owes tions
On
been formed under the to put an end to
King of the Belgians its
origin to the vigorous exer-
and appeals of the Christian missionary, Livingstone.
M. Naville
this
justly remarks
:
Livingstone was an English Protestant missionary. Let us seize the opportunity of signalizing the accord of the two great branches of Western Christianity on the question On August i, 1838, by virtue of an Act of of slavery. the British Parliament, the sun in rising on the English On November 3, 1839, Antilles shone only on freemen. a Bull of Pope Gregory XVL, recalling the efforts of his predecessors in favour of the slaves, confirmed and completed their decisions by pronouncing in a definitive and solemn manner the absolute condemnation of slavery in all its
forms.
From
principle
great
justice let us pass to the third
enunciated by Christianity, the rights of the individual conscience and
true
dignity of man.
trated under one aspect,
It
may
be
illus-
by contrasting the moral action
of the old Attic drama and of Shakespeare, though both alike,
but in a manner wholly diverse, maintain the great
principle of retribution (hpaa-avri 'na^elv). familiar
example may
principle
to
Rome
striking
suffice to
One
was appreciated
in
the ancient world.
can forget what
is
perhaps
monument
— the
crucial
remind us how
its
Colosseum.
No
an
effort
to our
imagination
to
visitor
grandest and most
And
few can
the Colosseum without thinking of the gladiators. is
and
far this
realise
at
visit
But
it
once the
hideous atrocity and the unnatural popularity of those ghastly spectacles. life,
Not content with witnessing them
wealthy Romans would leave large sums by
in
will for
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY. gladiatorial contests to
honour
Schmidt records two cases of one
all
the
young men
their
memory after death. who bequeathed,
rich citizens
in his establishment, the other all
From Rome
his beautiful slave girls, for these combats.
the custom spread
127
over Italy, and gladiatorial
were introduced between the courses of a banquet,
contests like the
performance of a band, for the amusement of the guests.
And
be
this,
it
remembered, not among a barbarous, but a
who could appreciate the poetry who had brought the fine arts and
highly civilised people, of Virgil and Horace,
the tactics of mihtary organization to a rare degree of perfection,
and from
whom we
have inherited the science of
Yet delicate and high-born ladies vied with each
law.
other in their frantic enjoyment of these hideous exhibitions of " the gladiator pale for their pleasure ", writhing in his last agonies of
Not only would Emperor Commodus himself
groans and blood.
a worthless wretch like the
" the
descend into the arena, but
good Titus
"
reserved his
Jewish captives for the same horrible pastime. startling
passage
in
the
which shows the hold
He
tells
us
how
it
Confessions
had on the
his friend Alypius,
There
Roman
is
a
Augustine
of St.
imagination.
who had
a horror of
the circus, and had resolved never to approach
it,
was one
day almost forced by
his
companions to accompany them
to a gladiatorial show,
and
at first kept his eyes obstinately
shut,
but at last the shouts from 80,000 spectators so
excited
him
that he could
as he gazed, he
no longer contain himself, and,
became intoxicated with the sanguinary
delight, in spite of himself.
retired at last burning with a
And how was
this
He
shouted, he raved, he
mad
abomination
desire to finally
come put
again.
down
}
I2S
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Christian
liad vainly forbidden
Emperors
it,
and nearly a
century after the conversion of Constantine the Colosseum still
recked with gladiators' blood.
He was
the combatants.
first
of
at the
into the arena to separate
moment, flung himself
critical
But on the
monk named Telemachus,
January, 404, a young
instantly
hacked to pieces amid
the howls of the furious spectators balked of their enter-
tainment, but he had done his work; his blood was the
sands of the amphitheatre.
last that stained the
These examples are enough
Nor
ence of Christianity.
shortcomings or
condemnation
is
sins just,
of
but
is
to establish the it
any reply
Christians.
Their
homage
sanctity of the doctrine they are
to the
influ-
very severity renders
individual its
moral
to point to the
grievously dishonoured in their
lives.
felt
And
to have so
same may
the
be said of the persecutions which stain the annals of the Church.
Christian spirit
They
are
in
direct
of the
violation
of Christianity, and recall the old Pagan confusion
between the things of Caesar and the things of God,
which the Founder of Christianity so emphatically con-
The Massacre
demned.
of St. Bartholomew, the dragon-
nades of Louis XIV., and the Republican noyades, alike illustrate the saying of Christ that " those
the sword
shall
perish
completely the true institutions
entirely
by the sword."
spirit of Christianity
And
who sought
more
and customs of Christian nations, the more
The worst
Church have been those of her own household, to serve her cause
by the weapons
their
forbade them to borrow from her assailants. points,
the
penetrates the
such contradictions will disappear.
foes of the
all
who take
and especially
in his
exposition of the
In
Master
many
new teaching
SOCIAL INFLUENCE OF CHRISTIANITY. of Christianity as to the dignity
— which
and responsibility of man
would of course bear a much
detailed treatment
knowing
ently without
Dollinger
— M, Naville
in his
it,
fuller
and moi"e
has closely, though appar-
followed the line taken by Dr.
work on the Apostolic Age.
incidentally throws a
129
good deal of
light
His
article
on a question often
raised in the present day, as to the bearing of Christian belief
on morality, but that
upon
here.
lion
It
sua poma
is
must
is
too wide a question to enter
suffice for the present to
the proper description of
remark that
many
excellences
which are sometimes attributed to a non-Christian or even to an anti-Christian source.
The
effects of Christianity are
not to be looked for always or exclusively
in its
nominal
more or
less
closely to adhere, whether they will or no, to those
who
professors, while their antecedents cannot fail
have renounced
it.
XVI.
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY.
One
of the
many
growing out of
collateral questions
by Mr. Gladstone some years ago
the controversy stirred
about the Vatican Decrees concerns the history of persecution, or of penal legislation against heresy, during the
Christian era.
Dr.
Newman
indeed, as an argiunentuni
has shown conclusively
ad honiineni,
telling points in his Letter to the if "
are preserved in the Encyclical
— and
one of the most
Duke of Norfolk
Empire "
the traditions of the old
it is
in religious
— that,
matters
and Syllabus of Pius IX.
they have also been preserved in the general system of
European
The
civilisation,
Puritans and
testifies,
and
in particular
among
ourselves.
Scotch Presbyterians, as Mr. Buckle
held these principles quite as firmly as the school
of Laud, and they have survived in Blackstone, and in the
theory
our
if
own
not the practice of day.
Christianity
Enghsh jurisprudence down is still
officially
the law of the land, and within living
had a very
practical meaning.
to
declared to be
memory
the phrase
Those who are shocked
at
the enunciation of the principle in Papal manifestoes are
shocked at witnessing grandfathers."
Dr.
"
the words, ways, and works of their
Newman
gives various illustrations of
the actual recognition of this system in quite recent times, and a writer so
England down
little in
to
harmony with
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY. him
as Sir Fitzjames Stephen admits that he
quite right
is
In some shape or other, though
in his facts.
131
in
very vari-
ous methods and degrees, the punishment of heresy has existed in Europe for fifteen hundred years that it
is,
the
Empire became
Christian.
some
sense, the
also true that, in
is
At
Roman
a
is
maxim
work of the very highest authority,
Pontifical, a
is
Ecdcsia ab-
of the canon law, and in the
the Bishop, in delivering over a secular judge,
condemned
heretic to the
directed efficaciter et ex corde et
stantid to intercede that he
death or mutilation,
since,
same time
Church has always
disclaimed the responsibility of persecution. horrct a sanguine
— ever
the
in the
may
omni
in-
not be punished with
following prescribed form
:
Domine Judex, rogamus vos cum omni affectu, quo possumus, ut amore Dei, pietatis et misericordia^ intuitu, et nostrorum interventu precaminum, miserrimo huic nullum mortis vel mutilationis periculum inferatis. It
is
often said
—but, as —that
perfect accuracy
will presently appear,
this
with very im-
only makes matters worse by
adding hypocrisy to cruelty, and that the
severities
which
the Church thus affects to deprecate were in reality her
own work, and
at a
word from
would have disappeared. persecution
is
her,
And
enough laid down in the Bull Unam some modern Ultramontanes regard as
clearly
Sanctam, which
Bishop Doyle denied
in
his
had any
at
all,
infallible,
though the
letter to
Lord Liverpool that
inasmuch
as, "
it
late
it
so far from being received
force
by the Church,
is
there expressly laid
that there are two swords in the
power of the Church,
was violently opposed."
down
which was never spoken,
no doubt the principle of
For
it
by the
the spiritual and material, the one to be used
K
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
J3'-
Church, the other /^r the Church, sed ad mitipn
And
saccrdotis.
Indeed Boniface
and death.
Bull, ruled that
secular arm,
et patientiam
the sword must imply the power of
Bishops might surrender criminals to the
knowing that the intercession
not be attended to
;
and
this ruling
for
mercy would
was quite
in
harmony
Nor
with the general opinion of the .fourteenth century.
would
it
be
judge the sentiment of that age by the
fair to
Heresy was then
habits and circumstances of our own.
the
full
as
much an outrage on
of right and selves,
wrong
as
in
to
the acknowledged standard
Atheism or blasphemy among our-
both of which are
Mormonism
or
life
the author of the
VIII.,
still
punishable by English law,
The
the United States.
Lollards
in
England and the Albigenses on the Continent were looked on with the sort of feeling now entertained in respectable
and
religious society
towards Mr. Bradlaugh and his
with this difference, that in those of the received belief
was
far
"
ages of faith
when
in
1484 went so far as to excommunicate six
sentence of the Inquisitors,
as a
the strictest
make some allowance
chances of involuntary error or ignorance.
who delayed more than
allies;
a denial
more keenly resented
crime of the deepest dye than in days religionists feel obliged to
"
for
the
Innocent VIII. all
magistrates
days to carry out the capital
who
nevertheless
were
still
obliged to use the form of intercession prescribed in the Pontifical.
But
it
would be a great mistake to suppose
that the forcible suppression of heresy had been from the first
a recognised principle in the Catholic Church, or that
the practice was suffered to take root without protest from the most orthodox and influential quarters. The language of the
Roman
Pontifical represents
a
genuine tradition,
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY. though
had
it
centuries
for
A
desuetude.
into
fallen
133
glance at the original introduction of capital punishment for heresy will serve to illustrate this.
Sir Fitzjames
Stephen asserts that penal laws against on the conversion of the Empire,
heretics followed close
and to a secular
certain extent this
power went
is
But so
true.
beyond giving
far as the
effect
civil
spiritual sentences of Councils, in the deposition of
and the tain
action
like, its
was
for
some time of
a very uncer-
and spasmodic kind, and was exerted, to say the
quite as
much
The almost
Athanasius at the hands
lifelong persecution of is
ample of the execution of worthy that
may
it
a case in point.
heretics
is
in
every
put forward by those
Two
who
chief pleas are
that
or
Catholics
;
it is
power was alone responsible
— as
moment commonly
sometimes alleged
is
urged that
for the proin
excuse of
wholesale torturing and hanging of
—heresy was
ment of treason
or
trines of Wicliffe
ex-
condemning the conduct
of ecclesiastical authority in former ages
Elizabeth's
first
so note-
shrink alike from defending per-
secution in the abstract and from
cedure,
The way
be worth while to dwell for a
upon the circumstances.
either the civil
least,
heresy as of Catholicism.
in the interests of
of Arianizing Emperors
the
to
Bishops
Roman
merely the cloak or the accompani-
some other heinous
and Huss,
crime.
for instance,
The doc-
were notoriously
dangerous to the State, and Dr. Maitland has shown that a similar excuse crusade.
Now
may
be pleaded for the Albigensian
both these explanations
may
be alleged,
the former with unquestionable justice, in the case of the Priscillianists,
doxy.
The
who were
the
first
to suffer death for hetero-
facts are briefly these
:
— In
380 the Synod of
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
134
Saragossa condemned and excommunicated Priscillian and his adherents,
who taught
a kind of Gnosticism, and the
Bishops Idacius and Ithacius procured an Imperial rescript
banishment from Spain, which
for their
contrived, by bribing the Court
Upon
this Ithacius
who had
mus,
to
however they get rescinded.
betook himself to the Emperor Maxi-
usurped
just
the
supreme
power,
and
himself at Treves, and Priscillian was sum-
established
moned
officials, to
answer before a new Synod at Bordeaux.
He
came, but forestalled his sentence by an appeal to the
Emperor, and to
this
appeal to the secular power
ecclesiastical
all
internal discipline
became
precedent
—was
in
— contrary
questions of
allowed by Ithacius,
faith
who
his accuser before the Imperial tribunal.
or
himself
But here
Martin of Tours, one of the saintliest and most influ-
St.
ential first
men
of his age, appeared
upon the scene, protesting
indeed against the gross and unprecedented
breach
of ecclesiastical discipline, but also vehemently deprecating
the infliction of
civil
punishment on the
length obtained a promise from lives
;
but as soon as he had
left
He
heretics.
Maximus
at
to spare their
Treves the persecuting
Bishops renewed their importunities, and the Emperor had Priscillian is
to
and several of
to be observed that
Pope
Siricius
his
But
adherents beheaded.
he took pains to explain,
in
it
writing
on the subject, that these " Manichaeans
"
were not put to death simply for heresy, but for the practice ties,
and encouragement of the most hideous impuri-
of which
torture
— on
they had been convicted
their
own
confession.
— perhaps
under
The explanation was
not deemed satisfactory, for a solemn protest against the
whole proceedings was entered by
Siricius,
St.
Ambrose,
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY. and two habits
Italian
Councils.
Ithacius, a
man
and insolent temper, was deposed
municated, and when
135
of luxurious
and
excom-
Ambrose afterwards came to hold communion with Maximus.
St.
Treves, he refused to
Martin himself, on his return to Treves
order to inter-
in
cede with the Emperor for some political offenders, would
communion with
not hold
only yielded this point at
him
the persecuting Bishops, and
last,
as the condition of inducing
whom
to recall the military officers
Spain with a commission to put sufficiently
he had sent into
heretics to death
all
—
alarming measure, as a pale face and peculiar
dress were the tests of heresy adopted
by the
To
soldiers.
Martin also Maximus had represented the executions as crimes within the cognisance of
inflicted
for
courts.
Fifty
years
later
apologetic tone to this still
Leo the Great
earliest
the
refers
civil
in
an
sanguinary persecution,
however on the assumption that the doctrines of the were as utterly subversive of morality as had
Priscillianists
been alleged
;
and
monly reported
worth noting that they were com-
is
it
to be a
Manichsean
sect.
For the Mani-
chaeans " had a singular power of exciting animosity," as Sir Fitzjames
Stephen justly observes, though he omits to
give the reason, which in
one of
his extracts
they are described as tiam pervenerint." Confessions that
is
however pretty
men
" qui
We may the
clearly indicated
from the Code of Justinian, where
charges
ad
infer
imam from
against
scelerum nequiSt.
them
Augustine's
were
not
altogether without foundation. It
was towards the end of the fourteenth century,
in the
period intervening between the persecuting enactments of
Boniface VIII. and 'Innocent VIII. referred to just
now
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
[36
that a regular system of penal legislation against heresy
England, with the Act of
began
in
arrest
of heretical
5
Henry V,
somburcndo, confirmed by 2
II. for
Henry IV. de
statute of 2
1400 by the famous
Richard
the
was followed up
preachers, which
in
in
hceretico
which
1414,
authorized justices of the peace to inquire into heresies
and commit
up
These Acts 'remained
heretics.
to the time of the Reformation.
they were repealed by
after stating that
after a short revival finally repealed
in full force
Sir Fitzjames Stephen,
Edward
VI., and,
during the reign of Mary,^ were again
by Elizabeth, adds that the burning of
two Arians under James
I.
was therefore
illegal
;
and he
has since explained that the same remark applies to the burnings for heresy which unquestionably took place in the reigns of
Edward VI. and Elizabeth also— one being Cranmer played
the famous case of Joan Bocher, in which so discreditable a part
— although
these executions are not
generally supposed to have been illegal.
Serjeant Stephen
indeed expressly affirms that the writ de
Jicsretico conibii-
rendo was
and Mr. Lecky
still
in force in
fixes its repeal in 1677.
witches were burnt last
much
James
To which later
afterwards.
heresy, for
And
— whether
reign, it
must be added that
than that
execution took place in 171
years
I.'s
2, in
witchcraft
;
in
England the
Scotland ten or
was
or not the elaborate
closely
fifteen
akin
to
daemonology of
The Marian
persecution, cruel and impolitic as it was, demonemanated from the Government, not the Church it was neither inspired nor encouraged, but— so far as their power went moderated by the ecclesiastical authorities. Something will be said on this point in the essay on Gardiner. No doubt Mary's personal, and very intelligible, dislike of Cranmer and his associates had a good deal to do with it. '
strably
;
—
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY. the
middle ages, with
evil
its
hierarchy of inaibi and
—witches were always punished
siicciibi,
was accepted
for the
crime of a compact with the
Charles
II.
entire
'37
But the Act of
devil.
abolishing capital punishment for heresy leaves
untouched the power of the Ecclesiastical Courts to
inflict,
"
not only spiritual censures, but other punishments,
extending to death,"
for " atheism,
And
schism, and other damnable doctrines and opinions." this
since
power they
still
retain,
become a dead
letter
though
it
has of course long
except as applied to
delinquents.
But to the end of Charles
very serious
reality,
being
in
not
blasphemy, heresy, or
I.'s
reign
a kind
fact
clerical it
was a
of modified
Inquisition.
There are also certain provisions of the
common and
statute law against heresy, blasphemy,
Atheism
in force, to
still
which Dr.
passage on the Encyclical acted upon within his society
and
There
is
and
refers, in
the
Letter, as having been
own memory and
giving a tone to
to the publications representing public opinion.
a curious
two writers
Newman
his
in
Newman
of
such
by
coincidence in the view taken
widely
opposite
opinions
as
Dr.
and Sir Fitzjames Stephen, not only of the
facts
but of the moral deducible from them.
The
latter sets
out by disclaiming any abstract theory about persecution,
and considers
it
perfectly natural that sincere believers in
Christianity should desire to
make
the confession of anti-
Christian opinions penal, and only proper that sincere disbelievers should either remain silent or be ready to take the
consequences of avowing their dissent.
be impossible,
in
But he holds
it
to
view of "several broad, patent, notorious
facts " of the present day, to carry out with
any consistency
or success the system of repression
existing in the
still
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
138
theory of the law, and thinks therefore that
And
be frankly and formally abandoned.
it
sketching put a short Act for the purpose.
avows himself
in
now superseded" ment of respect
the abstract
world.
in
principles
— meaning apparently such limited enforceorthodoxy as was
for
But he admits
such a system
Newman
Dr.
"an admirer of the
lately a recog-
till
nised principle of the English law courts opinion.
had better
he concludes by
to
it
and of public
be impossible to maintain
the present intellectual condition of the
No Government
could be formed on the principle
of religious unanimity, and "as a necessary consequence the whole theory of Toryism, hitherto acted upon, pieces and went the
that in centuries to
came
to
And he only hopes come some way may be found of
way
of
uniting the freedom of the
all flesh."
new system of
society with the
authority of the old without any base compromise.
can hardly be two opinions
among
thinking
There
men
as to
the practical conclusion arrived at on independent grounds
by these two
diverse authorities.
No
reasonable man, for
instance, could desire the " unequal justice" of prosecutions for coarse
and vulgar blasphemy, as such, while the
subtler,
but for that reason far more effective, ridicule of refined
and educated sceptics must inevitably go unpunished of course a further question
is
involved,
when the
sentiment of the great body of citizens
blasphemy becomes a public nuisance, in
as
is
condition of things
who
may
regret the change,
may
naturally
alleged,
The
e.
o-.,
altered
be frankly accepted even by those
and
it
need not
an unqualified condemnation of those
which
outraged, and
was
the recent prosecution of the Freethinker.
but
;
religious
have
been
in
any case involve
who upheld
thought
a policy
tolerable
or
PENAL LAWS AGAINST HERESY. expedient under very diftcrent circumstances.
probably be many, even
among
139
There
the sincerest believers
Avill
in
dogmatic creed, ready heartily to welcome the change, view of the
atrocities,
moral and intellectual
which never
the hypocrisies, and the manifold
generated by the old system,
evils
lost the original sin of its
profligate prelate
parentage from a
and an usurping Emperor.^
Murray of Maynooth,
a in
in his written
Professor
evidence delivered to
the Parliamentary Commissioners in 1854, after examining at
some length the opinions of distinguished
both
Roman
tion,
sums up with the avowal of
"the punishment of heresy, as the province
words
may
authorities,
Catholic and Protestant, on religious persecu-
of the
his
heresy,
own judgment does not
magistrate."
civil
fall
that
within
His concluding
be profitably commended to the notice of
theologians both of his
own and
other
communions
:
I wish that all parties. Catholics and Protestants, would agree together that heretics should be coerced only by the force of argument, burned only in the fire of charity, cut off only with the sword of prayer and all good works that not only temporal punishments and civil disabilities, except for civil crimes, should be abandoned, but all angry revilunchristian passions under the ings and recriminations mask of Christian zeal. For my own part " I have faith in my faith," and I believe that if we tried only the weapons which the Divine Founder of Christianity has put into our hands, we would come nearer to a united decision on that great controversy which can never be decided by the arms of worldly warfare. ;
— .
.
.
^ It may be as well to explain that this paper was in type before the Blasphemy and appearance of Sir Fitzjames Stephen's article on Blasphemous Libel," in Xhc. Fortnightly Review for March 1884, which, however, only confirms his previous argument.
XVII.
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM. It
is
frequently affirmed or assumed that toleration and
indiffercntism are
are
synonymous, or
at least correlative, terms;
other words, that those whose faith
or, in
sure
persecute
to
toleration, if
it
—
if
is
in a
somewhat
the works of Mr. Froude.
the
far as to
Roman
bound,
whenever
say that no
it
"
different
connexion,
writers,
in general,
who
in
are
have even
exclusive " religion, such as
consistency, to
has the power.
this
crops up again
Catholic, ought to be tolerated, because
common
in
it
Some modern
thorough-going advocates of toleration
gone so
an
is
constantly harping on
History of Rationalism, and
and again, though
means, while
though possibly unconscious, doubt.
Mr. Lecky, for instance, in his
unhesitating
is
the
from anything but weakness,
arises
infallible sign of real,
theme
they have
suppress
Those who speak
all
it
is
dissent
in this
way
do not usually care to argue about a point which strikes
them think
broad
as self-evident it
enough
;
or, if
any argument
to appeal to
facts of history,
is
required, they
what they would
call
and observe that the ages of
the faith
were the ages of persecution, and that toleration was the result of the
Reformation.
And
it
may be
allowed that,
on a mere prima facie view, the testimony of history does
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM. seem so
far to
be
Yet we
in their favour.
maintain, at the risk of what
may
it
and that
it
would be
shall venture to
look like a paradox, that
the half-truth they have seized upon truth,
141
is
not even half the
less inaccurate to say,
would be an exaggeration, that doubt
mother of persecution, and
though
the foster-
is
faith of tolerance.
It
is
not
true in fact that the most rigorous persecutions have been
based on religious principles, any more than that they
have served the cause of religion
means
true
;
neither
those religions which
that
is
it
by any
commonly
are
regarded as the most dogmatic and exclusive have always
been the most persecuting Here, however, rather
to
language.
is
principle
in
Of course, all
if
common
practice.
true, to
indifferentism,
as saying that a spade
confusion
to tolerate all religions
about equally
synonymous with
or in
necessary to draw a distinction, or
guard against a very
regard them as is
it
is
is
a spade.
the proper meaning of the word.
the
same thing
But then that
is
not
yet this confusion
runs through a great deal of the popular nonsense that
Thus, for instance, we saw
talked on the subject. the other day that
it
is
the
High Church
it is
it
is
stated
absurd and intolerant to deny the
orthodoxy of Churches which have no episcopate can only mean that
to
say that toleration
much
And
of
means
;
which
absurd and intolerant to maintain
doctrines of apostolic succession and
sacramental grace, for
it
follows of necessity from those
doctrines that Churches which have no succession are, so far at least,
heterodox
;
but
it
does not at
all
follow that
they ought not to be tolerated, any more than that Jews are not to be tolerated, though the broadest of Broad Churchmen
might hesitate to admit a Rabbi
to his pulpit.
Yet there
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
142
was a great deal of angry complaint not long ago about
made by some few Anglican
the frustration of an attempt
an interchange of
clergymen to establish
Dissenting preachers, and
with
pulpits
we were loudly assured
great principle of toleration was at stake.
that the
But the
question at issue was something totally different
real
— namely,
whether there are any differences worth considering between the
Church of England and the Nonconformist bodies
To
which have separated from her communion. a religion does not mean to treat free
a
from the most serious claim to exist and
fair
but simply as having
errors,
enjoy
tolerate
as true, or even as
it^
civil
With the
rights.
improper and purely arbitrary sense often attached to the
word we are not now concerned, and for the present,
it
may
be dismissed
with the obvious remark that
inconceivable that
all
or
religions,
all
it is
varieties
simply
compre-
hended under the common designation of Christianity, should be equally true, though that they
all
Taking
might be equally
it
is
of course conceivable
false.
toleration then in its proper sense,
ground either of abstract reasoning or for alleging that
belief
None
.?
it
is
there
incompatible with genuine religious
is
whatever.
There are a hundred reasons
why men may
persecute besides the conviction that
heretics will be
damned— for
principle
assumed
just as there are a
power,
why
they
in the
Mahometans
put
it
plainly,
is
all
the
argument we are dealing with
tolerate religions
Toleration
of superiority so strong that thus
that, to
hundred reasons, besides mere want of
may
believe to be false.
any
historical evidence
it
may
which they firmly
spring from a sense
despises
all
dissidents,
and
are sometimes said to be tolerant from
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM. But
their scorn of " infidel dogs."
point, for
Mahometans have
the
ing in
little
present day, and
hardly a case in
intolerance
is
certainly a
by the sword, and that by the
as Christianity never was, its
is
opportunity of persecut-
was originally propagated,
principle of their creed, which
express directions of
this
143
founder.
Still
own
a profound conviction of their
remains true that
it
faith
would naturally
incline believers to trust to its inherent strength,
and that
the bitterest religious persecutors have for the most part
been men whose sincerity was questionable. something
may
be wrong.
the case of Christians,
it
scepticism to believe that
and others an uneasy suspicion
To is
all
confine ourselves here to
surely
no proof of latent
forcible
methods of propa-
gating truth are directly condemned by the letter or
body of the
sacrifice their
early Fathers,
own
Spanish bishops about the fourth century. ;
who
yet never hesitated to
lives for their faith, as
illustrated in the dispute
the other side
spirit
This was unquestionably the belief of the
of the Gospel. great
is
by which waverers sometimes endeavour
fident professions
to disguise from themselves
that they
There
analogous to the hard and con-
in persecution
St.
between
St.
was conspicuously
Martin and certain
Priscillianists at the
Augustine
may
end of the
indeed be cited on
but as he was one of the most voluminous
of writers, and almost always wrote pro re natd to meet
some immediate
call,
he
is
by no means always
consistent
with himself, and the general tenor of his writings points the other way. cution see
It
was not
till
the middle ages that perse-
became a recognised system, and
presently,
that, as
on grounds more secular than
Some, again, advocate
toleration
neither
we
shall
religious.
from religious
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
144
called in this country the traditional
Whig
society,
in
which
it
be
theory, that an
and sharpen the
opposite system serves to concentrate reH|[ious element
may
on what
principle nor religious indifiference, but
wisdom of
the
is
much as possible in abeyance. This why so many Englishmen heartily disliked
statesmen to keep as is
one reason
Prince Bismark's ecclesiastical policy in the Kultiirkampfy
many
though there were of course
condemned
as
it
persecution
is
unjust.
weak would
by a
though
it,
sufficiently
it
may sometimes
keenly, while
it
would not
He
would
And
an earnest believer
affect the
argument from
is
successful for the
pretty sure in the long run to injure religious interests
it
is
supposed to be
example, English
are suffering to this
day
is
identified.
Roman
Thus,
Catholics
for the disastrous policy of the
few years of Catholic ascendency But, in fact,
all
recorded in history have sprung political
that
moment
any cause with whose
to take an obvious
Philip.
political
remember
also be likely to
even a persecution which
and
be
the religious force of this objection the most
feel
Mary and
sincerely
thorough process, to stamp out a
or nascent sect altogether.
expediency.
last
who
also
obvious again, that no
is
likely to alter the inner belief of its victims,
except by intensifying possible,
It
in
England under
the chief persecutions
much more from
than from religious motives.
This
social will
at
once be admitted as to the persecution of Christians during the
first
three centuries of our era, which
was
carried on
under some of the best as well as some of the worst of the
Roman
Emperors, and had from their point of view
a good deal to say for itself
contempt
for the religion
It
was only
to
show
his
he had abandoned that Julian
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM. the Apostate did not choose to dignify
What
is
that he
revival of
had he Hved longer,
their ineffectual severities, and,
more than probable
by a
it
145
would have changed
not so generally understood
is
same
that the
is,
it
his mind.
principle lay at the root of the mediaeval treatment of
No
heresy. justify
it,
doubt a theological theory was framed to
which eventually found
law, but the theory
way
its
grew out of the
real or supposed, not vice versa.
canon
into the
practical necessity,
Thus, to take a
critical
example, the extermination of the Albigenses was considered, it,
and there were plausible grounds
for considering
and
essential for the preservation of Christian society,
that not simply on account of their immoralities, but of
the social and political principles of the sect, which was
moulded on a
radically different ethical standard.
regarded by contemporary public opinion should regard a community of Thugs, parallel,
regarded
as
the
Salt
acted upon in cases to which It
And
was thought dangerous
to
its
to take a
or,
Lake settlement
United States.
in the
much
It
was
as
we
modern
coming
is
to
be
the same idea was
application
is less
obvious.
admit any new religion into a
Now
State organized on the basis of religious uniformity.
there are obvious advantages in religious uniformity from
a purely political point of view
— witness
perplexing to modern statesmen
argued that
it
development.
" the
religious
educational and other matters, which
difficulty," in
is
— and
it
may
is
so
even be
necessary at a certain stage of political
In
the youth
of States,
when they
are
maturing their system of law and imbibing that religious spirit
which
lies
at
the
basis of all
law,
and again
in
their weakness, so long as they cannot stand without the
L
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
146
support of an ecclesiastical organization and the sanction
may be
of definite religious ideas, this uniformity
than others, and more at all events
be
fragile
sensitive to religious diaeent.
This
came
it
alise
v^hat
It is
tenable arguments, and
less
then to .be continued when anachronism.
of mediaeval
inevitably in course of time to
by simpler and
justified
States again are
the historical explanation
is
intolerance, but
said to
more
Some
be necessary to them.
had already become an
it
always a temptation to
men
to gener-
from their immediate experience, and to imagine that right or expedient or excusable in a given
is
holds good as a universal law.
case
Thus the Southern States
of the American Union held a theory of slavery, and the
Northern States held a theory of abolition, equally absolute
and equally unreasonable.
Catholic
persecution
in
and indeed
political
that
reality, like
by the Roman Empire against the
carried on
more
Mediaeval,
was
generally,
Christians,
than theological, and defensive rather than
aggressive, the great exception to this rule being found in
the cruel and senseless religious policy of Louis
But the
practice,
XIV.
which had been formulated into a system
by theologians and
canonists, survived
when
original
its
grounds had passed away, and we look with natural horror at the tion,
most glaring instance of
which
may
it
in
the Spanish Inquisi-
properly be regarded in the light of a
gigantic anachronism
;
partly explicable, however,
by the
peculiar circumstances of early Spanish history, which identified Catholic with national sentiment,
much
sixteenth
century
identified
national
sentiment
political rather
Protestantism in
England.
became It
was
to
had
as in the
with
the last
a
than an ecclesiastical institution, and dealt
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM.
147
with sundry offences of a wholly secular kind, such as After making
selling horses across the Pyrenees.
tions for current exaggerations
successfully demolished it
was bad enough
ing that
it
in his
—
does not seem to have done such
fatal injury to
is
but
in all conscience,
often represented,
From 1500
and
we might
as
a priori
to 1670 Spanish literature
and Spanish theologians took the lead
zenith,
Council of Trent.
Cervantes died
in
was
at the
the same year as
much
Shakspeare, Lopez and Calderon
who
Life of Ximeties
worth observ-
have expected. its
by Hefele
deduc-
all
Llorente's figures are
it is
literature as
at
— and
later.
Mariana,
has been called " the only Jesuit that ever saw and
spoke the truth
Church and
in
State,"
and who was per-
haps the ablest writer that powerful Order ever produced, lived tion.
their
ished
and wrote and published
in
Spain under the Inquisi-
Historical science, as distinct
own
from the history of
country, and physical science, have never flour-
among
the
Spaniards, but that seems to be due
rather to their national character than to the Inquisition, for national history
censorship,
and theology are more provocative of
and Spain has done no more
the tribunal was abolished than before.
way.
It
is
for science since
But
this
by the
not of course meant as an apology for the
Spanish Inquisition, but merely as noting some points, apt to be overlooked, which
appreciation of
its
may
contribute to a
historical position.
the cruelties perpetrated,
gensian crusade and
it still
represented, like the Albi-
other mediaeval severities,
under altered circumstances and with political
more accurate
Shocking as were
though
far less excuse, the
and defensive rather than the aggressive and
theological principle of intolerance.
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
U8
Wc
have seen that the principal persecutions, Christian
well
as
Pagan, were
as
capable of being
or
justified,
plausibly justified, on other than doctrinal grounds, accord-
ing to the circumstances of the case.
But the practice
gradually generated a theory, which came
Not
authoritatively sanctioned.
to
in
condemned Luther's statement that
burn heretics
to
contra caritatan Spiritils ; Benedict XIV., the
of Popes,
VL
in
is
time to be
go further back, Leo X. is
most tolerant
hardly less explicit in a Brief of 1748, and Pius
At
a Brief of 179 1.
could easily be
shown
far
is
it
true,
is
to
and
their
and purely theological prin-
writings, that the speculative ciple of intolerance
same time
the
by copious references
more universally and emphatically
taught by the early Protestant divines than had ever been All the leading Reformers of the
the case previously.
sixteenth century, without a single exception, are most
emphatic on
and they
this point,
insist
on
it
strictly as
much as for when they had
a religious duty, and for aggressive quite as
Nor
defensive purposes.
did they shrink,
the power, from translating their theory into practice.
This
arose partly no doubt from the Calvinist doctrine, 'which
has always shown an affinity with persecution, partly from
a
literal
and yet
in
application of
Old Testament precedents, partly
great measure from the belief
— that the
Pope
is
heretics simply, but idolaters.
there can be no
of
all
Of
shadow of doubt.
burning Anabaptists
;
the fact at
all
events
Cranmer was zealous
in
and Calvin won the warm approval
the Protestant leaders in
Servctus to the stake.
— by no means extinct
Anti-Christ, and his adherents not
The
Germany when he
sent
gentle Osiandcr wished both
Papists and Anabaptists to be suppressed.
Luther, in spite
TOLERATION AND INDIFFERENTISM. condemned by Leo
of the thesis
149
X., proclaimed the
duty
down " abominations," and he expressly reckoned among them a denial of his dogma of justification by faith no Government could tolerate heresy without of the State to put
;
being responsible for the souls
it
destroyed, and the
must be suppressed as the worst kind of Melancthon
insisted that
new
idolatry.
Mass
Even
opinions should be punished
with death, and highly applauded the burning of Servetus as
"a pious and memorable example
for posterity,"
Bucer
and Zwinglius maintained the same view, and Bullinger boasted that "by the grace of heresy with
God we have always punished
Beza wrote an elaborate
fire."
defence of the same
thesis.
John Knox, as
is
treatise
in
well known,
called toleration
"opening the floodgates of heresy," and
objected to the
Queen being allowed
of the
Mass
" in
said that the
to have " the idol
Nor can
her private chapel.
it
be
fairly
Reformers merely inherited these views from
their Popish ancestors.
For we have seen already that
the latter had usually based their persecutions on grounds of ecclesiastical or ities,
civil policy,
while the Protestant author-
almost without exception, laid down the "principle"
that religious error, as such, deserved the severest punish-
ment.
In the next century the
intolerance
is
laid
down by two
same abstract
principle of
writers so widely differing
from the early Reformers and from each other as Archbishop
Laud and
Milton.
But
it
must
called attention to this important fact
to
pursue the subject
further
here.
requires to be noticed in conclusion.
pleaded
in
defence or
in
;
suffice
there
One
is
to
have
no need
other point
Whatever may be
excuse of intolerance, under given
circumstances, on grounds independent of religious doctrine.
ISO
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
can hardly apply to the
infliction
on the adherents of any particular preserve
of
civil
religion,
disabilities
which do not
uniformity but supremacy, and are shown
experience to be a great political
evil.
instance, to justify the expulsion of the
by
It is easier, for
Moors from Spain,
or the attempted suppression of Christianity in the
Roman
Empire, than the humiliating and unprofitable restrictions
imposed on
Roman
on Protestants has been said duty, as
all
in ;
Catholics in England before 1829, and
Austria before 1859.
To sum up what
so far from intolerance being a religious
the Reformers and several Popes have taught,
the principle of toleration comes to us
commended by
all
the best as well as the earliest traditions of the Christian
Church.
been held
It is
a principle, however, which has frequently
liable
to
exception from ethical, social, and
enough
to observe
making an exception
requires at
pohtical considerations, on which
here that the necessity for all
it
is
events to be in each case distinctly proved.
XVIII.
''BLACK If there
is
AND BLOODY GARDINER." in the proverb, "
any truth
mud, and some
will stick,"
it
cases where the odium theologicum
There are no
charge.
lies
plenty of
comes
in to clench the
that die so hard as
The whole
have a controversial importance. " the B. Reformation,"
Throw
no doubt applies especially to
from whatever side
conspicuous illustration of this
;
but
it
it
lies
that
history of
is
told, is a
only with the
is
English Reformation, and with one distinguished personage
whose name
mixed up
is
diately concerned here.
name
with the call
bloody,"
meant
for
bitesheep."
or,
of
"
in the contest, that
Bonner,
whom
all
it
call
is
familiar shall
coarseness,
him, " that bloody
was something new to
epithet " which Fuller
imme-
are
generations
as Foxe, with characteristic
humour, delights to
But
we
Everybody of course
find the " fixed
and Foxe have succeeded
in attach-
ing to Bonner, like Homer's "rosy-fingered morn," quietly
extended, with hardly a word of explanation or evidence in a
speech of Sir William Harcourt's ten years ago on the
Public Worship Bill— to "the black and bloody Gardiner."
There may be some prima facie ground really
nothing
Bonner"
;
more
but there
is
—
for
speaking
—though
of
" the
it
is
bloody
not even any plausible pretext for
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
152
That he has been
affixing such an epithet to Gardiner.
denounced by historians
Hume, and
like
Mr. Froude, as a persecutor
amount
true
"
our days by
in
enough
with what
;
But to
of reason will appear presently.
such a description as is
is
justify
black and bloody," something more
required than to show that a high
took the part
official
required by his office in the legal punishment of heretics, in
on
an age when the very notion of toleration was scouted
by the Protestant
sides alike, certainly not least
all
That there
leaders.
persecutors
are
the sixteenth
of
century fairly open to the charge of cruelty student
impartial
of
history
Gardiner nor even Bonner only
remember
to
fair
is
doubt
can
true
is
And
among them.
that Gardiner, unlike
no
;
neither
that
some
it
is
of his
contemporaries, did not seek to impose upon others a faith to which he
was himself
indiffisrent, or
Edward, been content to
which he had
for
not, during the six years of Protestant
ascendency under
suffer with patience
and
dignity.
His position was rather a peculiar one, and Mr. Froude,
who has
a keen eye for theological distinctions,
altogether
wrong
canism."
He was
in calling
firmly
him the
"
attached
is
not
inventor of Anglito
those
Catholic
doctrines which continued to form part of the established religion
to the close of
after the breach with
Henry's reign, both before and
Rome, and he
suffered imprisonment
.throughout the reign of his successor rather than abandon
them.
But while he consistently adhered from
to the
whole cycle of
beliefs
fashion to stigmatize under the
which
name
it
bitterness
first
the
to last
modern
of " sacerdotalism
— and that may perhaps help to explain and Mr. Froude's peculiar
is
Sir
W.
against
"
Harcourt's
him
— he
"BLACK AND BLOODY GARDINER." cannot
without
great
a
abuse
Romanizer or Romanist, hardly
Roman
indifiference in itself,
after six years' experience of
may
questionable
seldom or never the
Of the
cutions.
number appears
critical
to
though,
Supremacy
But
substitute.^
was
this
question in the Marian perse-
three hundred or so of victims to be 277
a
Edward's Protestant head-
naturally have thought the Royal
than
worse
a
terms be called
even, strictly speaking, a
The Papal Supremacy he seems
Catholic.
have regarded as a matter of
ship, he
of
153
—put to death
—the precise
for heresy during
her reign, scarcely any suffered for rejecting the Pope's
Their
supremacy. denial
trial
doctrines
of
almost always
about which
turned on
— unlike
the
Cranmer, who
burnt Zwinglians, while he shared their opinions
—neither
Bonner nor Gardiner had ever wavered, most often on the There
Real Presence.
is
no evidence whatever that either
of these prelates was harsh or bloodthirsty in enforcing the law on that matter, and there
contrary
;
Let us
and first
of the last Protestant,
is
much
evidence to the
this is especially true of Gardiner.
take the testimony of an impartial historian
generation,
whose sympathies are
of correcting popular misconceptions of history.
common
assumption, repeated
which a word
He had
strongly
and who had not the means which now
shall
by
be said presently
Sir
W.
Harcourt
— that Gardiner
Henry VI H.
exist
To
the
— on
had a
Royal book De Vera Obedietitia, to which Bonner contributed a preface. But in a sermon at St. Paul's Cross, preached the Sunday after the public reconciliation of the realm by Cardinal Pole, he made a general retractation of the errors he had fallen into under Henry VIII. He preached before Edward VI. against the Papa Supremacy, but in defence of the Real Presence and Sacrifice of the Mass, for which he was sent to prison. 1
Supremacy,
written in the reign of in his
in defence of the
154
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
hand
in
"
the
AND BIOGRAPHY.
Six Bloody Articles," or was their main
James Mackintosh does not even does indeed assert that Gardiner was " at
He
allude.
author, Sir
least in the
beginning" a chief author of the Marian persecution, but only on the wholly inadequate ground abilities,
commanding
allow us to doubt
it;
that
his
great
and high station do not
character,
but he adds that the Chancellor
probably did not intend the persecution to extend beyond the Protestant ringleaders, and that, their resistance,
shed."
he
"
when disappointed by
withdrew from a share
That Gardiner did
in vain
blood-
his best to confine the
execu-
tions for heresy within these limits
we may
similar inference as to Bonner.
secution
perfectly true,
is
at
all
— and
as well as the
it
If there
—
most merciful
this
was
to be per-
them could have
of
neither
that
prevented, had he desired
was obviously the wisest Sir
policy.
James Mackintosh
— what has since been proved Maitland — that many of the prelates are
goes on to say Dr.
and
gather even from Foxe's one-sided narrative a
in detail
by Protestant
writers
to
have
exercised
and perhaps hazardous humanity, and that language was often a cloak the accused.
He
more
for
an
effectual
their violent
effectually screening
observes that of fourteen dioceses they
altogether prevented bloodshed in nine, and reduced
within limits in the remaining five requires
it
to be
bloodless class."
by
recorded
mentioned that
And
;
his diocese
was of the
although he quotes with approval
Fuller's libellous description of
Bonner
not then exposed
— he
its
it
"justice to Gardiner
absurdity
— Dr.
feels
Maitland had
bound
out that Fuller's charge against the Bishop of
burning about one-half the martyrs
.in
the
to point
London
kingdom
of
really
"BLACK AND BLOODY GARDINER."
155
proves nothing, inasmuch as they were sent to the capital
from
all
parts of
many
that
come
England
to be sifted, prove just as
little,
by a large woodcut ology
—
— of Bonner's holding the hand of Thomas " to try
exhausting
all
Tomkins,
his constancy,"
powers of persuasion to induce
his
to recant, simply proves,
to save the prisoner
illustrated
Foxe's Martyr-
in the old editions of
the weaver, over a lighted taper
him
not often the
is
Thus, for instance, the well-known story
case.
add
when they
even assuming their
accuracy to be beyond dispute, and that
after
We may
for the purpose.
of Foxe's most ill-natured stories,
true, his persistent desire
if
from a punishment which
it
was not
As Maitland justly remarks, " Whether it was wisely done, people may dispute but that it was kindly meant no person of common sense can within his discretion to remit.
;
doubt."
And
it
is
worth noting that
about Bonner's cruelty, he
is
in all similar tales
never alleged to have done
these things in order to extort confession of guilt or
names
of accomplices by torture^ but always with a view of in-
ducing convicted
heretics
to
adopt the
means of saving themselves from he for
often,
on Foxe's own showing, kept them
weeks or months, notwithstanding
to his persuasions, in the
hope of
This hardly corresponds elegant couplet This cannibal,
They were
But
it
only available
further punishment. in
And
confinement
their refusal to listen
their eventual submission.
with the language
of
Foxe's
:
hundred martyrs slew, he spared none he knew.
in three years' space, three
his food
;
he loved so blood
;
would be mere waste of time
to follow
the details of his nauseous indictment
:
Foxe through
Maitland's Essays
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
156
may
be consulted for a minute exposure of his wholesale
mendacity.
we
If
turn back from Mackintosh to
Hume, we
shall
him taking the ordinary Protestant view of Gardiner's
find
character,
and implicitly crediting him with the Act of the
Six Articles, but without alleging any evidence whatever for
charge,
this
or
saddling him with
for
graver
the
Marian persecution, while he men-
responsibility of the
After
tions one fact which looks entirely the other way.
Mary's accession, Peter Martyr, anticipating trouble, was anxious to leave the country, but some zealous Catholics
moved
for his
the
commitment
Gardiner not only
to prison.
come over by invitation of Government, but supplied him with the means for his
opposed
this,
urging that he had
journey home.
more
way
explicit
Mr. Froude, as might be expected,
and much more
of dealing with the case
tells
us in his third
Act of Six
is
than
bitter
is
Hume.
highly characteristic.
volume that the
both
His He.
cruel nature of the
was attributed "by sound authority"
Articles
to the influence of Gardiner, but the only authority he gives, besides Foxe's
much
—
Vni.,
is
"Oh
cursed
is
comes
in the sixth
I
Dixon, ii.
who
as
Bill,''
wicked
to
sum up
When, however, he Gardiner's character
opens with
though
gives the letter in
it
full
Henry
Winchester!"
"
He
passed the
were one of the most {Hist.
Church of England,
pp. 159, 160), observes, with obvious justice, that the writer
evidently hitting at the
advisers of the King.
them.
oh
no more.^
volume
his death, the indictment
Six Articles
vol.
he admits not to be worth
bishops!
certainly worth
which
on
— which
a phrase in a letter of Melanchthon's to
King
What
in
hitting the
is
bishops, the supposed
he dared not say of the King he said of
"BLACK AND BLOODY GARDINER."
157
notorious facts of history, instead of resting at best on
mere gratuitous conjecture.
His
other
As
of evidence. State, Mr.
and
to his high abilities
Froude of course
allegations
much
cruelty against Gardiner are based on
the
services to the
finds himself obliged to
man who was
with decent respect of a
of
same kind speak
conspicuously
among the foremost statesmen and ecclesiastics of his age. But when he calls him " vindictive, ruthless, and treacherand "the incarnate expression of the fury of the
ous,"
faction,"
ecclesiastical
he simply describes his character
and career by contraries the dogmatic assertion a
Latin extract
down
— that
and when he winds up with
;
— veiled after
to hell," his authority
interpolating this
new
under the thin disguise of
may
may perhaps be put
Lingard
History
and he
no particular reason
ha-d
in
is
Act of Six
admiring a prelate
for
He
Rome.
mentions Gardiner's being
Articles
that,
—as was also
as there
extant
is
believing the
King himself
states absolutely
that
Gardiner voted for the that there
is
made
it
to be
was
Bill.
for
Cranmer a
is
its
so.
mentions
nearly
similar
good reason
real author.
Cranmer
as
for
Blunt well
as
Lingard emphatically denies
any authentic document against
drawing up the
— but
Bill
Henry's own handwriting, there
charge
prejudiced
one sense a staunch Catholic, was very vacillating
in his allegiance to
in
a
as
generally colourless enough,
on one of the two Committees named
further
be questioned for
the Protestant creed.
aside
his
if
fairly
into
article
witness, yet
who,
death Gardiner "went
his
to
support
the
Gardiner by Reformed writers of
being responsible for the Marian persecution, while the
whole tenor of
his
conduct contradicts
it.
It
was Gardiner,
158
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
who saved
as he points out,
Elizabeth and
not without considerable risk to his
own
Courtenay
reputation with
the Queen, from the penalties of treason to which their
had exposed them
share in Wyatt's rebellion further first
how, when
records
the
"
epithet
and he
;
bloody
"
was
applied to him by Francis Hastings, Parsons indig-
"any good-natured Protestant
nantly replied that lived in
Queen Mary's
time,
and indifference to speak the truth without passion, confess that no one great further off from blood
man
most tender-hearted and mild
who was known
man
contemporary
to
will
government was
in that
and bloodiness, or from cruelty and
revenge, than Bishop Gardiner,
To come down
that
and hath both wit to judge
to be a
in that behalf."
writers, the estimate of
Gardiner's character and conduct given in Dixon's History
of the CJmrch of England
— far the fullest and
most impartial
work on the English Reformation published day
— accords entirely with
The work has not as of Edward VI., but but a purely
in
our
own
that of Lingard and Maitland.
yet advanced beyond the second year the author acquits Gardiner of any
and formal share
official
in
the passing or
enforcement of the Act of Six Articles, and points out, opposition to Foxe,
how
in
his influence as well as Bonner's
was habitually employed to mitigate rather than the flame of persecution.
The testimony
to fan
of Mr. Blunt,
another learned Anglican writer, in his Reformation of the
Chnrch of England,
is
still
more
explicit.
After citing the
savage indictment of Foxe and Fuller, he observes charge against Bishop Gardiner
may
So long
"
as
his
influence
m2,xx'va%Q-^'' 110 perso7i
was
lasted
—
/.
:
"
The
be soon dismissed. e.
till
the Queen's
execnted on the groiind of heresy
"BLACK AND BLOODY GARDINER." after that time
During the year he lived of heretics only,
trial
had
he sat on one
upon a Commission over which he
Lord Chancellor, and here
to preside as
159
it
to his
fell
duty to pronounce formal sentence of excommunication; but
"
in his diocese
no persons
were burnt
And
a year and a half after his death." this solitary trial,
a
way
for heresy until in the case of
he used his utmost endeavours to provide
of escape for Hooper, Rogers, and the rest of the
accused, as he also did his best to procure the pardon of
whom
he had every personal reason for disliking
distrusting,
and who had shown him no mercy or
Cranmer,
and
justice in
Edward's
reign.
by the infamous Poynet into
see under
his
Such was the man described
— a favourite of Cranmer's intruded who
Edward, and
lived
adultery with a butcher's wife of Nottingham
worth putting on record, as an Protestant fable
in
there
in
language
illustration of the traditional
about Gardiner, the
some
endorsed, with
—
slight reserve,
more so as
it
is
by the veracious Foxe,
though contradicted by the testimony alike of Holbein's portrait, of the
Gardiner's
own
that he was a
monumental writings,
man
effigy at
which
" give
of solid learning."
doctor hath a swart colour.
He
Winchester, and of
abundant evidence Poynet says
:
"
This
hath a hanging look,
frowning brown eyes an inch within his head, a nose
hooked
like a buzzard's, nostrils like a horse, ever snuffing
in the wind, a
sparrow mouth, and great paws like the
devil,
talons on his feet like a gripe, two inches longer than the
natural toes, and so tied to with sinews that he cannot
abide to be touched, nor scarce suffer them to touch the stones."
1
As
to this last detail of the " monstrous
making
Poynet elsewhere calls him " the great devil and cut-throat of England, the Papists' God." 1
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
i6o
and misshaped fashion of
his feet
"hath been constantly reported"
enough
self-respect to decline
and
toes,"
Foxe says
it
to him, but retains just
positively to
commit him-
After dismissing Gardiner, Mr. Blunt proceeds to
self
Bonner, who, according to Cowper's familiar couplet, based
on Foxe, " blithe as shepherd at a wake,
Enjoyed the show, and danced about the stake,"
though is
in fact
shown
he was never present at the stake at
his office as ecclesiastical judge,
power or authority stood, than
which he " had no more
to refuse to exercise, as the law then to try the
a judge of assize has to refuse
prisoners brought before
shown that
further
him
at a gaol delivery "
in the discharge of his office
the utmost gentleness and forbearance, so
;
and
Of him, as
on which writers relied, is
much
so indeed,
like
Strype and Burnet have implicitly
a categorical contradiction of the
As "
by the
of Gardiner, the great Foxian tradition,
not only a baseless myth, but a
myth founded on
facts.
regards the Six Articles Act, however, there
word more
to be said.
Lingard naturally enough
a severe and barbarous statute," and so
any modern standard of framed
in
it is
he exhibited
that he was publicly reprimanded for his leniency
Crown.
It
all.
he also did no more than discharge
at length that
toleration.
it
a
is
calls
was, judged
it
by
But the Act was
a severe and barbarous age, and the offences
against which
it
was
nature that would not
in fact
mainly directed were of a
now be
tolerated in
Subsequent events show that
any
civilised
it
was intended
to frighten people rather than to hurt them,
and was never
society.
1
Blunt's RefonnatioH, vol.
ii.
pp. 229 sqq., 282 sgq., pp. 124 sq.
"BLACK AND BLOODY GARDINER." meant
to be executed according to the letter.
more
several of the
made
list,
which
eight years
not likely to be defective, only twenty-
death under the Act during the
suffered
it
was
"
;
may sound
It
" sort of " ribalds
were
but when
Paul's
in
we
find
or
",
time
punished
for
depraving the Sacra-
the
that
collecting a multitude of people
"
for the
strange to our ears
persons being arraigned and
hear of
reading the Bible
ment"
But the
chiefly put in use
effectually suppressed.
to
home
stayed at
the outside, according to
continued in force.
it
whom
against
is
who
those
At
more quiet and peaceable. Foxe's
caused
It
violent partisans of the Reformation to
quit the country, and
eight persons
i6i
first
charge meant
and making a tumult
in
the Cathedral, while the second includes such practises as
maintaining boys to sing songs against the Sacrament of the Altar in public, and
interrupting the solemnities of
Divine service with studied mockery of what was it
remembered, the
of the nation,
religious belief of the
we can hardly wonder
should have thought
it
Nor
proof that the Bishops carried out the Act
manner, but the reverse. place under tions,
it,
Of all the
Dixon observes
not clerical
;
:
"
is
there any
in
a violent
prosecutions that took
These were lay prosecu-
they were neither instigated by the clergy
nor in the main conducted by them." for instance,
On
one occasion,
when two hundred persons had been presented
to Gardiner for tumultuous proceedings of this kind, he " content that this
as
one should be bound
easy bail they were
was said
any hand
be
Government
that the
time to interfere.
still,
immense majority
before, in
all
for another,"
discharged.
There
is,
was
and on
however,
no reason to believe that Gardiner had
originating the
Act, and
of the
first
four
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
162
persons condemned to death under
begged before in
off
his.
And
by him.
provisions one was
its
his dealings with those
Mary's reign were quite of a piece with
to Winchester," as
Foxe expresses
and grossly insulted him course,
if
this
who "gave
although, like Lawrence Saunders,
it,
to his face.
they often publicly It
would be easy of
be placed on writers
show what sort of
said to
conduct,
a privy nip
space permitted, to go more fully into
enough has now been
brought
for sedition or heresy
Court as Lord Chancellor
detail,
but
reliance can
and Foxe, or even on
like Fuller
Strype and Burnet, who, like some later writers, are their servile copyists
in describing the
bishops of the Marian
period generally as a whole forest of wild beasts raging
among
-a
flock of defenceless sheep,
cular as an ogre
whose fury no
escape.
language about
is
now
is
a
If their
held up to odium as
trifle
less
"
"
in parti-
wily Winchester,"
who
black and bloody Gardiner,"
grotesquely virulent,
more consonant with the
and Bonner
sex, quality, or age could
it
is
truth of history.
still
not one whit
XIX.
ICONOCLASM.
The
gram announcing in
May
made on most
impression
first
promptitude
sufficient
in
mastering
were the reproaches levelled at the Philistine
bitter
brutality of in 1875
Red Republicanism, and was
it
the vacant
site of
for the
next four years,
restored, English visitors took
parable about the curse of
mob
what had been
up
Nor can
it
for sixty years
love
of
destruction
destruction
of
for
anything
in
the
the
column
men
in the
of
Paris
sake,
and
be con-
a passion strongly
Place
;
"
and we may well believe
gazed on the downfall of the
Vendome
with
of coarse satisfaction which inspired as
is
may
manly bosoms of those who delight
to call themselves " the People
that
own
its
that
sidered a badge of superior authority,
developed
one of capital.
be said that such reproaches were unreason-
The
especially
their
they turned from
rule, as
the most conspicuous ornaments of the French
able.
Many
wanton Vandalism.
Paris to anticipate this act of
till
Vendome column,
was one of regret that the Versailles Govern-
1871,
ment had not shown and
readers of the tele-
the destruction of the
much "
the
the
men
same of
feeling
London
",
they witnessed or helped to effect some few years
before
the
smashing of the Hyde Park
railings.
Only
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
i64
their
satisfaction
would be so
more
far
intense, as the
column was not only a symbol of sovereignty, but a very beautiful
and costly work of
Most of us
art.
are not dis-
posed to think very highly of the culture of the Commune, notwithstanding Mr. Bridges' favourable estimate of
compared with the the indignant
results of
censors of
an Oxford education
it
;
as
and
the iconoclastic tendencies of
Republicanism might point their moral by reminding us that the Parisian democrats of to-day are but treading in the footsteps of their
ancestors in the
destroyed the statue of Louis afterwards selected by Napoleon
commemorate
one of outward form.
I.
Nor
his victories.
first
Revolution,
XIV. on for the
is
monument
virtue,
and history has a heavy
indictment to bring against the principles and
But that
administration.
greatest rulers
who
to
the analogy merely
Neither Louis XIV. nor Napoleon
was a model of exalted
their
who
the very spot
policy of.
two of the
they were
ever swayed the destinies of France,
and that they raised her to a height of material splendour unequalled at any other periods of her history, question.
Their rule
an immoral despotism to treat with
whose
may
faults represented
respect the
and
No
hke the
The
Commune
of despots
to the realisation of
its
ideal
sans culottes of the '89 Revolu-
of 1871, were otherwise minded.
sense of historic continuity or aesthetic grace could
avail to stay their
hand
in defacing the beautiful records
of a magnificent but monarchical past. all
memory
flattered the national character,
and who contributed so much
tion,
beyond
but Frenchmen might be expected
;
some decent
of national greatness.
is
not unfairly be characterized as
They
the hard words that are said of them.
quite deserve
But
it
would be
ICONOCLASM. a mistake to regard iconoclasm as a lican excess.
mere incident of repub-
one of those natural
It is
good, partly
165
instincts, partly-
which have played an important part
evil,
in the history of the world.
We
are reminded of the passion of destruction for
own sake among
the uneducated
Darwin would
us that
tell
a
it is
relic
of that earlier stage
when we were gradually
of development
way
fighting our
humanity by the process of natural
to full
its
Perhaps Mr.
masses.
selection,
and
with the aid of those destructive organs which have gradusince the struggle for existence ceased.
ally disappeared
At
all
events
it is
smashing a toy boor
is
a
The
fact.
very
much
smashing a work of
in
pleasure
felt
by
akin to the pleasure
Probably
art.
in
a baby in felt
by a
both cases
it
consists partly in a sort of rude sense of power, or " conscious-
ness of the ego" which finds manfiiJilt sick of the
its
German
intellectual expression in the
student
who
is
breaking loose
same
sort
of feeling that leads a savage to value himself on
the
from the trammels of hereditary
It is the
belief.
men he has killed in battle. To make is of course a much higher test of power than to unmake, but it is also much more difficult, and children and savages number
of
naturally catch
at
that
exercise
of independent
which comes readiest to their hand. little
or no education remain in
children
all
for the time is
from
a story in the
who surrounded where
in the
far to
respects
have
grown-up
account for the
— mischief of a mob who are set free
all restraints life
many
This goes
their lives.
often quite purposeless
action
And men who
of custom or police.
There
of John Vv^esley of a lawless rabble
the house where he was staying, some-
North of England, and spent half the night
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
i66
him about from one place
carrying
in
more
occasional threats of ducking or
then took him
home
spite against him,
them.
It
and
Yet they had no particular
and cheered
lustily
when he addressed
was simply a stupid and brutal
local magistrates
frolic,
which the
were too orthodox or too inert to interfere
The midnight
with.
again.
to another, with
serious outrage,
revellers
who destroyed
the
Hermes
busts at Athens were probably of a very different class, but
probably also
they were drunk
;
and the characteristic
made him overgrown schoolboy than a man of " insolence "
of Alcibiades
But
culture.
of mischief,
act
more
like
genius and
an
high
iconoclasm was not the mere instinct
his
still less
the boorish pleasure in defacing
what
one cannot appreciate.
The Hermes
popular
have been exceedingly ugly, but
idols, are said to
they were the object of profound veneration, and to deface
keenest possible
insults
if
them was on
the
wanton destruction decency, which,
if
as because
suffered to
it
most
like
not very intelligent to inflict
national
the sense of power, not so
gratified
busts,
one of the
religion.
much by an
It
act of
was an outrage on public
go unpunished, would show
that the perpetrators could hold themselves superior to the
laws by which the rest of their countrymen were bound.
And
thus
it
was a more
refined, but not
one whit a nobler,
form of iconoclasm than the vulgar pleasure of a Parisian
mob mob
in
pulling
at the
down Imperial
Reformation
statues, or of a Protestant
in tossing elaborate missals
and
vestments into a bonfire, and dancing to the music of an ecclesiastical chant It
must
instinct
is
round the burning
not, however,
pile.
be supposed that the iconoclastic
never an}'thing more than the aimless passion
ICONOCLASM. for destroying, with a consciousness
of the exercise of power in the act.
such a sentiment
is
more or
less realised
In coarser natures
almost sure to be present, even when
The
does not predominate.
it
167
who breaks with
reformer
axes and hammers the carved work which his ancestors
had reverently laboured
at,
is
apt to be quite as
much
by love of mischief as by hatred of idolatry but the latter motive has dominated some of the strongest, if not the largest, minds among those which have shaped influenced
Iconoclasm, when
rises
above
mere wanton destructiveness, expresses abhorrence
either
the course of history.
for the thing destroyed or for the ideas
it
it
is
supposed or
The distinction is necessary to be The column in the Place Vendome was commemorate Napoleon's German victories
intended to convey.
borne
in
mind.
designed to
but the more rational agents perpetrated there in
May
hatred, not of French
Puritan
again, the
images of the assail
as
regards
the
objectionable
the piece of Vandalism their
So
victory, but of Imperialism.
zealots,
who smashed
saints, did not,
sacred
the
in
1871 meant to signalize
personages
crucifix
— but
crucifixes
and
we must presume, wish represented
— at
all
to
events
what they considered an
method of honouring them.
But iconoclasm
implies feelings and tends to produce results very
much
beyond what the iconoclasts themselves are thinking of. This may be illustrated by two comments which have been made, from very opposite points of view, on the great
iconoclastic
centuries,
pictures
controversy of the eighth and
which ended
— we
point of this
in
ninth
the use of images, as distinct from
need not trouble ourselves here with the
somewhat
fanciful contrast
— being
proscribed
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
i68
the Eastern Churchy and authoritatively sanctioned in
in
the West.
The
bitterness of feehng
which
evoked may-
it
be judged from the opprobrious sobriquet of Copronymus,
bestowed on the Greek Emperor who had made himself
most notorious as a leader of the iconoclast party.
why
should the question between images and
Yet
" icons," as
the Greeks called their pictures, so violently embitter those
who had no disagreement
about what either
in their belief
symbol equally represented
.''
It
was hinted
and has often been said since by Latin
at the time,
writers, that the
doctrine of the Incarnation was at stake, and dislike to
that
the
images of Christ was prompted by a repulsion of
the subtle Greek intellect from the anthropomorphic side
There
of Christianity. criticism,
intention
is
certainly
some
force
in
the
but the Easterns as certainly had no conscious of disparaging the
and the
Incarnation,
first
decree against images was immediately prompted by the
reproaches of the
Mahometans
Christian Church.
Dean
Stanley,
On
against the idolatry of the
the other hand,
Greek Church rejecting
in
influences of Christian art
And
it
is
iconoclastic controversy
of
all
religious
writers, like
her prohibition of images the
and
civilisation,
and have con-
Rome
accepting the
trasted her conduct with that of
Renaissance.
modern
have spoken, not without reason, of the
and
in
quite true that the close of the
marks the period of the decadence
intellectual
energy
in
the East.
We
need not adopt Mr. Froude's extreme, not to say extravagant, view that the Eastern Christians stood on an
surably lower level than their
Mahometan
immea-
assailants,
but
there can be no doubt that Eastern Christianity, for the last
thousand years, has presented very much the appear-
ICONOCLASM. ance of a
petrifaction of
sterile
would be absurd
169
former
its
Yet
self.
it
Emperors
to suppose that the iconoclastic
and Synods of the eighth century had any conscious intention of repudiating art, and the civilising influences
which
But the iconoclastic
indicates or effects.
it
though
it
has
instinct,
nobler side, and has not unfrequcntly
its
been the vehicle of righteous indignation against falsehood and oppression, is in itself essentially narrow and debasing. It
belongs to the lower, not the higher part of our nature,
and
inclines us directly not so
refuse to recognise
The at
what
much
to reject the evil as to
good.
is
was
religious narrowness of iconoclasm
Reformation
the
in
the
illustrated
demolition of
reckless
all
outward adjuncts of devotion, because some of them had been perverted to narrowness
is
idle or superstitious uses.
Its political
not the exclusive badge of any one party,
though, for reasons already referred
to,
it
has a natural
affinity
with the violence of democratic agitators.
leon
whose statue was demolished
I.,
almost puerile littleness visible
in
stringent orders
XIV. had indeed
fallen already,
to obliterate the flcurs de
lis,
found, were hardly less absurd than the attempt to
from French literature things, as
but
it is
spirit
18
forget
Brumaire.
The
but his
wherever
expunge
mention of the former state of
though he really thought
make Frenchmen
before the
all
an
anxiety to efface every
his
memorial of the ancient monarchy of France.
statue of Louis
to
Napo-
in Paris, displayed
that
This
is
it
would be possible
they had any history
no doubt an extreme,
also a highly characteristic, instance of the genuine
of iconoclasm.
As
there can be no image worship
without images, so there can be no iconoclasm without
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
I70
images to break.
It is essentially
has hitherto been held
AND BIOGRAPHY. a protest against what
honour, and
in
radical vice
its
because
the resolve to break with the past,
in
is
the past
there have been errors and abuses, as though forsooth the
present or the future were at
from them.
tribute to the builders, their
life
all
Far truer and nobler
memory
whose and
faith
be
likely to
of those great mediseval church
earth,
:
"
Of them, and
one reward, one evidence,
us in those grey heaps of deep-wrought stone.
left to
free
Mr. Ruskin's eloquent
he does not share
upon the
toil
more
is
is
They
have taken with them to the grave their powers, their honours, and their errors
No
adoration."
;
but they have
doubt there are some
to be utterly abolished, but
it is
idols
left
us their
which deserve
not often that the outward
symbol even of a rejected creed or a justly dispossessed sovereignty has no historic or artistic interest which gives it
a claim to
think
it
live.
The most ardent
Christian would hardly
a discredit to the Popes that they have done their
best to preserve the relics of
Pagan and Imperial Rome,
although the Paganism had become
and heartless
superstition,
To make
of tyranny and corruption. past
is
in its
dotage a coarse
and the Empire a gigantic system a clean sweep of the
an unhopeful augury for the future.
nations as of individuals
is
made up
experiences, and France can as traditions of the
little
The
life
of
of their accumulated divest herself of the
monarchy or of the Empire
as
England
can ignore the elements of national life which the Stuart We reigns or the Commonwealth have bequeathed to her. should have more faith in the stability of some future
Government
in
France,
if
she had shown less eagerness in
effacing all traces of those which are passed away.
XX. CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON THE RIGHT OF REBELLION, Ix a Papal Encyclical, issued about
years ago,
five
occurred a passage which was criticized at the time in
some quarters
as teaching that
bad, is not to be resisted, except
that which
God
is
is
to be
rebellion against
it
"
a government, Jioivever
require from
God, but that
obeyed rather than man."
that this theory, unless very freely
its
subjects
in that case
was observed
It
interpreted, "
would
hardly cover the ground of most Catholic rebellions."
But
the words in the' original Latin are patient, not to say suggestive, of a different construction. as
follows
ultra
:
—" Si
modum
The passage runs
tamen quandoque contingat temere
Catholicae Ecclesiae doctrina in eos insurgere/r^/r/c
non
sinit,
proprio Marte," especially
added
for this prohibition,
seditious actions
the general
capiat.''
when coupled with seems to point
The phrase the reason
to violent
and
on the part of individuals, who have not
body
of the nation at their back.
Pope does not profess of his
Marte
ne ordinis tranquillitas magis magisque turbetur,
neve societas viajus exinde dctrinientuui "
et
publicam a principibus potestatem exerceri,
own, but
Catholic Church,"
to be laying
And
down any new
as the
doctrine
only recording " the teaching of it
may
the
be worth while to inquire what
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
172
that teaching
is,
as a matter of history, which
a question of considerable interest.
any formal dogma or mediaeval
Church
doctrine,"
if
definition
on
the
There
is
is
in itself
not indeed
either of the ancient or
subject,
and
" Catholic
the
any, must therefore be gathered
there be
from the general Christian tradition and the teaching of
And
accredited divines.
if
we go back
to the Fathers,
it
cannot be denied that the most stringent interpretation of the
language would be supported and even
Pope's
demanded by
the almost
unanimous tenor of
their teach-
ing on the absolute duty of submission.
The very few
apparent exceptions occasionally quoted
only serve to
prove the Cyril
St.
rule, as, e.g.,
inveigh
when
against
St.
the
Gregory Nazianzen and
memory
of
the
Julian
Apostate, after his death, and St. Hilary denounces the
Arian Emperor Constantius as a precursor of Antichrist
and the
like,
when he may be supposed
early Fathers to
seem
to
have taken
obey the powers that be
in
to have already
As
a rule, the
St. Paul's
admonition
been virtually deposed for his heresy.
its
most rigorous
sense,
and would admit no right of rebellion against a Nero or
many of them regarded De Maistre stands almost
a Caligula, though Nero was by as
the personal
alone view.
Antichrist.
among modern
He
declares
Catholic writers in maintaining this it
to
be a
maxim
of the
religion " that against our legitimate Sovereign,
Catholic
though he
be a Nero, we have no other right than respectfully to
him the
truth,
and
let
him cut
That the maintenance of
off our
this principle,
only taught but consistently acted ^
heads for doing
Correspondance Diploni.,
tell
so."
^
which was not
upon by the early II. 13?,
CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON RIGHT OF REBELLION. Christians throughout the ages of persecution by,
modern writer expresses
a
as
when the
and barbarism were engaged salutary in
its results,
may
in
rival
— and where-
it,
they constituted
in
an age of turbu-
themselves the champions of legality lence and disorder,
forces of civilisation
an internecine
strife
be readily admitted.
It
have introduced fresh and disastrous complications Christians,
173
—was
would if
the
when they became strong enough, had assumed
the position of insurgents against the persecuting Empire.
They
acted on a true and generous instinct, but
their
theory was certainly an excessive one, and this became
when
manifest stances
in
it
was reproduced under altered circumEnglish
the
Church
of the
sixteenth
and
seventeenth centuries, where the doctrine which has been ascribed,
on very
insufficient grounds, to
persistently inculcated in all
We
Leo XIII. was
its fulness.
need not endorse the characteristic maledictions of
Macaulay against the Church he so
little
"continued to be for one hundred and servile
for a
"
moment
was touched, forgot taught."
which
years the
handmaid of monarchy, the steady enemy of
public liberty," and
and but
loved,
fifty
once, and but once — a moment, —when her own dignity and property for
to practise the submission she
had
But he has not misrepresented what may be
called the consensus of the great Anglican divines on the
duty of passive obedience.
Their teaching
with unmistakable emphasis and precision ised Homilies
VI., in
was enlarged
summed up the author-
on Obedience and on Wilful Rebellion, form-
ing part of the First Book, published
Edward
is
in
in
1547, but the
Homily
by Cranmer under against Rebellion
1573 under Elizabeth.
We
are
there
174
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
taught that "eternal damnation
is
tent rebels in hell, with Satan, the
while "heaven hell the prison
any
impeni-
the place of good obedient subjects, and
is
the badness of the government
their
make
paramount obligation of obedience,
difference in the
for " a rebel is
all
founder of rebellion,"
and dungeon of rebels against God and
Nor does
prince."
prepared for
first
worse than the worst prince, and rebellion
worse than the worst government of the worst prince hath
Bad government
hitherto been."
"
sin.
God
indeed to be accepted
is
made an
as a righteous punishment, not
occasion of fresh
placeth as well evil princes as good," and
it
follows that " for subjects to deserve through their sins to
have an
evil prince,
double and treble
And
them."
and then
evil
to rebel against him,
by provoking God more
were
to plague
example of the Jews submitting
the
Nebuchadnezzar, and
St.
evidence of this view.
Jeremy Taylor,
Paul
Nero, are cited
to
in the chief
to in
Angli-
can work on Moral Theology, the Ductor Dubitantiiwi^ lays
down
set
forth
the in
same
doctrine, declaring
Scripture
it
to be so plainly
hardly to need
as
the
comment
supplied in the teaching and practice of the Church, which is
however equally unmistakable.
Hooker, whose moral
and philosophical teachings are much more shaped on scholastic than patristic models,
acknowledge
though he does not always
his obligations, takes a different line,
stands almost alone.
And
even he, though he lays
principles very like those of Suarez will
be said presently
clusion.
He
to
down
something
draw the natural con-
considers the royal power to be derived from
the people, and
comes
—hesitates
— of whom
but he
to inquire
subject to the law
whether
"
the
;
body
and yet when he politic
"
may
with-
CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON RIGHT OF REBELLION. draw the authority
has delegated, when
it
175
misused, he
it is
only ventures to reply that
" it
supreme governors
such cases oppose themselves
and be
stiff in
detriment the
;
will not in
must be presumed that
detaining that the use whereof
but surely without their consent
body should be
by any
able
fresh
means
saving when dominion doth escheat."^ There
with public
is
how
see not
I
to help is
itself,
no need to
follow the course of this absolutist teaching in secular and
even sceptical English writers of later date, like Barclay, Filmer, Hobbes, Bolingbroke,
question, as
the
Hume, and
others, as
we
are
concerned with the theological aspect of the
present
at
it
has in successive ages presented
We
mind of the Church.
itself to
have seen that the great
Anglican divines reproduced on
this
matter the stringent
teaching of the Fathers, without making any allowance for the altered social and political conditions of their
But they
own
day.
certainly did not inherit that teaching
by un-
earliest ages to their
own, as
broken succession from the Taylor's language would doctrine of the Church
is
imply,
when he says
" without
any
that
the
variety, dissent, or
interruption, universally agreed upon, universally practised
and taught, will,
that, let the
we must
Two
suffer
distinct
it
and
powers set over us be what they
and never right ourselves."
in
some sense opposite tendencies
of
mediaeval thought conspired to induce a gradual modifica-
On
tion of the patristic doctrine of passive obedience.
one hand, the growth of the Papal power, with ascending claim of supreme jurisdiction over
governments, introduced a new sion.
In
its
all
the
steadily
temporal
element into the discus-
deposing tyrannical and heretical sovereigns, 1
Eccl. Pol., VIII.
ii.
10.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
176
who, unlike the Pagan Emperors of a former day, had
become by baptism her own children and Church professed
and often did
to act,
subjects, the
act, as
the organ
and executor of the moral sense of the Christian community, and thus the idea was at once suggested, under
whatever limitations and control, of the nation having rights as against
On
rulers.
its
the other hand, the rise
marked a great upheaval of
of the scholastic philosophy
thought, struggling to emancipate itself from the fetters of
a mere dead traditionalism.
has been called, and
It
sense not unjustly, a rationalistic movement, for
it
in
one
aimed
at bringing all questions within the sphere of its cognisance
under the domain of reason, though
it
accepted as ultimate
premisses and starting points of inquiry revealed as well as
scientific
truths
assumed
be certainly and
to
finally
Archbishop Trench speaks of the Schoolmen as
fixed.
seeking "to inaugurate a supernatural rationalism in the
Thomas Aquinas,
Church."
the
greatest
of them, was
probably influenced by both religious and rational considerations
when he argued
secular princes requirit, ruler.
and
It
is
is
that the duty of obedience to
only obligatory
therefore forfeited
m
quantum ordo justitics
by an unjust or usurping
was the general teaching of the Schoolmen that
the power of Kings
from God, and
is
derived mediately, not immediately,
directly
doctrine was reasserted
from
and
the
people.
developed
And
this
by Bellarmine,
Suarez, and other great Jesuit theologians of the Reformation period, mainly of course, but sively,
in
governments, and
in
by no means exclu-
Papal supremacy over
civil
opposition to Protestant princes.
The
the interests
of
Galilean divines naturally took a different
line,
harmoniz-
CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON RIGHT OF REBELLION. much more
ing
177
closely with that of the Caroline school in
England, and Bossuet quietly observes that the Schoolmen,
who
some
for
unanimous festly
in
centuries
after
Thomas were
St.
nearly
maintaining the view he opposes, are mani-
The works both
mistaken.
Bellarmine
of
and
Suarez were publicly burnt by order of the Parliament of
The work
Paris.
of Suarez
—which
England
— distinctly
by the way,
was,
name
written in reply to one bearing the
of James
of
I.
subordinates the rights of the sove-
reign to those of the nation, even independently of the interposition of the Pope, or the lapse of the sovereign into
heresy, which ipso facto annulled his right to the throne,
though
in
that case
was better
it
await a definitive
to
sentence of deprivation from the Pope
nor does he shrink
;
from maintaining, as indeed Aquinas had done before him, that in extreme cases the sovereign
may
be put to death.
But the most remarkable work on the subject
by
the Spanish Jesuit Mariana
— who
was
at once
is
that
one of
the ablest and the most honest and independent writers
of his order
De Rege
et
Regis Institutione, which elabor-
ately vindicates the doctrine of tyrannicide, and pronounces a warni,eulogium on those practise to the
it,
who have had
young Dominican Clement, "the
France,"
who
killed
Henry
originally
no right to
by governing on interests of his
them.
Of
was only
selfish
And
III.
explained that a tyrant does not
had
the courage to
from Harmodius and Aristogeiton and Brutus eternal glory of is
it
mean only
carefully
a ruler
his throne, but a sovereign
principles,
instead
who who
of for the
people, has forfeited his right to govern
course this
extreme remedy of assassination
to be resorted to in
extreme
cases,
and when
N
all
178
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. methods of putting down the tyrant had
constitutional failed
or
had been rendered
The same
Mariana
but
unavailable,
evidently supposes such cases not to be so very
uncommon. by other
doctrine of tyrannicide was defended
Jesuit writers, though
it
had been expressly condemned by
a decree of the Council of Constance, occasioned by Jean Petit's
advocacy of
rejects altogether,
while Suarez,
writers of the
the
This decree Mariana
Paris.
at
who admits
applying to a
principle,
it
confirmed by the Pope,
as not being its
legitimate
authority, explains
it
as only
Protestant
Reformation period advocated the same
which was acted upon
Duke
Many
sovereign.
of Guise
in the assassination of
and of 'Cardinal
But
Beaton.
its
systematic elaboration and defence was the special work of the Jesuits.
It
that the Church of
doctrine
of
would of course be most untrue
Rome
tyrannicide,
is
in
to say
any way committed
though canonized
to the
and
Saints
Popes, like St. Pius V. and St. Charles Borromeo, as well as Protestants like
Buchanan and unbelievers
have deliberately maintained
But
it.
it
like Sarpi,
would be equally
untrue to say that the duty of passive obedience, as taught
by the Caroline
divines,
intelligible sense of the
is
a
"
word.
Catholic doctrine
was an
It
generally asserted and acted upon
"
in
by the early
Christians,
but never thrown into a formal or dogmatic shape
when questions
of this kind
came
any
ethical principle
;
and
to be handled as matters
of philosophical discussion, which was not the case in the early ages,
repudiated. insists
it
was
De
at
once challenged and very generally
Maistre has already been referred
that the absolute despotism,
infallibility,
of the civil ruler
is
and
in
fact
to.
He
virtual
the proper corollary of the
CHRISTIAN TEACHING ON RIGHT OF REBELLION.
179
absolute infallibility of the Pope, and that both are alike essential for the preservation State.^
In
practice,
Church and
respectively of
both Catholics and
Protestants
in
periods of fierce religious conflict have been too apt to
bend
their theories into conformity with
the
immediate
exigencies and interests of their respective causes close
similarity
theories of
may
be
traced
between
the
;
but a
abstract
Ultramontane and Puritan divines as to the
proper method of dealing with
John
sovereigns.
" heretical "
Knox's First Blast
or of;
"
idolatrous
the
"
Trumpet
against the monstrous Regimen of lVome7i, issued at Geneva
Queen Mary's
in
reign,
is
an example
in
point.
But,
putting aside the extreme theory of tyrannicide, which
condemned,
to say the least,
is
by the verdict of enlightened
experience, the doctrine of Mariana, that nations have an
ultimate right of resisting an unjust ruler, whether his original
title
be legitimate or
formally or practically rejected
persons in our thinking that the
common
not, has never
by
been either
the Church, and most
own day would probably agree with him
it
is
supported by
"
in
the voice of nature and
sense of mankind."
" II
ne peut y avoir de societd liumaine sans gouvernement, ni de gouvernement sans souverainete, ni de sotiverainete sans infaillibilite et ce dernier privilege est si absolument ndcessaire qu'on est forcd de supposer 1' infaillibilite mhne dans les souverainetes temporelles {on elle n'est pas) sans peine de voir I'association se dissoudre. L' Eg Use ne demande rien de plus qne les atitres soiiveraineth."' Du Pape, p. 147. Lamennais at the time expressed his full agreement with this view. ^
—
N
2
XXL DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS.
The
Prussian
surprise
royal
rescript
which took Europe
by-
two years ago, whatever may be thought of
it
from a constitutional or practical point of view, did not profess to claim for the Prussian dynasty an indefeasible
hereditary right to the throne.
forward go
and
far, if at all,
Nor do
the claims
to a large extent successfully enforced
in this
country
less
it
put
beyond those habitually asserted
than a century ago.
by George
The
III.
doctrine of
the Divine right of kings, satirized by Pope, and in our
own day by Macaulay,
as " the right Divine of kings to
govern wrong," meant a good deal more.
It is rightly
called a "doctrine," for the theory of royal prerogative
once maintained
in this
country by a powerful school both
of jurists and divines was for about a century regarded
and taught almost as a thirteenth Creed.
It will
article of the Apostles'
perhaps surprise some readers, who
may
have been accustomed to laugh at the belief as an exploded mediaeval superstition, to be told that originated
at the
close
of the
the seventeenth century, and was in fact coeval in
and
its
it
only
sixteenth or opening of its
decay with the succession of the Stuart
England, including the reign of Queen Anne,
if
origin line in
we choose
DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS. to treat the Sacheverell affair as a kind
of
posthumous
survival or recrudescence of the principle virtually expelled
with James
No
II.
both
doubt,
England and
in
Christendom generally, there had been
in
days a
earlier
in
reverent appreciation of the Divinity which doth hedge
But the highest expression and representa-
about a king.
tion of monarchical
supremacy
Europe throughout the
in
Roman
middle ages was " the Holy
Empire," so called, as
Mr. Bryce points out, as being nothing
less
Church or Christian society organized on under a form Divinely appointed.
avowedly not hereditary but
his
supreme
secular side
Yet the Empire was nor was the elected
elective,
Emperor authorised by custom
than the visible its
or public opinion to assume
he had received coronation at
title till
from the hands of the Pope.
Divine right indeed,
Rome if
the
powers that be are ordained of God, every legitimate
Government, whether monarchical or possess, or
it
far the phrase, at least in the
innocuous truism.
But what
known
under
to
history
mouth
must
of a theist,
name
that
in
one sense
at all
;
and so
is
a mere
meant by the doctrine
is
hereditary right to the succession
And
not,
would have no right to exist
that in this sense the doctrine
is
an indefeasible
by Divine ordinance. was as
little
known
England as elsewhere before the reign of James matter of history. pire,
was
though the at first
fact
England,
may
like the
sovereigns did not succeed
is
Holy Roman Em-
Our Saxon and Norman
by simple
though a high regard was paid
lineal descent,
in
not be so readily acknowledged,
an elective monarchy.
fortes creantiir fortibiis et
I.
(5(9;/w
—
right of inheritance,
partly perhaps on the
principle
— to
the claim of
and thus Henry IV. sought to justify
his
i82
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
usurpation by showing that he had right than Richard
modern James
better hereditary
a
which was not the
case.
that "the
King never
There was sometimes a
was
dies,"
as yet
title
till
sacred unction of Coronation.
Queen Mary
of the anxiety
unknown.
is
the due consecration of the
;
Roman Emperor,
the
Sovereign, like
venture to assume his
it
it
and the did
not
had been sealed by the
That
perhaps one reason
is
said to have betrayed about
oil to
be used at her corona-
Saxon kings were formally
tion.
the
long interregnum, nor was
always closed by the election of the next of kin elected
Still
which we have inherited from the days of
rule,
I.,
II.,
by the Witan,
elected
and the very form of Coronation, both
in
Saxon and
Norman times, included an appeal to popular acceptance. Some of our kings, like Henry VIII. afterwards, assumed the right of bequeathing the crown by
will,
and the Con-
queror based his claims on the will of Edward the Confessor. •Several of them, including five out of the eight Henrys,
reigned in defiance of the
was chosen
John because
his
Lancaster its
in his veins,
security
eccentricities,
of descent.
nephew Arthur was
who had
VIII. himself,
but
strict rule
Stephen
order to exclude a female sovereign, and
in
the blood
still
little
respect did
hereditary principle that he had
his
matrimonial
he show for the
an Act of Parliament
passed to enable him to bequeath the throne by
he actually made a
will,
an Act of Elizabeth's the very family
Henry
could put in an undisputed claim,
was again imperilled by
and so
a boy.
both of York and
will,
afterwards confirmed afresh
reign,
and
by
excluding from the succession
who immediately succeeded
her.
Edward
VI. was induced by Cranmcr, without any Parliamentary
DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS. authority, to
Mary and for
it
make
183
a will excluding his sister Mary.
Both
Elizabeth reigned only by Parliamentary right,
was impossible that both of them could be
and the highest authority both to be
in
legitimate,
the realm had pronounced
Elizabeth went further than
illegitimate.
Henry, and got an Act of Parliament passed making
it
high treason to dispute her right to leave the crown by
Yet within a few hours of her death, James
will.
I.,
who
was doubly excluded by law from the succession, but was
King amid the The nation had though by instinct, and
the heir by lineal descent, was proclaimed universal
acclamations of the people.
settled the
when
matter for
the line of
itself as
Henry VHI. had
lineal representative of
principle of Divine right
and with James H.
it
With James
the
was banished. of course,
about, and what endeavours were
how
made
this
was brought
after the fact to
But meanwhile
bring theory and practice into accord.
important to emphasize the fact that James
our English Sovereigns, did reign right, if
I.
mounted the throne of England,
It is a further question,
is
back on the
failed, fell
Henry VH.
by
he reigned by any right at
virtue
all.
He
I., first
it
of
of Divine
not only
had no Parliamentary claim, but he was expressly excluded
by
the will of one Sovereign
sanction,
made under Parliamentary
and endorsed by a second Act of Parliament
passed in another reign.
It is
true, indeed, that
on his
accession Parliament hastened to acknowledge him, but in
the very act of doing so
it
virtually admitted his right to
be not Parliamentary, but Divine. his
reign declared
Elizabeth, late
" that
The
first
Act passed
in
immediately on the decease of
Queen of England, the imperial Crown of
i84
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
the realm of England, and of
and
all
the kingdoms, dominions,
rights belonging to the same, did, by inJicrcnt birtJiriglit
and lawful and
iindoubted succession, descend and
your Most Excellent Majesty, as being lawfully next
and
sole heir of the blood
This was almost to assert
realm."
come
to
and
lineally, justly,
royal of this
totideni
the
verbis
unknown
principle of hereditary Divine right, hitherto
to
English law or history, and, so far as the immediate succession of the next heir to the throne on the death of his
predecessor, without waiting for any formal ratification of
Parliament or for coronation,
is
But how came
it
ever since.
peacefully recognised
prepared for
to be
it
has held good
universally and
so
doubt the way had
been
by the troubles about the succession
it
the death of
No
}
concerned,
Henry VIII. and the pressure
since
of dangers
from opposite quarters to which the country was believed to be exposed.
Elizabeth, on whatever basis her rights
reposed, clung tenaciously, and with the general assent of
the nation, to her supremacy. assailed,
very
And
from points of view more or
opposite parties
Puritans,
who were
called
respectively
Both
by two
Papists
and
the
two
as
alike denied her religious
and not only held her
astical censure
less cognate,
accordingly denounced
great enemies of the State. authority,
supremacy was
that
to be liable to ecclesi-
and excommunication
in
the abstract, but
held also that, unless she would consent to reform the national
Church
on
their
own
principles,
deserved or had
incurred
divines generally,
and the Jesuits
it.
she actually
Moreover, the scholastic especially,
had always
maintained a theory of popular as opposed to Divine right,
and argued that a power which the people had
DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS. might again
originally given they
resume
;
185
in certain
contingencies
and the question was further complicated by the
Moreover
dispute about the deposing power of the Pope.
the famous Jesuit, Father Parsons, had published, towards the close of Elizabeth's reign, a treatise elaborately discussing the rival pretensions of five different families and
twelve possible claimants, plausibly
dispute
who
after
her
This
succession.
the
death
may
might
help
to
explain why, immediately upon her decease, the Earl of
Northumberland wrote
James that the eyes of
to inform
the whole nation were fixed on him, while
nobody gave a
thought to any of his competitors.
Thus then the way had been paved succession to the throne
was
and
also required,
;
this
popular indeed,
theory
the
of
We
after
Jesuits
the
James's peaceful
became the business of
it
theologians and jurists to supply.
schoolmen, and
for
but some theoretical Justification
of
right
have seen that the
them, maintained
government.
a
Suarez
one of the most distinguished theologians the
Order has produced, wrote a work against the Divine right of Kings, in reply to right of the
James
Pope over
but dealing chiefly with the
heretical sovereigns.
mistake, however, as Mr. that
I.,
Lecky
It
would be a
justly observes, to suppose
the Jesuit divines advocated
popular principles of
government only on theological grounds, or as applied to Protestant countries.
Mariana, e.g.
— perhaps the greatest
and certainly the most impartial writer they can boast has discussed the v/hole question of tyrannicide from an entirely'
independent point of view, nor does he admit the
distinction usually
a lawful
drawn between a tyrant
King who governs
tyrannically)
in rcgiinine
{i. e.
and a tyrant in
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
i86
tititlo,
i. e.
a usurper
who governs
in his
;
or at least he insists that a tyrant
own
interests,
selfish
and not
however legitimate
interests of his people,
pretensions,
is
no better than a usurper, and
deposed, or
if
necessary killed.
how Hooker, who had
It
is
in the
his hereditary-
may be
curious to notice
studied the schoolmen carefully,
modified their theories on this matter, though he does not
go the whole length of the Divine right doctrine wards developed
And
it
by Filmer and
the
after-
Caroline divines.
must be remembered that the Eighth Book of the
Ecclesiastical Polity, in
which he discusses
towards the close of his own
though not published
till
it,
was written
and of Elizabeth's
life
years
fifty
reign,
afterwards.
He
begins by laying down the obviously reasonable principle
"on
that
whom [supreme
power]
therefore "unto kings by right
king
is is
due"; but major
bestowed even at men's
by Divine
it
human
power
this
singulis,
is
do hold
discretion, they likewise
is
universis
right
right,"
and
honour by Divine
not unlimited, for "the
minorr
Hooker allows
then with the old Latin divines that royal power comes originally from the people, but he deserts
the
new theory
that,
just then
once given,
recalled.
He
it
coming
into
them and favours
vogue
in
maintaining
becomes hereditary, and cannot be
expressly rejects, as " strange, untrue, and
unnatural conceits," the opinion that no man's birth can
make him
a king, or that succession, in a
family once
established on the throne, depends on the acceptance or election of the incoming heir
" in
kingdoms hereditary
;
whereas, on the contrary,
birth giveth right unto sovereign
dominion, and the death of the predecessor putteth the successor by blood in seisin."
The
question then arises
DIVINE RIGHT OF KLNGS. whether the body pohtic may,
187
for sufficient cause, with-
draw from the dynasty or the individual sovereign the power once bestowed. Hooker thinks " it must be presumed
when
that,
"
"
grave inconvenience doth grow
thereby," they will be willing to resign
hardly borne out by history
— but
it
—a
presumption
denies that
taken from them " without their consent."
very like the doctrine of " non-resistance
may
but we
hotly contested,
perhaps
"
can be
it
This reads' afterwards so
infer
from the
context that Hooker would have allowed some modifications of
is
at all events
bear
the last three books of the Ecclesiastical
that
Polity were not
may
and we must
in practice,
it
mind
in
published
not have received
no just ground
for the
the author's lifetime, and
in
his
touches, though there
final
doubts sometimes cast on their
authenticity.
then was the
This
James
accession of
the
of
state
when
I.,
divines
time in taking up the question.
condemning
a draft of canons
authority did
terms
in
and dc facto James only snubbed them Cowell, published prerogative "
though
for the
it
of Civil
Professor
to
be
Law
at
a dictionary which
above
all
positive
Cambridge, defined
ment, he neither
make is
laws only
bound
by the laws when they
politic
mercy
by consent of
to ask their consent, nor
are made.
Dr.
the royal
enactments, and
be a merciful policy, and also a
king to
they
as
but,
kings de jure for their pains.
^
the
no
resistance to sovereign
sweeping,
not very clearly distinguish between
Then
the
lost
Convocation prepared
all
sufficiently
controversy at
and lawyers
The House
of
"
Parlia-
bound
Commons
not unnaturally protested against this work, and James
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
iS8
discreetly
as
suppressed
we have
was indebted
— what
came
who had
and one Talbot,
in,
refused
fact
to
he
" a
Popish
the deposing
repudiate
power, was prosecuted by Bacon,
however,
—that
But then again
to the law for his crown.
the Papal controversy recusant,"
acknowledging
it,
was certainly not the
seen,
Attorney-General,
as
before the Star Chamber, and this helped on the growing
tendency to
words, an indefeasible and
assert, at least in
absolute right of the hereditary sovereign.
was strength-
It
ened no doubt by that passionate personal devotion which
we may choose
the Stuarts, however
had an almost unique
many minds by
the aureole of
the brows of " the Blessed
in
First,"
the Stuarts the power of touching for
Evil
went
Divine
out.
right,
and was
the Anglican Prayer Book.
With "
fact,
martyrdom which wreathed
King Chafles the
two centuries enshrined
for
to explain the
of evoking, and consecrated in
gift
"
the King's
But the great exponent of the theory of
who has
therefore been the favourite butt for
the bitterest ridicule of later Liberal assailants from the time
of Bishop Burnet, though Locke did not disdain to answer him, was Sir Robert Filmer, a zealous royalist whose house in
Kent was ten times plundered during the
the reign of Charles
L
written in 1642, was not published
afterwards tions of his
wars
in
till
nearly forty years
when he had long been dead, but other publicahad appeared during
nounced by a very competent merely
civil
His Patriarcha, said to have been
for sagacity
his lifetime,
critic
but for shrewd
argument of the Patriarcha
is
which are pro-
to be remarkable not
common
briefly this.
sense.
He
The
began by
denying the scholastic theory, affirmed alike by "Calvinists
and
Jesuits," and,
we may
add, by Hooker, that sovereign
DIVINE RIGHT OF KINGS. power was
originally
bestowed
from which radical sophism
at the will of the multitude,
they inferred
enough that the multitude might
consistently
any lawful cause
for
of which they were themselves to be the judges
—with-
draw or change the powers they had
Filmer
insisted,
on the contrary, that
nature, but from the
all
conferred.
men were
Adam, and then
first
not equal by
the Patriarchs,
had by Divine
institution
after the flood
and subsequent dispersion of the descend-
Noah "we
ants of
power over
their children,
inferred that,
however
have originated
power
find the establishment of regal
throughout the kingdoms of the world
—by
From
."
this or that particular
and
this
he
dynasty might
election, usurpation, or otherwise
— the
"natural right of a supreme father over every multitude"
remained an established principle, and therefore the actual king must always enjoy a Divine right over his subjects^
God may
suffer
him
to
be removed by the instrumentality
of men, but their action in displacing sinful
and damnable.
legitimate heir to
him
" to
independent heads of families," as a
the
kind
whom
so elected claims not his
they pleased.
power
natural
"And
he that
by God, from
he receives his royal charter of a universal father,
though people."
testified
by the
The theory
ministry of
thus stated
is
the
heads of the
not otherwise than
plausible in itself; the real difficulty lay in as
of
as a donative from the
people, but as being substituted properly
whom
prime and
and on them devolved the duty of conferring
the crown afresh on is
not the less
the throne, the sovereign power " es-
cheated," not to the multitude, but
aristocracy,
is
In the case of there being no
expounded by Caroline and Jacobite
its
application,
divines, into
whose
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
I90
treatment of the question
But
here.
ciple
may
it
any
is
it
would take too long
than the modern
defensible
less
to enter
be asked whether Filmer's prin-
fairly
popular
dogma, as repeated and interpreted usque ad nauseam from a thousand
platforms,
For
people.
that
politicians like
power comes from the
all
Gambetta or Victor Hugo the
Divine right of the Republic
as absolute
is
a truth as
ever was the Divine right of Kings for Strafford or Laud.
Bishop Sanderson, one of the very few casuists the Church has produced, maintains a view not greatly
of England differing
from Filmer's
he lays down,
ab ipso Deo popiilo "
;
first, "
in his
De
Obligatione Lcguvi, where
praesidendi in republica potestatem
esse, solo
et
patriae potestatis
the
rule
propaginem
monarch
of a single
fuisse,"
conferenda regia potestate nuUos
fuisse,
ad eam perveniatur," holds at a later
day declined
its
" in
nee quidem esse
Royalty there-
"
quocunque modo
power from God.
Burke
the abstract question
to discuss
the sovereignty of the people
"
finally,
the Divinely ordained form of government, and the
sovereign or dynasty actually in power,
of
which implies
and hence,
;
potuisse, populi partes, certo certius est." is
.
secondly, " dominationem politicam ab initio non
nisi
fore
.
immediate, nuUatemis autem a
",
but to the practical
question, whether anything can justify their resuming the
sovereignty,
whose
would
been
seat has once
peremptorily as Hooker
:
" I
am
fixed,
he replied as
satisfied that
justify such a resumption,
no occasion
which would not equally
authorise a dispensation with any other moral duty, per-
haps with all
all
of
them
the horrors of the
his eves.
together."
first
But Burke wrote with
French Revolution fresh before
XXII.
FESTIVAL OF CHRISTMAS. Christmas nificance is
;
it
has, at least in this country, a double sig-
is
both a secular and a religious
indeed rather curious that, even
character,
it
should
hold
England than anywhere Scotland, which
France,
it
is
is
more
a
else.
still
New
in all
Roman
retains the singular
Catholics
— of the
Catholic
overshadowed by the
Year
in
it is
the following
not solemnly
Catholic countries, where
and appropriate distinction
abolished strangely enough of late years
be said presently.
still,
although
—
among English
Midnight Mass, on which a word
But
in
in Presbyterian
enough, but in
intelligible
It
festival.
ecclesiastical
prominent place
That does not mean of course that
observed in church it
its
Not only
virtually superseded or
great secular anniversary of the
week.
in
shall
holds confessedly
it
the third place in the Christian calendar, yielding only to
Easter and Pentecost,
among any
it
is
certainly not
the boars'-head, the plum-pudding, waits,
made so much of The Yule-log,
other people as with ourselves.
the mince-pies, the
and the mummers, as well as the
" roast
beef of old
England," are specialities of our Christmas, partly of Scandinavian origin. for
An
ingenious reason has been suggested
the precedence which
its
domestic observance has
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
192
established over Easter in the fact that roast beef easily
more
is
and widely procurable than the lamb of the Paschal Another incident of
feast.
its
domestic observance which
appears to be peculiarly Teutonic
—as Santa " Klaus and us — was pro"
Germany may remind
the Christmas-trees of
bably borrowed from the old Pagan
mas superseded
among
the
in
Romans, representing
the
festivals
Church.
early
the
which Christ-
The Saturnalia golden age and
abolishing for a while the distinction of ranks, had been associated with the custom of
and
making presents
Saturnalia closed with the festival of infants
—when
children were presented with as
fictilibns),
Macrobius
the
new
sun,
little
images
less
Then again
day of the winter
solstice
designed to celebrate the birthday of
was of course directly suggestive of the
Christian celebration of the birthday of the True
Righteousness.
{pscillis
more or
Holy Innocents.
festival of the shortest
{dies invicti Solis),
the
— the Sigillaria
coinciding
us,
tells
closely with the Feast of the
Roman
And
following this ancient practice.
Christians for
the
{strencz),
as early as the second century Tertullian reproached
And
hence
Faustus,
the
Sun of
Manichean,
charged the Catholics of his own day with observing the
Pagan
solstitia.
But
it
does not at
points out, that the date of the actually suggested
by
contrary, there can be
these little
all follow,
Christmas
as
Neander
festival
On
older observances.
doubt that
it
was the
arose out of a
very ancient tradition, for which Benedict XIV.
cites vari-
ous early authorities, that the Nativity really took place at this season of the year.
of Prudentius
came
thought that at the
to
In aftertimes the words of a
be
first
literally accepted,
and
hymn it
was
and each recurring Christmas,
FESTIVAL OF CHRISTMAS.
193
"the cry of the Holy Child imparted to the earth a verdant
The words
spring."
of Isaiah
(i.
3)
were interpreted to
not only the presence of the ox and ass in the
signify,
down year
stable of Bethlehem, but that the cattle knelt
by year
Christmas midnight.
at the
told Mr. Brand, in 1790, that he
Eve seen
A
Cornish peasant
had himself on Christmas
the two oldest oxen in their stalls
knees at midnight, and " make a
moan
on their
fall
Christian
like
In the words of the old hymn,
creatures."
" Cognovit bos et asinus
Quod Puer
ei'at
Dominus."
— sounds — formerly existed, and some
Several other touching traditions of this kind
hard to still
them
call
superstitions
survive, both in our
own country and
Europe, such as are noticed by the poet
it
other parts of in
a familiar
passage oi Hamlet "
Some
say, that ever 'gainst that season
comes
Wherein our Saviour's birth The bird of dawning singeth
all
And The
then no planets strike,
No
celebrated.
night long
:
then, they say, no spirit dares stir abroad
nights are
fairy takes,
wholesome
;
all
is
;
nor witch hath power to charm.
So hallow' d and so gracious
But best of
is
is
the time.''
the time-honoured traditional usage
enshrined of old in one of the capitularies of Charlemagne,
and to
this
England varied
day nowhere more
religiously observed than in
— of making Christmas the special season
ministries
of
human
kindliness
for those
and beneficence,
which are our response to the Divine message of
on earth" proclaimed
in
"
peace
the angels' midnight song
at
Bethlehem. It is clear
from Church history that
St. Paul's
warning O
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY,
194
"
against the Jewish observance of
times and years
"
days and months, and
was never understood, as some Protest-
ants have imagined, to preclude or discourage the setting
com-
apart of special seasons for religious worship and
There
memoration.
is
evidence indeed in the
ment of Sunday being kept Resurrection, and
Friday
the
by a
Testa-
the weekly feast of the
as
appropriation of
— named stationes
New
m.ilitary
Wednesday and
metaphor
— to com-
memorate the Betrayal and Death of Christ followed very soon
The
after.
yearly anniversary of the Resurrection
had already become an estabhshed and highly prized institution
in
the second century, as
we know from
the
long and angry disputes as to the proper method of fixing
Christmas was added rather
the day.
later,
but certainly
not later than the fourth century, and was closely con-
nected with the proximate feast of the Epiphany, tuted mainly to
commemorate
the Baptism of Christ.
insti-
But
whereas the Epiphany originated in the East, Christmas first
came
some
be observed
to
in the
places, as at Antioch,
Western Church, and
in
introduction into the East
its
met with considerable opposition. The Donatists, on the other hand, " refused to communicate with the Eastern Church, where that star appeared," as us,
because of
demned
its
St.
Augustine
tells
keeping the Epiphany, which they con-
The Gnostics seem, from what
as an innovation.
Clement of Alexandria
says, to
have been particularly
zealous in observing the Epiphany, to which they gave an interpretation of their own, but
the observance was
Church would them.
It
is
their
it is
own
absurd to suppose that
invention.
The
Catholic
certainly not have chosen to borrow
it
of
not impossible however, as Neander suggests,
FESTIVAL OF CHRISTMAS.
195
that the Epiphany, representing the unction of the Messiah
by the Holy
Spirit for
may have
His earthly work,
origin-
ated with the Jewish Christians, while Christmas, which presents
Him
"
God-man, the Word made
as the
whose humanity was from the
first
flesh,
with the Divine
filled
Essence," undoubtedly had a Western origin.
Be
that as
may, these two great
it
festivals of the Birth
and Baptism of Christ, though existing early times, tury,
first
came
when indeed
Church were freely, as
in
germ from very
into general use in the fourth cen-
the public worship and ritual of the
for the first
time able to develop themselves
the pressure of persecution was withdrawn.
Chrysostom speaks,
in
St.
a sermon preached at Antioch, of
the Epiphany as one of the ancient and principal feasts of
the Asiatic Chuich, and the only one having reference to
among men. West
the appearance of the Lord
penetrated into some regions of the Marcellinus records
new meaning, Baptism of
how
But
year at Vienna.
in
the
had
it
it
it
that
acquired a
and, without dropping the reference to the
Christ, the Latin service for the festival dwells to the Gentiles,
time of
the Nativity,
it
was closely associated
symbolized by
And
of the Magi to Bethlehem.
Western form in the
361
Julian kept
passing westwards
mainly on his manifestation the visit
Emperor
By
at all events, for
thus in
its
in idea, as well as
its
celebration, with the greater festival of
It
was
also
"beginning of miracles"
in
taken to commemorate the Public Ministry
the
conversion of water into wine at
Cana of
Galilee,
Christ "manifested forth his glory" to the Gentiles.
day
by the
whereby This
expressly noted in the
triple
significance of the
ritual,
"Tribus miraculis ornatum diem sanctum colimus; O 2
is
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
196
Magos duxit ad praesepium
hodie Stella
aqua factum
ad nuptias
est
hodie vinum ex
;
hodie in Jordane a Joanne
;
Christus baptizari voluit ut salvaret nos."
Nor
is it
unlikely
that the importance attached in the Latin Church to the festival of
may have been
Christmas
prominent place assigned of original
sin,
of infant baptism it
first
;
connected with the
Latin theology to the doctrine
from which
required to be cleansed
whence
in
all
men born
coming
into the world
accounts for the practice
this also
into general use in the
spread to the Eastern Church.
Pope Liberius the Christmas
that in the time of
had become an established usage throughout
Some
Christendom.
years later
thirty
West,
Certain
it
is
festival
Western
Chrysostom
St.
preaching again at Antioch, on Christmas day, speaks of the feast having been recently introduced there, but dwells
on
rapid and general reception, calling
its
(fx-qTpoTTokii)
of
In
"
it
the mother
Epiphany,
and Pentecost derived
their origin
and
some Eastern Churches, as
at Jerusalem
and
Easter, Ascension,
meaning."
it
the festivals, since from
all
Alexandria, the commemoration of the Nativity was for a
time united
in a
common
the Epiphany or "
festival with the celebration of
Theophany
course be explained as another
And
name
which could of
for the Licarnation.
the simultaneous observance of the two festivals was
further justified, according to
Cosmas
strange inference from
Luke
Christ took place on the
day of
One
iii.
Indicopleustes,
by a
23 that the Baptism of
his Birth.
of the most ancient and characteristic distinctions of
the festival in the the
" of Christ,
first
West was
the treble celebration of mass,
taking place at midnight in
the Nativity, which
is
found
in the
memory
of the time of
Sacramcntary of Gclasius
FESTIVAL OF CHRISTMAS. in
the
mass
fifth
The Pope used
century.
in the
197
to celebrate the first
Liberian basihca, the second, at daybreak, in
the church of St. Anastasia, the third in the Vatican
and
;
hence the custom grew up of every priest saying three masses on Christmas day.
Gregory the Great speaks of
these three masses, of which various explanations are given
by
liturgical writers
;
but that of Aquinas
monly adopted, that by the
is
midnight
at
first
most comis
signified
the Everlasting Generation of Christ from the Father, concealed from
human gaze
;
by the second
temporal birth of the Virgin Mary spiritual
nativity
by grace
in the
still
tion,
at Easter also, traces
survive in the forms of the Latin ritual,
perhaps at some other
which has of
festivals,
late years
His His
third
hearts of the faithful.
There was formerly a midnight mass of which
at daybreak,
and by the
;
and
but the Christmas celebra-
been popularised
in
many
Anglican churches, and originated the now universal cus-
tom
of ringing the church bells on Christmas night, has
alone held
place.
its
Christmas night
is
The custom
of carol-singing on
another very old-established and popu-
lar speciality of the festival,
and the wording of many of
our English carols reaches far back into the middle ages. It is curious, as
traditions
Milman
observes,
— sometimes
strange than
how many
of the quaint
very touching, sometimes
reverential
— enshrined
in
Gospels have thus been preserved and handed
own
day.
But
this transmission
mediaeval miracle plays,
some
is
also
due
idea of which
from the Play of the Nativity
in
more
the Apocryphal
down
to our
in part to
may be
the
gained
Longfellow's Golden
Legend ; and with the Christmas miracle plays were associated the
more questionable and boisterous burlesques of
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
198
the
Boy
Bishop, the
tion,
Misrule, and the hke, which
Abbot of
must have ministered
to
merriment rather than to
and must too often have degenerated
profanities as
Scott has depicted at
quhair in the Abbot.
St.
edifica-
into such coarse
Mary's Kenna-
was remarked some years ago
It
on a Christmas sermon of Dean Stanley's at Westminster
Abbey, about the coronation of William the Conqueror, festival, that "
which took place there on that
he seemed
unaware of the day having been rendered memorable by
He might, however,
any previous event." still
earlier historical event of
and more pregnant
significance,
recurrence of the same
Norman
before the 800, during
Crown on
which had marked the
more than two
festival
On
Conquest.
High Mass
have recalled one
an equally secular, but wider
centuries
the Christmas day of
at St. Peter's,
Leo HI. placed the
the head of Charlemagne, and thus consecrated
the revival or inception, as
Holy Roman Empire. Christmas, while
it
our great domestic'
we may choose
to view
it,
of the
is
a sense therefore in which
has become
from immemorial usage
There
festival,
may be
also regarded as the
birthday of the Christian State, as well as of the Church.
XXIII.
MIRACLE PLAYS. It has
come
to pass
from various causes, during the
last
twenty or thirty years, that the Passionsspiel at Ober-
Ammergau, formerly known only
as a local religious so-
lemnity, has risen into a centre of interest and attraction,
not only for England, but for the whole Christian world.^
And
this naturally suggests
some inquiry
into the origin
and history of those Mysteries or Miracle Plays once so
common
throughout Europe, but of which this decennial
celebration in an obscure Tyrolese valley solitary
memento
;
for
is
now
we cannot reckon
in
the almost
the
same
V The performance of 1850 was described by the Baroness Tautphsus in a novel entitled Quits, -which first drew attention to the subject in England.
among them Dean his experiences in
In i860 there were several English visitors, and Dean Milman. The former recorded
Stanley and
an
article in
Macmillan's Magazine, the
latter in
a
note to the third edition of Latin Christianity (vol. ix. p. 180), where he relates, with an enthusiasm unusual in his pages, how he had " never witnessed a performance more striking for its scenic effect," or " passed
a day in more absorbed and unwearied attention." After this there was naturally a rush of visitors from England, as well as elsewhere, to the next decennial celebration in 1870, which moreover was interrupted by the outbreak of the Franco-Prussian war at the end of July, and had therefore to be continued in the August and September of 1871.
My own
Recollections of
Ober-Amviergau
in
describes a visit paid in the August of that year.
187
1
(Rivingtons),
200
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
category the grotesque, not to say profane, representations of sacred subjects occasionally interpolated into the dramatic
programme
some Spanish
at
Passion Play
is
not indeed
The Ammergau
theatres.
a mediaeval institution, but
itself
it can only be rightly understood in connexion with those popular " Mysteries " and " Moralities " of the middle ages,
and they again must be traced back to a more remote
The drama,
antiquity and to earlier forms of faith.
been justly nature to
said,
— that
based on
of imitation
And
any age or people.
early existence
Greece and
in
it
which
hence there
among the most
Not only was
nations. in
is
instinct
in
diverse
is
not peculiar
evidence of
is
high repute at the same time
Hindostan, but even the Chinese have theatre,
and the
ancient Peruvians had both tragedies and comedies.
selves.
in
But there
is
a further point in
though
it is
common among
all
we have any
most conspicuously brought out
in the
known
to us.
case of the Greek drama, which
They seem,
And
each case have invented the drama for them-
the earliest dramatic performances of which record,
its
and even the rudest
from time immemorial possessed a regular
they must
as has
human
a principle inherent in
is
the best
like ancient art generally, to
a religious origin and significance.
have always had
Mythology supplied
the materials alike for the Comic and the Tragic Muse,
and the frequently recurring deities
afforded
the occasion
festivals of local or national
for
Music and poetry, wherever they enlisted in the service of religion,
public representations. exist,
are sure to be
and with an agricultural
population like that of early Greece, Dionysos, the god of the vineyard, held necessarily a prominent place in the national worship.
The hymns sung round
the festal altar.
MIRACLE PLAYS. whether solemn or jocose, gradually developed into artistic
ode, with the Satyric chorus,
tragedy, and the
comedy
the
by Greek
mythological origin
;
became the
basis of
Greek
song was expanded into the
Phallic
We
of Aristophanes,
tragedies
know
of but two historical
which therefore have not a
poets,
the Capture of Miletus by Phrynichus,
And
and the Persiaus of ^schylus. the
all
splendours of the drama; the stately dithyrambic
the exception proves
Phrynichus was fined by the Athenians for
rule.
harrowing their feelings by the representation of contemporary misfortunes.
It
must be remembered too that the
Eleusinian and other Mysteries of ancient Greece, to which the initiated alone were admitted, consisted, as far as any-
thing can be ascertained about them, mainly of symbolical
and dramatic representations.
And
we touch on
here
the
connecting link between the classical and Christian drama.
The
early Fathers of the Church, whether with or with-
out sufficient information
it
may
be
determine,
difficult to
invariably denounce the Greek Mysteries in the strongest
Even
terms as hotbeds of the grossest obscenity.
Clement of Alexandria, with philosophy,
is
no exception.
all his
And
St.
admiration of Greek
for
many
centuries no
Christian could be present at the theatre without forfeiting his religious position
baptized without the authorities
and
first
of the
privileges,
and no actor could be But
renouncing his profession.
Church were unsparing
in
if
their
denunciation alike of the Mysteries and of the Stage, they
were too wise to ignore the human
instincts to
drama appeals. They put forward Mysteries of a counter-attraction to these old heathen Christian
rites,
drama grew up by degrees on
which the
their
own
as
and thus the
the ruins of the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
202
Greek
ment
;
During the ages of persecution there was
theatre.
comparatively
scope for such a process of develop-
little
yet even then a considerable dramatic element
be traced
may
and the modes
in the earliest Christian liturgies,
And no
of celebrating the greater Church festivals.
did the Church emerge from the Catacombs than
sooner
we
find
not only a rapid elaboration of ceremonial splendour in worship, but
direct attempts
also
Greek tragedians on of this
their
given in the " Dying Christ
is
which was acted
in
compete with the
to
An
own ground.
church at Constantinople, partly
tableaux vivants and
partly
by
dialogue.
still
in
Gregory dance
performed at Easter before the high altar of the
cathedral at Seville, which of a Greek chorus.
It
is
said to recall the
was thus
movements
the East that these
in
plays originated, and they were only imported
religious
at a later date, probably
by the Crusaders,
There
Germany
as early as the time of
are,
into
Western
however, records of convent plays
Europe.
earliest
St.
A solemn
Nazianzen was another sacred dramatist. is
early instance
of St. Chrysostom,
"
in
Charlemagne, though the
specimen of such compositions
manuscript of twelve dramas written
in
still
extant
is
a
Terentian Latin by
Hrotsvitha, abbess of Gandersheim in the tenth century,
and performed delight
and
in
her convent, as
edification of the nuns."
soon became popular so than in
England.
all
It
in
Germany.
that "Miracle" or
are told, " to
the
Such representations
over Europe, and nowhere more
may be
particularly the " Mysteries
and
we
"
interesting to notice
performed
Strictly speaking,
in it
our
more
own country
should be said,
"Mystery Play" designates a
repre-
sentation based on the Lives of the Saints, as distinguished
MIRACLE PLAYS. from the
"
Passion Play," which represented the sufferings
of Christ;
adhered
203
but the distinction of terms
not always
is
to.
Matthew Paris tells us that the story of St. Catharine was dramatized by one Geoffrey, master of a school at Dunstable, afterwards Abbot of St. Albans, and acted by his
boys early
in the twelfth century.
which has come down posed
in
to us
is
Latin two centuries
But the
later, in
play
which the principal
dramatis personcE are our Lord, Satan,
The
earliest
the Harrozving of Hell, com-
Adam, and
Eve.
so-called " Chester Mysteries," of about a century later
again, are the best
They
known
of the English Miracle Plays.
include both a tragic and comic element, and in fact
these performances seem always to have had a tendency, especially
in
England, to
degenerate into such coarse
buffoonery, as Longfellow has sought to reproduce in the "
Gaudiolum of Monks"
in the
to their often being placed under the
authority.
them
This was
Golden Legend.
no doubt one element of their popularity, but
ban of
it
also led
ecclesiastical
Bishop Grandison, of Exeter, expressly forbade
as early as 1360.
But they were too popular both
with the Court and the masses to be easily put down.
Edward IIL was
passionately addicted to such spectacles,
and appears to have himself taken part judge from an inventory of
articles
in
used
them,
in
if
we may
a play acted at
Guildford at Christmas 1347, which includes mention of " a
harness of white buckram, inlaid with silver
— namely,
a
tunic and shield, with the King's motto, 'Hay, hay, the
Wythe Swan, by God's soul I am thy of the King himself." To the Miracle
man,' for the use
Plays succeeded
"Moralities," in which abstract qualities— Justice, Mercy,
204
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
and the
like
—were personified, and these
in turn led to the
representation of real persons on the stage.
In the fierce
contests of the Reformation, the drama, like the pulpit,
eagerly appropriated attack.
by both
The marriage
of Luther with a nun was satirized
So profane
Latin Morality at Gray's Inn in 1529.
in a
was
mutual
sides for purposes of
and indecent were some of the controversial plays of the Reforming party that they were forbidden by the Privy Council, not only under
under the
Henry VIII. and Mary, but even
fiercely Protestant
still
down
living
to the time of Charles
who can remember
Miracle Play in their childhood
were
in
Wales.
at first
always
Edward
VI.,"
There are old men
I.
seeing something in
remote country
of England, as for instance in Cornwall of the kind was reported not
Chapel
" B.
But they held their ground never-
on pain of imprisonment. theless
sway of the
We have
;
like
a
districts
and a performance
many years ago
in a
Dissenting
seen that these Miracle Plays
in Latin.
They came, however,
before
long to be translated into the vernacular both in England
and Germany. One of the
earliest of the
German Mysteries
Lament of the Virgin, which was acted in church on Good Friday, and to this succeeded afterwards the is
the
" Passion Plays," representing the death
of Christ.
In
and resurrection
the fourteenth century the performances
were transferred from the church to the street and marketplace, is
and the number of actors largely increased.
There
a curious history attached to one of the most famous
of these early
German
the
plays,
Virgins, which was performed
at
celebrate the restoration of peace. eric,
named
the Joyful,
was
Tragedy of the Ten Eisenach
in
1332, to
The Landgrave Fred-
present,
and was terribly
MIRACLE PLAYS.
205
alarmed and angered by the close of the drama, where the Foolish Virgins are represented as appealing in vain to the
and
intercession of the Blessed Virgin, into hell, notwithstanding her
What means
"
pardon them.
finally thrust
entreaties
God
this, if
down
her Son to
to will
not pity us
even when Mary and the Saints intercede.^" he exclaimed.
His
fright
and indignation threw him
from which he never recovered
So painfully
afterwards.
become priest
in
on the
realistic
Germany, that
who took
in
still
fit
of apoplexy,
two years
his death
did these Passion Plays
one acted at Metz
priest,
narrowly escaped hanging himself. is
into a
in
1437 the
the principal part nearly died of exhaustion
and another
cross,
till
who represented Judas, The Crucifixion scene
found very trying to the principal performer at
Ammergau, who has
to
remain some twenty minutes on
the cross, and a younger actor had to be substituted in
consequence
in
for the
1870
who had taken
person
that
part in the three previous celebrations of the decennial solemnity. It is
remarkable that
old Miracle Plays
this
1633 a deadly plague raged three
in
The God would
inhabitants then
made
a solemn
vow
in
thankfulness for
mercies, represent the Passion of the Redeemer,
that not a single death occurred after this it
that,
hear their prayer and remove the pestilence,
they would every tenth year,
and
In
the Ammerthal, and" within
weeks eighty-four of the small community were
corpses. if
one remaining memorial of the
of comparatively recent origin.
is
His
It is said
vow was made, The King
has been religiously observed ever since.
of Bavaria has to give his sanction every time
performance, and
in
1
8 10
an attempt was
made
for
the
to put
it
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
2o6
down by
a general prohibition of
all
The
Miracle Plays.
Munich
inhabitants sent a deputation to
cause before King Louis, but in vain
plead their
to
he was, however,
;
induced to relent by the intervention of his chaplain, and
no
difficulty has since occurred
recurrence of the solemnity. suntide
till
was
interrupted, as in
summoned tions
On
1870,
to join the army,
It is a reniarkable
one previous occasion
by the performers being
and the omitted representa-
were then also supplied
who were
from Whit-
the end of September, being repeated on most
of the intervening Sundays. it
to disturb the periodical
It usually lasts
the following summer.
in
circumstance that of some sixty actors
called away, to take part in the Franco-Prussian
war, only seven were killed, and none of those taking any
important part were included
among
the
This
slain.
is
not
the place to discuss at length the obvious objections raised against dramatizing the Passion altogether, as derogatory to the sacredness of the subject.
Nor does
the precedent,
often noticed, of the dramatic character of the offices of the
Holy Week
Latin ritual offer a more than partial reply.
That such representations become injurious to those concerned
if
other than a religious spirit
is
at
once profane and
witnessed or enacted in any self-evident.
And
it
may
not unnaturally be feared that, in an age like ours, the
growing popularity of the eventually prove fatal to ever witnessed it
it
could
its
fail
Ammergau permanence
Passionsspiel will ;
but few
who have
to regard such a contingency,
occurs, as matter of very serious regret.
To
if
the simple
and devout denizens of that secluded mountain
village
the decennial solemnity as yet manifestly continues to be,
what
it
has ever been, not an occasion of histrionic display
MIRACLE PLAYS. or pecuniary profit, but
—
207
the words of the pious editor
in
of one of the local text-books
—" a
from
religious duty,
which they neither can be nor wish to be dispensed by any Their most general ordinary occupa-
earthly authority,"
tion as wood-carvers, chiefly of devotional objects, helps of
course to develop both their artistic and religious instincts,
and thus the study of the great
religious painters,
which
is
enjoined on those selected for the principal parts in the Play, especially for the highest,
labour of love. already quoted
And we may is
comes natural
to
them
as a
well hope that the writer
also at least substantially correct in the
expression of his charitable
belief,
that "all
who have
hitherto been spectators of the Passionsspiel have returned
home
nobler and better men."
that the fault, where
can
fail
it is
not
to be both edified
to witness the
drama
It
may
so, is their
safely
be asserted
own, and that none
and benefited who are content
in the spirit of those
who
enact
it.
XXIV. ORIGIN
The
festival
AND GROWTH OF
UNIVERSITIES.
observed at Munich, in August 1872, with
every circumstance of royal and popular solemnity, to celebrate the four hundredth anniversary of the foundation
of the University, was naturally regarded in
an event of national
The
interest.
Germany
as
University, originally
founded at Ingoldstadt by Duke Albert
in
1472, trans-
ferred in the beginning of the present century to Landshut,
and then, twenty-six years Louis,
is
later,
the oldest and
one of
important of the German Universities
probably of those
And
in
Munich, by King
to still
one of the most
—the most important
Southern and Catholic Germany.
although the festival was of a strictly academical and
not ecclesiastical character, tional significance
from the
no doubt derived some addi-
it
fact of
Bavaria being just then
the centre of the Old Catholic movement, and from the
venerable Dr. Dollinger having been called by an almost
unanimous vote of Magnificiis
on
his colleagues to
the
occasion.
the office of Rector
fill
His
speech,
which
was
received with continuous and enthusiastic applause from all
his
interest.
hearers, It
young and old
was of course
alike,
has a permanent
to be expected that he
would
say something of the antecedents and distinctions of the
GROWTH OF
ORIGIN AND
UNIVERSITIES.
209
University which he was there to represent, and of which
he has
for so
many
years been a conspicuous ornament.
But he did -more than
He
this.
took the opportunity to
give what in less experienced hands might have been a
mere and
superficial sketch, while in reality
appreciation
critical
University education
in
origin
Europe.
That
which few men are so well qualified handled
it
contains a vivid
it
the
of
and growth of a subject on
is
to speak,
and he
with that depth and accuracy of learning, that
intellectual grasp
and breadth of moral sympathy, and that
ardent but intelligent patriotism, which will at once be
who
are
his writings.
It
recognised as characteristic of the speaker familiar with
him personally or through
by
all
worth while to put on record here the salient points of
is
a discourse which occupied nearly two hours
and which well deserves to be read are in a position to study
it
tion [of national unity a thousand years
Empire. the
first
revival in 1S71
its
delivery,
for themselves.^
Dr. Dollinger begins by referring to the
the German, and
in
by those who
in full
first
consolida-
ago under Louis
in the
new German
Since then the University of Munich has been to celebrate
its
anniversary, which
thus attains
a sort of national importance, and the more so as the differ-
German
ent
Universities are closely united, and there
frequent interchange of professors and students
The
a
corporate idea which was so powerful in the middle
ages, but
1
is
among them.
was wholly wanting under the old governments,
This discourse of Dr. Dollinger's has been collated,
for the
present
purpose, with an earlier one of his on the same subject, delivered before the University of
Munich
in 1867,
when
also
he held the
of Rector.
P
office
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
2IO
whether democratic or Imperial, of Greece and Rome, could alone
make
as independent privileges,
possible the foundation of Universities
own
communities, with their
between teachers and taught.
Among
and
rights
bound together by a community of
interests
such institutions
the University of Paris, dating from early
in
the thirteenth
century, for a long time stood supreme, and Paris became, far
more than Rome, the
Europe.
It
sacerdotium, and studiiim.
Far
Universities,
intellectual metropolis of
was a common saying
Germany different
that, as Italy
Western had the
the iniperiuin, France had the character
in
were the
which began to be founded
Italian
the twelfth
in
century, but never approached the theological and literary
eminence of Paris and Oxford, and made no claim to the universality of teaching
now
associated with the
name
they were schools of one or two sciences only, the
;
first
established, at Salerno, being a school of medicine only their
aim was
practical,
and the studies principally
vated were jurisprudence and canon law.
culti-
Their origin
and system were of a casual and purely democratic kind, without any recognised authority and position or State.
Two
or three professors of canon
and medicine combined
to
Church
in
and
civil
gradually gathered round them, but best fluctuating and uncertain.
its
prosperity was at
Leo X. founded
the Sapi-
enza with eighty-eight professors, but a few years
Clement VII. diverted the endowments its
days of prosperity were gone
at these Universities
later
to other objects,
for ever.
The
and
teachers
had no corporate status or dignity,
and were looked on simply of a marketable
law
form a University, and students
commodity
as paid agents for the supply ;
there was no genius
loci,
as
GROWTH OF
ORIGIN AND
no sense of pride
at Oxford, tion
among
either
in
UNIVERSITIES.
211
belonging to a great institu-
the teachers or the taught.
Bologna,
however, has an historical importance as the birthplace
and chief home of the
sciences
allied
of
Roman
civil
law and canon law, which exercised so large an influence
on the development of the Papal autocracy; there were 20,000 students of law there.
Innocent
III.,
and Innocent
the
maxims
supposed to to law.
;
there, too, the Ger-
learnt lessons of absolutism derived from
of the old inherit,
Paris,
III.,
IV., the great founders of the
system, had taught or studied there
man Emperors
1262
in
Alexander
Roman Empire which
and openly proclaimed
they were
their superiority
however, exerted a more direct influence
than the Italian Universities on the national
life
many, through the crowds of students who flocked
of Gerthither,
having as yet no Universities of their own, and who brought
back with them the French return
;
many men
spirit
Even
the study of theology.
Yet even
Paris
one, and the entire absence of
and the
left
unbounded room
forgeries. first
Ambassador says till
latterly
it
had
had no Faculty
But everywhere the curriculum was a very narrow
of Law.
sense
their
so late as the end of the
sixteenth century the Venetian
30,000 students.
and language on
spent fifteen or sixteen years there in
Two
men,
in
for
any
historical
and
critical
the dominance of fiction
Germany and England, made Albert the Great, who ice
attempt to break the
;
has been not inaptly called the Humboldt of his age, and
Roger Bacon, both of
whom
laboured to introduce the
study of natural science, while Roger Bacon also paved the
way
for the cultivation of
And now
the time was
Greek
come
literature. for
Germany
to take her
P 2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
212
part
in
the
academical of
Universities
Europe.
of
life
own no founder and no
ancient
cognisable date of institution
But
"they were a natural growth." ^ secular and spiritual,
The
Oxford, Cambridge, and Bologna
Paris,
who
in the
it
was the
—
princes,
middle of the fourteenth
century began to establish Universities
in
Germany, and the
municipal authorities afterwards followed their example.
The and
first is
was founded
said to have
the century
man
;
at
Prague
but the quarrels between the Czech and Ger-
students, which have lasted
made an end
1348 by Charles IV.,
in
numbered 40,000 students by the end of
of
its
down
prosperity.
to our
own
day, soon
In the same century were
founded the Universities of Vienna, Heidelberg, Cologne,
and
Erfurt, all of
ecclesiastical
which were originally to a great degree
institutions,
of Church benefices.
professors of canon law.
Popes evoked a
spirit
and the German Paris,
and supported by the revenues
They
often
all
six
anti-
of reform throughout the Church,
Universities, following in
the
wake
of
threw themselves into the movement of which Gerson
and D'Ailly were the acknowledged in
had no fewer than
But the great schism of the
leaders,
and
all
united
proclaiming the superiority of Councils to Popes.
hope of an
effective
tion of Frederick III. to the Papal party,
and he forced the
University of Vienna, by the threat of withdrawing 1 The foundation Durham, who died
of University College in 1249,
But
reform was shattered by the transi-
marks the
its
by a bequest of William of
real beginning of the Univer-
Oxford as such, about half a century after the first formal recogdiploma of Philip Augustus, though there had been schools at Oxford for many centuries before. And there is good reason for believing that the original statutes were borro^yed almost wholesale from Paris.
sity oi
nition of the University of Paris in the
GROWTH OF
ORIGIN AND
UNIVERSITIES.
endowments, to renounce the Council of a distinct but cognate
Oxford by Wycliff, and was taken up
Meanwhile
Basle.
movement had been
213
originated at
Prague by Huss
at
with greater immediate success, while a third University, that of Wittenberg, eventually gave it
it
the form in which
has exercised so momentous an influence on the subse-
The
quent history of the Church.
Germany
rather than in Italy,
revival of classical literature which,
alliance
Universities, too, in
became the
nurseries of that
however
such an
little
was intended or acknowledged on
either
more German
Universities,
at
side,
Three
materially aided the progress of the Reformation.
Greifswald, Freiburg, and
Basle, were founded shortly before Ingoldstadt (in 1472),
and Tiibingen a of
them
all,
little later.
Paris
was the common mother
and Ingoldstadt borrowed
its
statutes from
Vienna, which had received them from Paris.
dark period
in
the political
life
of
Germany
It ;
was a
but for a
time, from 1494 to 15 18, Ingoldstadt gained celebrity for its
classical
teaching under Conrad Celtes, Locher, and
Reuchlin, and the historian Aventin was
The number
guished ornament. not large. mediaeval
It
may
be said that the
universities
illustrates
its
most
distin-
of students, however, was history
the distinctive
character of England, France, and Germany.
of these national
England,
which abjured centralisation, and has ever pursued a twofold aim,
of practical utility and
political
freedom, has
naturally had two Universities, correcting and supplement-
ing each other, which retain to this day their independent constitution,
and represent respectively
tendencies of the the mathematical."
" the
two leading
English mind, the ecclesiastical and
On
the other hand, the centralising
214
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
make
tendencies of the nation, which
where an educated Frenchman cares sion in
its
Germany
one University seated
Paris the only place
to live, found expres-
in
the metropolis.
In
the decentralising tendencies {particularismtis),
which gradually dissolved the unity both of the Empire
and the Church,
Then came
number
led to the separate foundation of a
of small Universities in various
cities.
the Reformation, of which Wittenberg was
new
the centre, and the
Universities of Marburg, Konigs-
thum, Jena, Altdorf, and Helmstadt were founded
for its
promotion, while Leipsic, Rostock, Greifswald, and Heidel-
berg joined the movement.
adhered to the old
faith,
Prague and Vienna, which
were almost deserted, and Ingold-
stadt became, and continued for
two
centuries,
chief strongholds of Catholicism; there, as at
all
Universities, Catholic or Protestant, theology
every other Faculty.
one of the
the
German
overshadowed
With the Reformation had
in fact
sprung up a new order of things, and the German-Universities
became
"
the arsenals where the weapons of war were forged,
and often the
battle-fields
rival doctrines
ingly,
where the victory or defeat of the
The German
was decided."
who always assumed
their subjects, used
them
princes accord-
the right to fix the faith of
— as the Jesuits of the period used pulpit — as
the confessional, and Lutheran preachers the instriunenta dontinationis, keeping in their
appointment
professorial
own hands
the
those
of
especially
German Universities survived " German history," and the Thirty
that the
period of
chairs,
All that can be said of the seventeenth century
theology. is
to
that
darkest
Years'
War
but the Catholic Universities scarcely deserved the name, while
the
Protestant
were completely subordinated
to
GROWTH OF
ORIGIN AND
UNIVERSITIES.
and antipathies, and
theological interests
their history
215
the
is
history of the conflict between Lutheran orthodoxy, on the
one hand, and Calvinism, Syncretism, and Pietism on the
Up
other.
lectures
to the beginning of the eighteenth century all
were delivered
real originality
the last century
hands of
in the
in
Latin, which
founded at Berlin the
men
;
any In
among
first
In 18 10 the King of
German
University
were included
earliest professors
its
Humboldt, Wolff, Fichte, Schleiermaeker, and
like
Savigny
to
which had no confessional character
since the Reformation
or -object, and
fatal
Kant made Konigsberg famous, and Jena Fichte and Schelling became the theatre
of a great philosophical movement. Prussia
was
and comprehensiveness of teaching.
it
now numbers over 2000 students. With the German Universities had received
eighteenth century the a
new
lease of
life,
Berlin and Bonn.
which culminated It
in the foundations of
curious that, at a period of such
is
intense theological energy throughout Europe, Paris, which
had long been "the Queen
in that region to
whose decisions
every one submitted," entered on her period of decline.
But the causes of decay were external, and are not difficult The place itself, which was now the constant to explain. scene of
civil
able
learning.
for
strife
and bloodshed, was most unfavourBut,
more than
that,
the immediate
neighbourhood of a Court which claimed supreme control over the minds and consciences, as well as the its
subjects,
impossible.
made Thus
lives,
of
all
freedom of writing and teaching
in
1624 a Royal decree forbade on
pain of death any divergence from Aristotelian doctrines
on physical and metaphysical subjects, and Louis XIV.
would have instantly lodged
in the Bastille
any professor
2i6
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
who
contradicted his opinions.
It is
not wonderful then
that during the seventeenth century Paris lost nine out
of her forty colleges, or that, while two-thirds of the most distinguished
German writers belong to the Universities, name eminent in French literature since
scarcely a single
1660
is
connected with the Parisian
of faith at
last
or'
any other French
Enforced subscription to arbitrary professions
University.
completed the work of degradation, and when the University
with the destruction
fell
of her
property, the event was hardly noticed, nor has any French
Government
since the Revolution thought of restoring
it
Louvain, which had long been a
etiam pcriere ruincB.
flourishing University almost
fit
to
compete with
Paris,
was
strangled under a similar system of coercion, and her one great scholar in the last century,
when an
for his life
old
Van Espen, had
to fly
Leyden, on
of eighty-two.
by the Prince of Orange, and with
the other hand, founded far smaller resources, has
scholars,
man
produced a long
and known no period of decay
and Portuguese
Universities,
have suffered a
total
and
;
line of illustrious
while the Spanish
which once stood so high,
tragical
eclipse.
The Scotch
Universities are very inferior to the English, and the North
American, which are simply
institutions
for
conferring
degrees in law and theology, do not deserve the name.
Nor can any very high
praise be accorded to those
Denmark, Holland, Belgium, are as yet a
There
is
mere
exotic,
or Sweden.
of
In Russia they
imported from Germany.
no need here to follow Dr. Dollinger through
the long catalogue of illustrious philosophers, linguists, historians, w<7/^r,
and divines who have adorned
his
own
aluia
and who naturally found honourableand appreciative
GROWTH OF
ORIGIN AND mention on such
UNIVERSITIES.
an occasion.
includes
It
217
Schelling,
Baader, Savigny, Feuerbach, Stahl, Windischmann, Sailer,
Mohler, and
many
other memorable, though less widely
When
celebrated, names.
he comes
on the present and future of
conclusion to dwell
in
his country,
he points, as might
be expected, with pardonable pride to the bright prospect
opened before her through the restoration
of political unity,
and to the mission assigned by general consent
Germans of enriching other nations out of the their
scientific
and
remembered that
literary wealth
in
though
;
it
to the
fulness of
must be
much
former ages they have learnt
successively from Italy, from France, and from England.
He
and unwearied pursuit of
trusts that the single-minded
truth for
its
own sake
of Germany,
tion
centralisation
always continue to be a distinc-
will
and that she
which,
in
avoid that vicious
will
intellectual
culture
point
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; too
much
forgotten
in
imitation
of his
own, where he thinks that the College partially
supply a manifest and serious defect. is
his
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; he earnestly
the example of the English Universities to the
unknown except
system,
other
in
important
some recent schemes of
academical reform at Oxford and Cambridge
commends
as
On one
matters, has proved the ruin of France.
caution
against
the
danger
Tiibingen,
at
And
no
would
less earnest
of sensualism
and
materialism incident to a widespread cultivation of the natural sciences, especially
among
the half-educated, which
would inevitably prove the harbinger of national decay. Against that danger the Universities, to
their
defence. this
high position
and
duties,
if
only they are true
will
provide a sure
"Let us then," are the concluding words of
most instructive and eloquent discourse,
"
continue to
2i8
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
labour indefatigably,
in
a pure scientific
loyal self-devotion, to build
That
and with truth.
be an imperishable monument, surviving
will
changes
spirit,
up the one temple of
of
Germany."
fortune,
of
the
honour
and
greatness
all
of
XXV. JEWISH PATRIOTISM.
A
QUESTION was debated some years ago
teenth Ccntnry,
beyond the
which has an
particular
historical
occasion
and
in
the Nine-
practical interest
which suggested
It
it.
opens out indeed an inquiry of such wide significance and bearings alike in a religious, a national, and an historical sense, that a very cursory treatment of
its
leading speciali-
ties
can alone be attempted within our present
The
point in dispute
may
be thus stated.
It is
limits.
maintained
on one side that the Jews are simply a religious
sect,
standing in the same relation as any other religious sect
say Unitarians or Methodists
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to their countrymen, having
the same stake in the national welfare, and the same claim
on the privileges and rights of this view, as represented all
"
desire to curtail
the
citizens.
The opponents
of
by Mr. Goldwin Smith, disclaim civil
'
privileges of Jews.
They
do not wish to repeal Jewish any more than Catholic
Emancipation" religious party
please, but
first
but just as they look suspiciously on that
;
who
profess
to be "
Englishmen,
Catholics," so they think there
is
if
you
some-
thing in the specific character of Judaism that requires political action to is
its
be watched with a jealousy which there
no need to exercise over the
political
action of the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
220
members of any other Judaism
is
a religious
not, like
community,
religious
Methodism
but a distinction of race
belief,
because
or Unitarianism, merely also.
does
It
not quite meet this difficulty to ask, with Dr. Adler, than
whom own
no more competent authority can be found on his
side of the question,
Jewish religion
whether
" the sacred
books of the
to inculcate the virtue of patriotism "
fail
There can be no doubt whatever that patriotism
more strongly inculcated and
ment than
the
in
New.
illustrated in the
But then
it
is
is
?
far
Old Testa-
the patriotism of
the Jewish nation, as such, which was then indissolubly
bound up with it,
"
As Mr. Lecky
their religious belief.
puts
In Judsea the spirit of patriotism and of sect were
united
;
each intensified
intolerance which
the
and
other,
the
exclusive
the result of each existed with double
is
The grandest
religious traditions of the
Jews
were associated with their national triumphs, and
the
virulence."
Mosaic
Law
distinctions
accepts and
consecrates
rules of dealing with strangers is
equally and
maintain and those
Mosaic dispensation that
it
national
which are certainly abhorrent to modern ideas
of the universal brotherhood of man,
fact
exclusive
inevitably
who deny ;
as, e.ÂŁ^., in
the different
and with countrymen. admitted
the Divine authorship of the
though the former reasonably
marks a temporary and necessary stage
gradual education of mankind, and they in defence of this view to
This
by those who
the
clear
may
insist
in
the
justly point
superiority
of the
Hebrew over contemporary heathen systems in the matter It is further argued by of humane and equitable dealing. Mr. Goldwin Smith, as evidencing the exclusively national character of the Jewish religion, that
Warburton
is
clearly
JEWISH PATRIOTISM. maintaining that there
right in
is
no trace
Testament of the doctrine of a future doubt some ground
in
Old
the
There
Hfe.
no
is
Warburton's contention, but his
for
statements in the Divine Legation are as grossly exaggerated as the ingenious paradox he built upon them
However,
eccentric.
may be
it
be the value of the admission
admitted
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; whatever
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that temporal
is
may
blessings are
the main inducements to righteousness held out under the
Old Law.
The
point
dwelt on, with his usual vigour
is
and subtlety of thought, by a writer as unlike Warburton as the late Professor Mozley, in one of his
So
essays.
far then,
while patriotism
prominent characteristic of Judaism, ing the
Hebrew people
in close
it is
bonds of
relationship with each other, but
posthumous
unquestionably a
is
a patriotism bindreligious
would seem
and
civil
at first sight
likely rather to hinder than to help their fusion into
one
homogeneous body with the various nations among whom their lot may be cast in their present state of dispersion. And when we speak to-day of the patriotism of the Jews,
we mean of course to inquire, not whether they were when they dwelt as one nation under the shadow
patriotic
of the Temple, of which there can be no sort of doubt, but
whether they are
to
likely
be patriotic citizens now of
England or France or any other European country where they have found a home. If
we look back on
destruction of the
the history of the Jews since the
Temple
they were regarded
in
of Jerusalem,
we
shall find that
a peculiar light, quite differently
from any other class of
religionists, first in
Empire, and then
community of
in the
which gradually took
its
place.
the
Roman
Christian States
Under the Empire they
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
222
were not subjected to such severe and persistent persecution as the Christians
and Mr. Lecky
;
probably right
is
thinking that this was mainly owing to the tribal and
in
which gave them
" inexpansive " nature of their religion,
no desire to direct
and constant
On
tutions.
and so
proselytise,
far
collision with
the other hand,
is
it
literature of the period that they
hatred and contempt of their
brought them into
Roman
from the
clear
in
the
classical
had incurred the deepest
Roman
masters
reacted on the popular estimate of the
were long regarded
less
ideas and insti-
Empire
and
;
this
Christians, v/ho
as
a
Jewish
sect,
with the additional demerit of an obstinate passion for
propagandism. Christians,
who
To
this
it
must be added that the early
generally viewed the Empire as a special
embodiment of Antichrist, could
not, in spite of their rigid
view of the duty of absolute submission to authority,
any very ardent sympathy and
When
for its welfare.
ecclesiastical organization of mediseval
succeeded to the rule of Pagan Rome,
we
feel
the civil
Europe had still
find
the
Jews holding an exceptional position everywhere, which, however, exposed them
now
not only to bitterer obloquy
but to sharper persecution than other dissentient is fair
St.
to
remember
Bernard
that several Popes and Saints
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; creditably
sects.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
It
as, e.g.,
exerted themselves to screen the
victims of so deep and universal an unpopularity, but, as
a
rule,
Jews were looked upon with even a deeper detesta-
tion than the
most detested
heretical sects.
Intermarriage
with them was denounced as a horrible pollution, and in
France and Spain any one taking a Jewish mistress was
liable to
be burnt to death.
St.
Thomas Aquinas main-
tained that their property might at any time be confiscated.
JEWISH PATRIOTISM. because
it
was gained by usury.
moment excusing subjected,
it
is
Without of course
for a
the horrible cruelties to which they were
difficult to believe that there
the character of the race to
in
223
sentiment of distrust.
explain
was nothing universal
this
And, apart from the charges of
usury, slave-holding, crucifixion of Christian children,
the
like, their isolation
ests, to
had
from
which Dean Merivale
certainly a
good deal
all
and
national aims and inter-
refers in his
to do. with
it
Roman
History,
:
The Jew,
with, a spirit no less restless, with propensities migratory, neither conquered nor colonised nor civilised. He intruded himself silently and pertinaciously into every known corner of the globe and no one could say wherefore he came or what was the object of his sojourn. His presence in foreign lands was marked by no peculiar aim or mission. He cultivated neither literature nor art, nor even commerce on a great scale or as a national pursuit. He subsisted for the most part by the exercise of active industry in petty dealings, evaded as much as he could the public burdens of the nations among whom he dwelt, while their privileges he neither sought nor coveted, and distinguished himself alike in every quarter, under every form of government, and in the midst of every social system, by rigid adherence to the forms of an obscure and exclusive creed.
no
less
;
That something of the same Christian side
may be
Liberals, while strongly religious disabilities,
feeling
inferred
survives on the
many
opposed to the general principle of
were found some years ago
who denounced "the
with those
still
from the fact that
in alliance
unchristianizing of our
Legislature," in their opposition to the emancipation
the Jews.
On
the other hand,
if
and Christians was considered a pollution Europe, the
JeivisJi
of
the intermarriage of Jews
World has quite
in
mediaeval
lately deprecated
it
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
224
on the very
intelligible
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ground that
it
must eventually lead
to an absolute extinction of Judaism.
does then seem obvious that Judaism
It
Methodism or any other merely nationalism
religious
the circumstance that
in
it
denotes a "tribal"
The same might be
as well as a theological distinction. said, mutatis mutandis, of
from
differs
form of denomi-
Mormonism, which
also does not
constitute a purely theological platform, but aspires to the
formation, as Judaism implies the preservation, of a special
form of national
any
for
But before
life.
this distinction
is
applied
purpose to the actual condition and
practical
claims of the Jews in the States of modern Europe, one or
two important considerations have In the
first
place, as indeed Mr.
to be borne in mind.
Goldwin Smith himself
admits, " before Christianity all religions were tribal," and
of
these
highest.
may
religions
tribal
And
it
is
Judaism
not be tending, under the intellectual
influences of the
and more
modern world,
universal.
And
among
the Jews of our
to
become
and
it
social
less exclusive
notice
the
two
parties, or rather
two
own
day, the one adhering
this
significant fact that there are sects,
was confessedly the
therefore natural to inquire whether
us to
leads
closely to their traditional creed, while the religion of the
other
is
hardly distinguishable from theism, and the latter
party are said to be rapidly gaining ground. this
process of disintegration should
satisfaction or the reverse
view,
is
another question.
there can be no
of the theistic, istic
section
from a
But
more reason or, as
Whether
be regarded with
strictly religious point of
it is
at all events clear that
for questioning the patriotism
they are sometimes called, rational-
of Jews, as such, than for
questioning the
JEWISH PATRIOTISM. patriotism
time
of, e.g.,
narrow and traditional type patriotism in a fusion of
there
is
And
Unitarians, as such.
must be remembered
it
modern
that,
at the
to be
inimical
to
as hindering the genuine
Jews with any nationality other than
also a point of view
same
Judaism of the
if
held
is
State,
225
their own,
from which Christianity
may
be regarded as a counter influence to patriotism, and that precisely because
The
it
is
not a tribal but a universal
been urged
has often
criticism
emphasis, and even pushed to paradoxical sceptical writers, but a
that
If there
just now, that
an exclusively national
lengths
moment's consideration
has a certain weight.
it
argument noticed
from
faith
is
any
Judaism its
faith.
with exaggerated
is
will
by
show
force in the
prov^ed to be
appealing to temporal
rewards and punishments only, the converse must hold true,
that a religion based on supernatural sanctions, and
which bids
its
votaries look for their recompense not in this
world but
in
the next, has a tendency to denationalise
them by withdrawing
And
their
minds from earthly and secular
and concentrating them on the world unseen.
interests
thus the early Christians were out of
the social
and
political
life
of the
because the language of St. Paul and
them
to look
on
Rome
as
harmony with
Empire, not merely St.
John had taught
an Anti-christian power, but
because there were laws and customs obligatory on citizens to
their
all
which they could not conform without violating
religious
belief.
this contrariety or
It
is
another
way
of expressing
divergence of character to say that the
heroic and the saintly ideal, though not of course incompatible,
do not exactly coincide.
Saints,
and especially
martyrs, are sometimes loosely designated Christian heroes.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
226
may
and there
be some,
the designation
like St.
Louis of France, to
whom
pecuharly appropriate, but, broadly
is
speaking, heroism and sanctity represent different though
To
not inconsistent types of excellence.
Athenians as national heroes, but
it
would be
any point of view to regard them as words. Christian piety
may
Roman
allegiance of
its
allegiance,"
in
some years so
all
interests of its
necessarily
Hence
civil
prominent
as
far
membership of a second and
was the case
first
taken shape in
This need not and ordinarily
members.
recall a phrase very "
as
it,
visible organization claiming the religious
does not interfere with their
Vaticanism
from
In other
Empire.
Moreover Christianity has from the
some kind of
difficult
saints.
not identical with patriotism, and
is
even conceivably conflict with
under the
"
put an extreme
Harmodius and Aristogeiton were reverenced by the
case,
duties, but
it
does
in the controversy
ago
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; introduce Christian
the
" a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to
about
divided
recognises his
having independent laws
society,
own, and whose boundaries are not at
conterminous with those of the nation.
the frequent rivalries of Church and State, which
were unknown under the Jewish and Pagan systems of government, where Church and State were one.
happen here and there that run, so to speak, in the
religious
and
It
may
patriotic zeal
same groove, and thus the course
of history served at one time to identify Catholicism with
the national character of Spain, and Protestantism with the national character of England.
As
a
rule,
distinct,
But that
is
an accident.
the Christian and the national sentiment are
and may therefore become divergent or
antagonistic forces.
And
thus
if
even
the patriotism of Jews
JEWISH PATRIOTISM.
may may
227
be plausibly disputed, the patriotism of Christians be,
and has been,
Catholics,
unjustly
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
instance,
for
one sense very
for plausible but in
The
opposite reasons, disputed also.
was distrusted
loyalty of English
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as
a
the reign of Elizabeth, and the
in
rule
quite
Huguenots
were notoriously out of harmony with national sentiment in France.
a Jew
who
The
Judaism cannot loyalty
to
because his
a
result
seems to be that
heart-v/hole
is
at the
in
in the abstract
his loyalty
to
traditional
same time be heart-whole
in his
modern, and especially a Christian State,
own
nation,
though at present dispersed and
with no visible prospect of restoration, has a prior and
paramount claim upon Englishman suasion,
or
him.
On
other
the
Frenchman, of whatever
remains simply an
and can have no temptation
may
per-
Englishman or Frenchman, to prefer the interests of
other nation to those of England or France. siastical
hand, an
religious
But
take precedence of national interests
any
ecclein
his
mind, as was objected to the Ultramontane advisers of Louis Napoleon who were said to have forced him into the Franco-Prussian war. tical
danger to the State
From which is
seems hardly worth while to
most
discuss,
seriously proposes to deprive either
of equal
quarter
to be
any prac-
apprehended
it
inasmuch as no one
Jews or Ultramontanes
civil rights.
Q
2
XXVI.
THE yUDENHASS It
is
a curious and at
IN HISTORY. sight perplexing fact that
first
there has always been something strained and abnormal in
There
the relations of Christianity and Judaism.
is
a kind
of historical symbolism in the story of the drunken sailor
who
Good
thrashed a ]e\Y on
heard of the Crucifixion. again for centuries as
if
Friday, because he had just
Christians have acted again and
they had only just heard of the
offences of the Jews in days long past, and did not care to
draw
nice distinctions between the sins of the fathers
the children
;
while the Jews,
if
any
credit
is
to mediaeval chroniclers, have retaliated savagely
when they happened if
to
and
to be attached
have an opportunity.
enough
It looks as
an armed neutrality were the nearest approach to peace
that could be established between the rival creeds.
some apparently
inscrutable reason no considerable
For
body
of Christians seems to have been able to regard the Jews
with that feeling of mere indifference or compassion which is
entertained
circumstances
by the most orthodox of
temporary
towards other forms of
and
religion,
believers, except
special
such as
Mahometanism or
Buddhism, diverging yet more widely from
When
the Jews have not been
under
provocation,
their
own.
hated with a passionate
THE JUDENHASS and
fanatical hatred, as has
they have
— at least
nocuous
And
— been
loved with an
though comparatively
uncritical
affection.
thus
own day
our
in
grown up on what
periodical literature has
229
been too commonly the case,
modern times
in
equally strange and
IN HISTORY.
Anglo-Israel movement, which counts
its
called the
is
circulation
hundreds of thousands, and includes a bishop and a Indian judge with
among the
meetings, and the
like,
machinery of newspapers,
public
has been formed for the purpose of
maintaining that the Lost Tribes have found their
England, and that the Jew
in
unhappily an alien
in creed,
is
our brother
Such
to find their
however
silly crazes,
own
level.
in
home
blood,
if
and should be restored by
English arms or diplomacy to the sacred own.^
by
retired
contributors, while an organized
its
all
society,
in-
a vast
soil
ridiculous,
But they serve to
which
is
may be
illustrate
his left
from
another side the curious phenomenon already mentioned of
some
occult tension
which
Christians,
is
in
the
relations
of
Jews
and
apt to take the shape of paradoxical
may serve to modify our contemptuous ridicule of mediaeval and fanaticisms to remember that, towards the close of the nineteenth century, a body of ostensibly educated Englishmen, considerable in point of numbers, has deliberately set itself to propagate what is in ^
It
follies
fact a
new
religion,
—that
having for one of
its
not least credible articles of
Abbey is that on which Jacob's head rested at Bethel, which Jeremiah and Baruch, after the Captivity, conveyed to Ireland, being wrecked by the way on the Spanish coast, where it fell into the hands of the " King of Spain," whoever he may have been, and was rescued from him by its prophetic faith
;
the Coronation Stone at Westminster
who eventually deposited it at the Irish village of Tara, so named from Thora (the Jewish Law), with various other equally remarkable Taradiddles. The strangest legends in the lives of the bearers,
—
saints
are a
mythology.
trifle
after
this
marvellous
specimen of
Protestant
230
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
sympathy when
does not break out into a storm
it
of
fanatical antipathy.
This chronic feud, which still
is
shown by recent experience
to retain a perilous vitality,
yesterday.
It
as
is
old
of course no growth of
is
the
as
Christian
and was
era,
already at work long before the conversion of the Empire.
At
first
indeed the
Christians
a
as
mere
Roman Emperors sect
rather to despise than to persecute
Jews on the whole, at
Rome, escaped
in their favour,
looked on
them
in spite of their
persecution.
tells
us
For the
as such.
numbers and influence
Augustus issued a
which was confirmed by two
how Domitian imposed on them
special taxation, but this appears to
rescript
later edicts of
the proconsuls, Agrippa and Julius Antonius.
indeed
the
were disposed
of Jews, and
Suetonius a severe
and
have been more with
the object of replenishing an exhausted exchequer than
The Emperor
from any general motive of policy.
naturally petted them, desiring for ends of his
build the Temple.
And
own
Julian to re-
yet Jews were perhaps the most
hated, from various causes, of
all
Roman
subjects;
they
were held notorious, as we learn from Cicero, Juvenal, and other writers of the day, as the most sordid, most turbulent,
and most unsocial of mankind. But the exclusively national and therefore unaggressive character of their religion preserved them from the overt hostility provoked by Christian proselytism.
They were hated and
were not feared.
No
despised,
doubt they had spread
but they in
Rome
even the Empress Poppa?a was said to be a convert, and is
it
surmised by Gibbon that through her influence the Jews
escaped proscription under Nero passion for Jewish rites
;
Juvenal
among Roman
tells
ladies,
us of the
and Josephus
THE yUDENHASS
IN HISTORY.
has an extraordinary story of an exorcism performed
by a Jew named himself witnessed, when the demon was the reign of Vespasian
through the
nostrils of the
whole Judaism, unlike unexpansive creed
;
drawn out But on the
was an
essentially
the Jews simply held aloof from other
silent disdain,
religionists in
visibly
person possessed.
Christianity,
in
Eleazar, which he
and neither denounced nor
And
attempted to convert them.
thus, in spite of their
hatred of the Gentile world and their frequent and bloody rebellions against their
Roman
most part
they were
let
alone
;
masters, they were for the
But they detested the Christians,
not
whom
worth
attacking.
they regarded as
renegades from the Law, with a peculiar detestation, and, as Justin Martyr informs us, did their utmost to foment the
calumnies and passions of
the
Pagan populace against
In Milman's words, " the Jew,
them.
power of persecuting,
to the heathen persecutor against those
apostates."
heathen tians, â&#x20AC;˘
They took
in the
who had
lost the
lent himself as a willing instrument
a
whom
he considered
more prominent part than the
martyrdom of
Polycarp.
St.
The
Chris-
on the other hand, exulted over the downfall of
Jerusalem and the dispersion of fulfilment of
citizens,
its
as a signal
prophecy and triumph of the Gospel.
And
thus already, during the ages of persecution and while both alike
were pressed down under the iron heel of Rome, the
seeds of a bitter antipathy were
The
Gnostics, the
even went so
sown between
most widely-spread
far as to treat the
them.
sect of early heretics,
Jewish religion as the work
of the Demiurgos, an inferior deity, or of the Principle of Evil
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; a view which
is
obliquely censured in the Seventh of
the Thirty-Nine Articles.
232
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. antagonism was not
pre-existing
I'his
likely
be
to
diminished when at length after three centuries of
trial
and suffering the
Christians, through the conversion of
Con-
stantine, got the
upper hand.
some
Moreover the
rise of
Judaizing sects within the Christian body, and several cases of actual apostasy, had served just then to accentuate the
The Jews
prevalent feeling against the obnoxious race.
were accused of stoning converts from their own Christianity,
ingly
and of other enormities.
made a law sentencing and
burnt,
also
punishing
who
property any Christians of Jews, as
persecution
who took
themselves dealt
who
those
with
so acted to be
of
confiscation
But
apostatized.
of heretics,
the lead.
faith to
Constantine accord-
was the
it
The Arian
their
the
in
heretics
Constantius
more severely with them than Constantine, and the
Visigoths at a later day showed themselves more intolerant
than
manded
on the other
Theodosius,
either.
mob had wrecked
Christian it
hand, when
related
The
to be rebuilt at their expense.
alleged case of their crucifying a Christian
on them
so frequently charged
by Socrates {Ecd.
a
a Jewish synagogue, com-
Hist.,
in vii.
the
boy
earliest
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;a
crime
middle ages
i6) as
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
having taken
place at Inmestar, a place between Chalcis and Antioch in
He
Syria.
records
it
as a fact, without the slightest inti-
mation of any doubt, and says that the perpetrators were searched out and punished.
As we come down
middle ages there were various
influences
at
sustain or intensify this anti-Jewish sentiment, to their trol.
own
Among
conduct,
some
the last
may
movement, which, however,
to causes
beyond
to the
work
to
some due their con-
be reckoned the crusading as will
appear presently,
in
THE yUDENHASS other ways
IN HISTORY.
Aheady
them.
indirectly benefited
the
at
beginning of the eleventh century, when the prevalent idea
Coming
that the Second
of our Lord was at
hand had led
to a great outburst of penitence and devotion, which found
one expression
crowded pilgrimages
in
in
Holy Sepulchre and other
Jerusalem razed
Christian
the ground.
to
rumoured, whether with
fierce persecu-
and had the
tion of the Christians of Palestine,
of the
Holy Land,
to the
Hakim, the Sultan of Egypt, organized a
or without
Church
buildings
was currently
It
grounds, that
the
Jews of Orleans had instigated him, and a savage persecution of
Jews
in
France was the
When
result.
close of the century the preaching of Peter the
had roused
seemed
Europe
all
distinguish
later period
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
it
required even in
energy and courage
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to
tinction between the
press on
cities,
his
the
At
by
incited
Bernard confronted him
slight display of
them the obvious
dis-
a
in all
frightful
outbreak in the
monk named
Rudolph.
the dignity of Christian
heroism, and denounced the outrage in the severest terms "it
was not
for
a
enormous
armed Saracen and the defenceless
There had again been a
German
in
the Rhineland.
him no
to
and another,
massacre of Jews
Germany and
Bernard used the whole of
St.
crusade, it
not presumptuous,
if
class of misbelievers
a terrible
flourishing cities of
Jew.
needless,
between one
and there ensued
first
enthusiasm of the newly-enlisted
to the ardent
soldiers of the Cross
influence
to undertake the
at the
Hermit
men
God had punished by
to
punish by murder those
their dispersion."
Emperor Henry IV. had done
his
Jews, not perhaps from motives of
best
;
whom
Meanwhile the to protect
the
unmixed benevolence.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
234
for while he ordered a strict restitution to be made to all who had been plundered of their wealth, he decreed that the property of those who had been put to death had
In France
escheated to the imperial treasury.
more than
a century afterwards Philip the Fair plundered impartially his
Jewish and Christian subjects, but the enormous wealth
of
the former was a tempting bait, and twice during
they were expelled from the country and their
his reign
whole property confiscated.
In the next reign they had
again become numerous and prosperous, and this time
they tempted the cupidity not of the monarch but of the
mob
throughout the south of France, in town and country
;
they were mercilessly massacred and pillaged, and
alike,
the royal officers refused to protect them.
At
the end of
the fourteenth century they were expelled from France altogether under Charles VI.
The
vast wealth amassed
by the Jews explains one main
cause of their unpopularity, which was further aggravated
by the way all
in
which they had obtained
it.
Usury had
along been strongly condemned by the patristic and
mediaeval Church, and as
it
was forbidden
to Christians
by
laws both of Church and State, the usurers in the early
middle ages were almost exclusively Jews, who adopted the profession partly as being one of the very few open to
them, partly for
Some were
may
notion in
the huge
profits
it
secured them.
be formed of the rate of interest they
the habit of charging from
Augustus of France limiting them
an edict of Philip
to 48 per cent.
The
crusades, however, led to a revival of commercial enterprise,
and
this
brought orthodox Catholics into amicable
relations with both
Jews and Mahometans, and tended to
THE yUDENHASS
IN HISTORY.
soften the prejudice against them.
remember
ecclesiastics
ledged
many
that
to
fair also to
some other leading
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as the Jewish historian Bedarride has acknow-
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; made
efforts
only
It is
of the Popes, and
235
though not always successful
strenuous,
the violence of their assailants
arrest
whom
Alexander VI., of
there
is
not too
even
;
much good
to
be recorded, distinguished himself by his generosity to the Jews, and did
all
in his
power to
But the general sentiment ran it
found utterance both
They were compelled -a distinctive dress
alleviate their sufferings.
entirely the other way,
the canon and the
in
to live in separate quarters
enter into partnership,
still
less
a Jewish mistress was to be burnt alive criminal
At
between two dogs. it
;
till
by
the fourteenth
the beginning of the sixteenth
was proposed by the theologians of Germany
literature
the Old Testament,
Paris, to destroy
of the Jews, with the exception of
and
it
required
all
the influence of
Reuchlin to avert this wholesale proscription. burnt of course in large
They were
numbers, like heretics, by the
Spanish Inquisition before their in
;
who took
head downwards
was hung
and France, backed by the University of the whole
and wear
intermarry with them
the laws both of France and Spain a Christian
century
and law.
Christians might not eat, or bathe, or
;
century a Jewish
civil
expulsion from Spain
final
1495 by Ferdinand and Isabella
atrocity of the Spanish persecutions
;
is
but the exceptional in either case to
be
explained mainly by the peculiar conditions of the national history and character, on which to
enlarge
here.
had succeeded
in
In
the
it
Italian
would be out of place republics,
where they
making themselves indispensable
to the
Christian community, they were tolerated and protected in
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
236
their rights,
and were allowed to practise as physicians,
which was elsewhere forbidden.
But they were tolerated
because they were needed, not because they were loved or Besides the reproach of usury, the stigma of
repected.
slaveholding had from a very early period attached to
them, and one of the
most
as
by imperial
and most frequent, as well
first
measures
legitimate,
was
legislators
against
them
manumission of
their
directed
the
The number of the Christian slaves bought up by them was among the complaints of Agobard Christian slaves.
in the ninth century.
not
much
Christians,
on the other hand, had
scruple about enslaving Jews.
There was usually
fanaticism and
less of
interest in the policy of Christian
them than remembered
in
and
the popular sentiment,
that,
having no
more of
it
must
all
the Jews in
exacted 66,000 marks
England
into
ransom
their
for
King
;
prison,
on
day
by ordering one of
till
he
comphed.
his teeth to
In
threat of hanging
the
them
if
III.
exacted
1255, 8000
under
they refused compliance.
same reign Dispenser, the
Jews
in
Jew of
be drawn every
Henry
1241
20,000 marks of them, and again,
in order to extort a large
justiciary,
and
another
occasion he extorted 70,000 marks from a single Bristol,
be
rights or status^ they
civil
were normally beyond the protection of the law.
John threw
self-
governments towards
In
imprisoned 500
ransom from the wealthier
of them, and then abandoned the rest to the fury of the populace,
who massacred them
children.
In 1255 eighteen Jews were hanged, and their
all,
men, women, and
goods confiscated to the royal exchequer, on the charge, recorded by Matthew Paris and Chaucer, of crucifying a
THE JUDENHASS Christian boy,
Du Cange
known
IN HISTORY.
Hugh
afterwards as St.
237
of Lincohi.^
mentions a French law forbidding the con-
version of Jews to Christianity, under pain of forfeiture of goods
and chattels
to the king, as the convert
would no
longer have the opportunity of amassing usurious wealth
which Christian sovereigns could plunder; the law
is
apocryphal.
Edward
politic
than his predecessors
In his
first
and
principal
their
less
at
in
livelihood.
They coin, a
means of
when the
at a time
to be divided into halves
one year, and
England were thrown
money on
once of their occu-
than 280 of them were hanged
London only
in
into prison,
marks extorted from them.
silver
and quarters.
for this offence in
1287
all
and a
the Jews
fine of
in
12,000
In 1290 they were finally
expelled from the country, under pain of death
remained or returned, and
less
with the Jews.
and adulterating the
not so easily detected
penny was allowed
No
must be hoped
year they were forbidden to lend
took, therefore, to clipping
fraud
it
was sterner and
in his dealings
which was to deprive them
interest,
pation
I.
Hume
if
they
observes that "very few
of that nation have lived in England since."
We
have
seen already that within the next two centuries they were
banished from France and Spain. It will ^
for
be clear from this brief sketch
that, for
one cause
The best-known example of these mediaeval stories of crucifixion, some of which there may possibly have existed a basis in fact, is Bacharach on the Rhine from
that of St. Werner,
whose ruined chapel
whither his body
said to have miraculously floated 'up stream
is
at
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
will be familiar to English There are many more alleged cases of these boy-martyrs, as, ^., St. William of Norwich in 1144; St. Robert of Bury St. Edmunds in 1181 St. Rudolf of Berne in 1287 a boy murdered at Trent in Holy Wee'c 1475 and St. Robert of Poland in 1598.
Oberwesel, where he was martyred
tourists. <?.
;
;
;
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
238
or another, there has been a chronic antipathy between
Jew and
sometimes
Christian,
smouldering,
bursting into flame, from the time his
back on
stirred
" the unbelieving Jews,"
up the Gentiles against him.
observed that even
a protracted
Roman
their part
has been already-
the natural
after the
home
of
emancipation of
Catholics, and not then
struggle, in
ranged on opposite
sometimes
Paul turned
Emancipation did not follow
above a quarter of a century
Dissenters and
St.
who on It
in this country,
religious toleration, Jewish till
when
till
after
which professed Liberals
w^ere
There were many
sides.
like the late
Dr. Arnold, including some of Jewish descent though no longer of the Jewish ignore,
for
differences
faith,
who were eager
to
merge or
even ecclesiastical purposes,
or
political
however wide
among
professing
all
Christians,
while they argued that aliens not in creed but in race had
no part or monwealth. here.
It
lot in the
There
must
is
administration of a Christian com-
no need to reopen that discussion
suffice to
have traced the broad outlines of
the history of that JiidcnJiass, which in these closing years of the nineteenth century
still
shows
itself
strong enough
to
foment bitter antipathy and even provoke deadly feuds
in
more than one country of Europe.
XXVII. REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE.
On
Sunday
the
after Sir Gilbert Scott's death,
Dean
Stanley preached a sermon which was published under the title
The
of "
Religious Aspect of Gothic Architecture."
contains, as might be expected, a
good deal that
though not particularly new, but
it
from the inveterate passion its
The
versatile author.
which
is
closely
for
revival of Gothic architecture,
and notoriously connected with the great
of the discourse. to
be,
what
Christian
careful to
unknown
"
That
style has
Mr. Ruskin
calls
it,
suggested of
how
arose
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
it
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; no
"
Of course
to justify, the
therefore
He
adds that
explanation being
it is
far to explain, if not is
so delusive
was undoubtedly unknown to and sufficiently obvious reasons
style
the early Christians, for
if it
by Catholic
this is true in a sense, but
seeming paradox that nothing
The Gothic
is
was altogether
died as completely as
one of those statements which go
as facts.
it
existed, being " repudiated alike
and Protestant." just
it
one specifically
the
antiquity."
after flourishing for four centuries
had never
the main subject
Dr. Stanley
style of architecture.
Pagan or Christian
is
been generally considered
begin by observing that
to
free
paradox characteristic of
religious revival of the present century,
"
by no means
is
It
true,
is
;
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
2-p
it
was rejected throughout Europe,
at the period of the
Renaissance, in CathoUc and Protestant countries ahke, for
But to
reasons not less easy of apprehension. this with the
infer
any peculiarly Christian and indeed peculiarly
possess
Catholic significance, but has nearer affinities with testantism, and
was therefore
churches
Catholic
of
churches
Protestant
of
first
restored "
England,
the
all
the
is
The first
at
more
the the
in
betray
to
as
deeper bearings
Let us look
of the question as could well be conceived. little
Pro-
among
than
rather
Continent,"
complete a misapprehension of
a
from
preacher that Gothic architecture does not
closely into the matter.
Christians
early
did
not
build
Gothic churches,
because they did not, and could not, build churches
Lord Shaftesbury had probably forgotten
all.
when he once
said,
on a memorable occasion, that
"
this
he had
rather worship with Lydia on the river's side than with
hundreds of surpliced
priests in the
temple of
St.
Barna-
bas"; but a professed scholar and historian might have been expected to remember persecution had passed
it.
away and
And when
the age of
Christians began to erect
temples for their worship, they naturally adopted the style
they found prevailing around them they
indeed basilicas
adopted
the
actual
;
certain
in
buildings,
and
cases
thus
were turned from courts of justice into Christian
churches.
The next
four centuries were
occupied with
theological controversy and the gradual construction of the edifice of Catholic
period of great
"
dogma, and then followed the dark
Europe's middle night," only broken by the
religious
reformation
eleventh century.
of the
In the twelfth
second
half of the
century Gothic archi-
REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE. Mr. Lecky puts
Christianity, as
tecture arose.
241
has
it,
created three things which have been recognised as special
types and expressions of
church first is
fifth
bell,
rehgious
"
sentiment,
the
The
attributed to Paulinus, bishop of Nola, early in the
century; the second took
was imported century
;
into
origin in
its
the East,
was due to the reawakening sense of beauty
interpreted
by
the Christian instinct of the twelfth century.
became the channel of the
and the
religious enthusiasm
purest expression of the religious feeling of the age,
gave abundant scope
There
fice."
baseness
and
Western Christendom about the seventh
the third, like the revival of painting which soon
followed,
It
its
the organ, and the Gothic cathedral."
in
is,
for the display of the "
lamp of
to cite Mr. Ruskin's words,
"an
and
sacri-
essential
the Renaissance, and an essential nobleness in
the Gothic, consisting simply in the pride of the one and
the humility of the other." subject from a
somewhat
Mr. Lecky, who approaches the
different point of view, coincides
entirely in Mr. Ruskin's estimate of the specifically Christian character of Gothic architecture.
He
observes that no
other building that the world has seen can rival a Gothic cathedral in producing a sensation of blended tranquillity, rest
the rebellion of the intellect, and creating that un-
most
but
worldly "
Church which
terrorism,
He
awe and
harmonizing or assuaging passion, lulling to
acts
atmosphere
befitting
a
and by images of solemn and entrancing beauty."
adds very justly
feeling
impressive
on the imagination by obscurity and
that, in proportion as these
have prevailed
or
fallen
into
modes of
disrepute,
Gothic
architecture has been rapturously admired, or has sunk into disfavour
and neglect.
It
was natural therefore that
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
!.
AND BICGRAPHY.
a form of architecture which was distinctively Christian,
and
" in
which the highest sense of beauty was subordinated
to the religious sentiment," should have arisen at a time
when
the dense
ignorance that
had overspread Europe
during the ninth and tenth centuries was yielding to a great revival of moral and intellectual energy under the control of the Church. "
was equally natural
It
that,
when
the moral and intellectual chaos that preceded the Re-
formation " was universal, when painting had been secularised,
and had passed entirely into the worship of sensuous
beauty, the Gothic style should be everywhere superseded
by one which some persons may consider more but which religious
is
The dominant
character.
Europe produced by the countries
beautiful,
universally admitted to be wholly devoid of a
issued
in
feeling
Protestantism, in
throughout
which
Renaissance,
others
some
in
in
a
kind
of diluted and rationalistic Catholicism, was a passionate recoil
from mediaeval Christianity to classical antiquity,
which might be summed up burne's "
O
Hymn
lips that the live
fairly
to Proserpine " blood faints
in,
enough
in
the leavings of racks and rods
1
all
men abase them
before you in
spirit,
!
Gods and all knees bend,
ghastly glories of Saints, dead limbs of gibbeted
Though
Mr. Swin-
:
!
kneel not, neither adore you, but standing, look to the end.
It
was not an age
to appreciate the great
works of those
who have only "left us their adoration." analogy may indeed be traced between the
A
certain
contrast of
Gothic and classical styles of architecture and the contrast of Christian and classical scenery, which his Kosnios
is
modes
illustrated
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;by the
entire
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as
of appreciating natural
Humboldt
points out in
absence of descriptive poetry
REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE.
among
Greeks and Romans, whereas
the
expanded the views of men
He
nature."
Gregory Nazianzen
St.
retreat
upon and
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; which
Newman's
very justly
forest
life
"
:
is
quoted
also
Iris in
(in
the
to his friend
St. Basil's
Historical Sketches
on the banks of the
it
Christianity
proof of this a striking letter
cites in
middle of the fourth century) of
connection in
"
communion with
their
in
243
in a different
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; describing his
Pontus, and observes
In this simple description of scenery
feelings
are
expressed, which
intimately in unison with those of modern
more
are
times than
anything that has been transmitted to us from Greek or
Roman
antiquity."
And
^
the last century, which decried
Gothic as a barbarous monstrosity, could see nothing in a Swiss mountain but an object of shuddering disgust, and
would have found Coleridge's magnificent in the Vale of
Sunrise
Chamouni"
as
Hymn
"
before
unmeaning and
unmusical as a Gregorian chant. It
quite
is
repudiated,
Dean
Protestant alike
pudiated
it
then that
true
as
architecture
was
by Catholic
and
Gothic
Stanley
says,
"
the sixteenth century
" in
in virtue of
;
but they
were at that time dominated, entirely alien to the
And,
historical Christianity.
re-
an influence, by which both alike
as always
happens
spirit in
of
such
once formed survived and outran the
cases, the false taste
direct operation of the causes
which had
first
produced
it.
In the sixteenth century our greatest writers, like Spenser
and Shakspeare, have no word of sympathy, appreciation, or regret for Gothic architecture.
published not
Abbe
many
Corblet, on 1
A
curious
work was
years ago by a French priest, the
the Architecture of the Middle Ages
Kosmos,
vol.
ii.
p. 394.
Bohn's
edition.
R
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
244
judged by
among
who spoke
of
it,
not only without apprecia-
with mere unquahfied contempt, appear the
but
tion,
of the EigJiteenth Century, and
Writers
the
those
names— strangely combined
in
any common sentiment
of Fenelon, Bossuet, Moliere, Fleury, Rollin, Montesquieu
La Bruyere, Helvetius, Rousseau, Mengs, and Voltaire. Some reached the height of grotesque absurdity in their depreciatory
assumptions.
of Mithra
;
;
Dupuis
thought
the
Montluisant explained the sculptures on the
fagade of Notre stone
Thus
on cathedrals were a remnant of the worship
zodiacs
Dame by
the science of the philosopher's
a third critic traced the shape of the ogive to the
eggs of period,
Isis.
If
we
Smollet
turn to English writers of the
gravely
speaking
declares,
of
same
York
Minster, " that the external appearance of an old cathedral will
Durham as
man who
be displeasing to the eye of every
idea of propriety and
cathedral as
proportion
"
;
"a huge gloomy
pile "
— somewhat
Archbishop Whately called Milan cathedral
idolatrous
temple
"
— and
thought
it
in order to
" a
big
could associate no better idea
man
impaled.
Hutche-
work on the Philosophy of the
Beautiful,
with a church spire than that of a son, in an able
has any
while he describes
necessary to enter into an elaborate argument
show that the ancient preference of Gothic
to j
classical architecture
need not disprove the universality of
the sense of beauty, but was an accidental aberration due to historical associations.
At such
a time
it
was natural
that Cologne, the latest and one of the most splendid of
mediaeval cathedrals, which Wordsworth invoked help of angels to
complete," should be
left
" the
unfinished,
while the energies of Europe were concentrated on St.
!
j
REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTURE. The "aspiring heat" had
Peter's.
Mr. Lecky's testimony once more,
And,
failed.
its
To
among
rather than
churches of the Continent,
wholly misleading
is
the
movement which
was of
eccentric genius," as Dr. Stanley
the
to
before his death.
of England
"
splendid
who
last
he retained strong
Roman
Catholic
Protestant churches
must be meant of course principally and
the extension of
Church of England,
" ecclesiological " taste to
places of worship
is
was precisely
for
Nonconformist
only a very recent afterthought, when
the turn in the tide had it
of
contributed to
And "the
By "the
directly those belonging to the
But
Germain
himself calls him,
with Anglicanism, became a
many years
St.
began as an Anglican High
in that revival
Churchman, and, while affinities
and
commencement
much
so
the architectural revival in England.
took the lead
Catholic
in fact,
the inference intended to be conveyed.
of the earliest Gothic restorations
the Tractarian
the Protestant
Roman
only partially true
is
des Pres at Paris, about the time of the
if
" to
we mainly
revival."
say that this revival took place
churches of England
One
to cite
unquestionably
it is
the Catholic revival of the present century that
owe
245
become too strong
to the
to be resisted.
renewed impulse given, not to
the Protestant but to the Catholic side of Anglicanism, as
Mr. Lecky has quite correctly apprehended, that the architectural revival
must be ascribed, which has covered the land
with some thousands of new Gothic churches, and restored the greater
number
of the English cathedrals to
their pristine grandeur.
by saying gained
It is
that the religious
" in
not very clear what
much of meant
is
power of our cathedrals has
proportion as our worship has become more
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
246
AND BIOGRAPHY.
solemn, more simple, more reverential, more comprehoisive,"
nor does the passage referred to
throw much
tianity
out
— what was
dral
is
"
full
with
music,
Milman
points
the Gothic cathe-
its
majesty and impressiveness of the mediaeval "
its
"
That the
remote central ceremonial,"
curling incense,"
and
its
solemn
its
long processions.
power of our old cathedrals
religious
by the Anglican
discredited
not
is
ritual is true, so far as
is
it
because of the likeness, not the unlikeness, of that
ritual to the
forms originally observed
mainly derived, as any one
is
by observing how cathedrals
— say "
Protestant that
— that
the consummation and completion of (what he
sary to the ritual,
it
obvious at a glance
mediaeval hierarchical Christianity," and was neces-
calls)
true,
Milman's Latin Chris-
in
on the matter,
light
"
it
at
may
in
them, from which
easily satisfy himself
fares with those Scotch
Basle, or Geneva, or
simplicity
"
and foreign
Glasgow
— where
completely emancipated from
is
cloud of superstition which has settled
down over
a
large part of the ecclesiastical world." It
is
indeed remarkable that a paper on Cologne cathe-
dral, contributed
Revieiv, as
some
forty years
was reported
at
the
ago to the Quarterly time,
by no
less
dis-
tinguished and staunch an Anglican than the late Judge Coleridge, should open with " It
is
a painful reflection,
this
melancholy confession
:
and one that conjures up a
multitude of others, that a great cathedral can never again
be built
in this
country.
It is
perhaps as painful to
on the utter disproportion of scale to use
in those
reflect
which
still
remain to
We
are accustomed to hear the glorious echoes of their
nave and
aisles
us,
but to this habit has familiarised
awakened
at best
to the
us.
footsteps of a
REVIVAL OF GOTHIC ARCHITECTl small congregation
are accustomed to see their grand
quadrangular
cloisters treated
to prebendal
back-doors
imaginable
greatest
used only, rubbish.
the
;
is
extinguished
England
" the echoes of
in
the
nave and
way
of restoring
aisles "
at build-
have once
to the tread of a procession, occasion-
even the defiled and desecrated
again turned to account,
extinguished candle
the
a visible change since then.
some attempt has been made
more been awakened ally
in
and
image,
doubt there
has been done
new ones
wealthy piety,
former
have forbidden the pilgrimage, levelled
old cathedrals, and
ing
beautiful chapels, those
of
as waste places for mouldering
all,
smashed the
No
candle."
Much
We
.
.
.
altar,
merely as covered passages
their
;
luxuries
used at
if
247
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; for the most part only to those of the
We
solitary verger.
RE.
"
lit.
"
the altar
But
"
chapels
"
"
have been
replaced,
this has
and
" the
only become pos-
by applying a principle exactly the reverse of that recommended by Dean Stanley, and seeking by such
sible
means
as
were available to emulate or revive the old of Catholic
solemnities
devotion.
A
Gothic Cathedral
supreme value and significance from the con-
derives
its
viction
which prompted the original builders, and can
alone insure the permanence of their work
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that
it is
7wt
only or chiefly a "magnificent architectural monument,"
but the ideal
of
fitting
instrument and expression of the highest
Christian
worship.
It
is
precisely
because
dreamt not of a perishable home," who reared those glorious piles, and desired to bequeath to posterity "their adoration," not their handicraft, that both alike " they
still
survive.
XXVIII.
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM. It appears to be pretty generally agreed that there
is
a
great break-up going on of the old dogmatic temper once so characteristic of Scotch Calvinism, though there
may
be
differences of opinion as to the precise extent or the probable
consequences of the change.
No
traveller
can
fail
to be
struck with visible signs of a decrease of the rigid Sabbatarianism
once held sacred, and
difficult to realise
a
Free Kirk
minister was warned
scandalize the congregation
and Established to
already becoming
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
by
his
by appearing
Sunday morning with a shaven loosely
it
latter
the Westminster
chin.
host not to
in the pulpit
fifty
especially
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; are
said
to
Confession now, and
sit
Dr.
for heresy
years ago, received a doctor's degree from the
University of Glasgow before his death. of Linlathen, whose theology was of a
more
on
Ministers, both Free
Macleod Campbell, who was excommunicated about
when
the period, not so very far distant,
eclectic,
Thomas Erskine still
broader and
not to say nebulous, type, was a layman, but
he seems to have been popularly accepted almost as a prophet by his fellow-countrymen. always readily welcomed
in
Dean Stanley was
Presbyterian pulpits.
And
the
synods of more than one of the three disunited but doc-
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM.
249
concordant Churches which accept the formularies
trinally
of John
Knox
have been exercised by the open or impHcit
disavowal on the part of influential fessors, like Dr.
preachers and
Longer and Shorter Catechism and the Confession of It
pro-
Robertson Smith, of the authority of the
has even been rumoured that,
in
Faith.
the event of disestab-
lishment, a large section of the ministers of the Kirk would
pass over to the Episcopal Church and bring their flocks
any abstract preference
with them, not indeed from
for
episcopacy, but in pursuit of a wider freedom than the
Presbyterian platform seems that as
it
may
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
with future possibilities recently taken place,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
if it
is
afford
Be
them.
here concern ourselves
change of feeling which has not greatly exaggerated,
is
a
remarkable phenomenon, and can hardly imply
sufficiently less
likely to
we need not
than a serious change, whether for better or for worse, of
national character.
Most of
us are familiar with Mr. Buckle's
elaborate comparison of Scotch and Spanish bigotry
even
identifies
ridden ation,
And
" in
Europe.
when it
may
facts, that
the
two countries as the most
The word no doubt
so applied, but the
meaning
is
;
he
" priest-
requires explan-
obvious enough.
be worth while to show by a brief review of the
there
was
in the
temper of Scotch religionism an
element of dogmatism, or bigotry, or intolerance, or whatever w^e
may
please to call
it,
distinguishing
it
alike
from
that of England and of most nations of the Continent. It
has been observed by a modern writer that there was
one country where the Puritan ministers succeeded
in
moulding alike the character and the habits of the nation,
and
that, while
stitions
England was breaking loose from old super-
and advancing along the paths of knowledge,
250
*'
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Scotland
still
And
clergy."
cowered
was kept up was by
her
in helpless subjection before
one way
which
in
this
influence
clerical
fostering the belief in a continual suc-
cession of miracles, sometimes wrought for the protection
or greater honour of the clergy themselves, but in most miracles
cases
of terror.
tempest, famine, and
Disease,
other calamities were attributed to the direct intervention of evil
spirits,
bodily shape.
who were supposed
frequently to appear in
Walter Scott has pointed out
Sir
Letters on Deinonology that the Calvinists were of
in his
all
sects
the most suspicious of sorcery, and the most eager to punish it
Hence
as a heinous crime.
country where almost
in a
every kind of amusement was suppressed or tabooed, and
men's thoughts were concentrated with peculiar energy on theological ideas, the dread of witchcraft versal.
was
It
imposture
;
is
but uni-
by
These
recorded.
among
all
the terribly numerous
Scotland, not a single instance of imposture
trials in
by the
all
Mr. Buckle has called attention to the remark-
able circumstance that
witch
was
not, as elsewhere, a superstition diluted
trials
were almost entirely conducted
clergy, but " the secular
arm
"
was placed ungrudg-
ingly at their service for execution of the sentence.
On
the
hideous tortures employed to extract confessions, and the
punishments eventually Suffice
here.
it
to
inflicted, it is
observe
mentions having seen nine Lcith
in
demned James craft,
I.
1664, and to be burnt
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; was
and had
of the Kirk,
how in
in
unnecessary to dwell
how one traveller casually women burning together at 1674 nine others were con-
a single day.
James VI.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; our
peculiarly sensitive in the matter of witchthis
whom
bond of hearty union with the ministers otherwise he so
little liked.
And
it
is
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM. noticeable, considering
what
and
the
superstition, that
is
said of mediaeval ignorance
law against witchcraft
first
Scotland was passed in 1563, and years later that
The
began
it
work of the Presbyterian which, partly from of
directly
on the
political
causes,
connected with the
Old than of the
for witchcraft
but not apparently by the good passed a resolution
a very special sense the
in
more
Reformation, was shaped
lines of the
These executions
in
thirty
till
ministry, or rather of their creed,
Scotch
the
was not
it
to be systematically carried out.
persecution was therefore
history
251
fifty
came
New
Testament.
an end about 1730,
to
who
will of the Presbytery,
years afterwards
deploring the
prevalent scepticism on the subject.
must
It
not,
however,
for a
moment be imagined
that the
dogmatism and intolerance of the Scottish Kirk showed zeal displayed in persecuting Papists
when opportunity
for
it
less
and other misbelievers
One
occurred.
itself
There was no
only or chiefly in the matter of witchcraft.
of the
first
results of
the final triumph of the Reformation in Scotland w^as a law prohibiting any priest from celebrating, or worshipper from
hearing mass, under pain of confiscation of his goods for the
first
third.
offence, exile for the second,
John Knox,
and death
according to Mr. Froude's characteristic paradox,
narrow fanatic who,
for the
" the ruffian of the Reformation,"
in
a world
/;/
ivJiicJi
"
who,
was no
Gods grace was
equally visible in a thousand creeds (he would have burnt
one
for
but
in his
saying
own
so),
formula,"
by Dr. Johnson as and an
"
is
described with perfect accuracy
the most intolerant of an intolerant creed
intolerant country."
his readers of
any
could see truth and goodness nowhere
IMr.
Froude
forgets to
remind
Knox's angry denunciation of permitting
252
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
the " idolatry
"
of the mass, even
the single case of
in
the Queen's private chapel at Holyrood, seeing that " one
mass was more were landed
fearful to
in
him than
10,000
if
them how Knox
armed enemies
Nor does he
any part of the realm."
in his Appellation teaches that "
tell
none pro-
voking the people to idolatry ought to be exempted from the punishment of death," while the charge of idolatry to include " the
carefully explained
At
Papistical clergy,"
is
whole rabble of the
Commonwealth
the time of the
the
Presbyterians did their utmost to thwart the more liberal policy of the Protector,
who was
to
willing
tolerate all
forms of Christianity, with the significant exceptions of "
Popery and Prelacy."
tolerated
who
and the
list
They wished
those only to be
accepted the "fundamentals
of fundamentals was so
not only Socinians,
who were
"
of Christianity,
drawn
as to exclude
to be punished with death,
but Papists, Arminians, Antinomians, Baptists, and Quakers,
who were
to be imprisoned for
In 1645 the Scotch
life.
Parliament solemnly protested against
any
sects or schisms contrary to our
Covenant."
And
practised at home.
founders had
Puritans carried with them across
the
new world
the Atlantic to the
been
" the toleration of
Solemn League and
Maryland
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; much
the intolerance they had
in the
to
their
hands of credit
its
Catholic
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
solitary
refuge of oppressed sectaries of every kind, but
when the
Puritans gained the upper hand there, they at once sub-
verted the existing rule, and enacted the whole penal code against those
who had
so generously received them.
So
again the Pilgrim Fathers revived in Massachusetts the Puritan panic about witchcraft, which was dying out
England though
still
dominant
in
Scotland.
in
Multitudes
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM. were scourged, tortured, and imprisoned on
and many were put
a century or so that
had
it
indeed, during the quarter of its
swing, represented with a
unattainable elsewhere
which
toleration,
the settlers had
is
charge,
to death.
The New England colony perfection
this
253
of
Puritan ideal
the
more remarkable considering that
the
from the ecclesiastical tyranny of
fled
Archbishop Laud and the Star Chamber, expressly and avowedly in order It
" to
enjoy the blessing of a pure Gospel."
was not perhaps unnatural that they should be some-
what exercised by the vagaries of a son, a " preacheress "
certain
Anne Hutchin-
two centuries and a half before her age
in resolving to flout the authority of St. Paul,
though the
result certainly justified the
wisdom of the
Not content with
the regular Puritan ministers
assailing
apostolic veto.
and
as " Baal's priests. Popish factors. Scribes, Pharisees,
opposers of Christ," she went on to propound a miscellane-
ous assortment of heresies, including inter alia a denial of the Personality of the
Holy Ghost, of heaven and
and
hell,
of what she termed " the deadly doctrine of the covenant of works."
who had say "
This was too much
already decided that "
for the ruling authorities, it
is
impious ignorance to
— what they denounced Laud for disputing —
"
ought to have liberty of conscience," inasmuch as admits of no eccentric notions," their
own,
— and therefore "
pen up the wolf"
was not
"
The
—
/.
e.
none
that
men
" religion
differing
from
for the security of the flock
we
lupine Mrs. Hutchinson, however,
penned," but excommunicated and banished, and
she afterwards
came
to a miserable
end
at
Long
Island in
a massacre of the colonists by the Indians, to the undis-
guised satisfaction of her former judges at Massachusetts.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
254
The Rev. Thomas Welde, who had taken in
her condemnation^ lost no time
in
a prominent part
proclaiming from the
pulpit that, as no such outrage had hitherto been com-
mitted by the Indians,
"
therefore God's
hand
is
the
more
apparently seen herein, to pick out this woeful woman,
and make her and those belonging to her an unheard-of heavy example of
their cruelty
was not the worst.
proved of persecution on land, where, however, he
by Cromwell,
all
But
others."
this
all
sides,
had returned
Eng-
to
was himself shamefully persecuted
as a consistent
opponent of every form of
Meanwhile
arbitrary government. scription, fine,
above
Harry Vane, who sincerely disap-
Sir
in
New England
pro-
banishment, and capital punishment became
the order of the day for Anglicans, Quakers, Anabaptists,
Adamites, and other such
"
Not only did the
mens."
unhappy " Blue
parently as seeming to be written in "
reading the
Saints' days,
Common
and energu-
sectaries
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; so blood â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
Code "
named ap-
strictly forbid
Prayer, keeping Christmas
making mince-pies, or playing on any
Day
or
instru-
ment except the drum, the trumpet, and the Jews' harp," which were supposed to have a kind of Biblical flavour about them
;
it
also forbade mothers to kiss their babies
on the Sabbath day, and enjoined that no one "should run or walk in his garden, or elsewhere, except reverently to
and from meeting."
Readers of The Scarlet Letter
will
readily understand the moral results of this sort of legislation.
As
to religious toleration, " If," says
leading writers of that day,
" after
men
one of their
continue in obstin-
ate rebelhon against the light, the civil magistrate shall
walk towards them softness
in soft
and gentleness
is
and gentle commiseration, excessive large to foxes
still
his
and
INTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM.
255
wolves, but his bowels are miserably straitened and hard-
Nor
ened against the poor sheep and lambs of Christ. frustrating
it
advancing
it,
to destroy the bodies of those wolves
seek to destroy the souls of those for It
a curious satire on
is
whom
human weakness and
England by the very men who had it,
fled,
who
Christ died." inconsistency,
that the hideous system of persecution enjoined in
expressed
is
end of Christ's coming, but a direct
the
New
as they elegantly
from "those proud Anakimes, the tiranous
bishops, and their proud and profane supporters and cruel
defenders
"
under Charles
after the Restoration
by
There are no crimes
II.
name
I.,
was
at last
brought to an end
a peremptory order from Charles like those that are
wrought
in
the
of liberty.
In Scotland the interference of the Kirk Sessions with every department not only of public but private less inquisitorial
by
fines,
and vexatious.
whipping, branding with red-hot
iron,
till
penalties,
was no
and public
And
penances of the most humiliating kind.
which incurred those
life
Resistance was punished
the sins
and many of which have
very recently lain under the ban of public opinion in
Scotland, were of the most various and most fanciful kind.
For an innkeeper to admit a Catholic
to his house, or for a
town to hold a market on Saturday or Monday, too near the Sabbath, were friend, to
sins.
It
was a
water your garden, to shave, to
to whistle on the Sabbath.
To
as being
a
sin to visit
ride, to walk, or
bathe was a deadly
sin
on
Sunday, and of very questionable lawfulness at any time a boy had indulging
in
Kirk Sess'on
;
once been miraculously struck dead while that in
carnal
amusement, and the Glasgow
1691 invoked the aid of the
civil
power
to
2S6
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
As Chambers
prevent boys from swimming altogether. puts the
in his
it
Annals of Scotland,
was, as
life
it
sort of sin, to
and thus
" the
were, squeezed out of the
The standard
munity."
was a
spirits
far as possible suppressed,"
sunshine of
the Puritan Kirk of
seventeenth centuries every outward
sixteenth and
demonstration of natural good
be as
" to
of a
nation
religious
whole
com-
was the
prevalence of universal gloom.
That
scheme of
this
life
is
the consistent and logical
Calvinistic theology
outcome of the
we cannot wonder
that the
is
Scotch,
And
true enough.
who
are
a logical
people, should have thus exemplified in practice the faith
which had been so deeply ingrained into their national character.
Still less
need we be surprised to learn that the
outward change, which has of
late
years
attracted
notice even of casual observers, does not stand alone.
the It is
obvious that the Westminster Confession must have been subjected
to
"
a
verifying
faculty
"
Longer and Shorter Catech'sm have
of divines, and lost their
the
hold over
the popular mind, before the tone of ordinary preaching
and practice could undergo any material
may
alteration.
be the moral or religious results of this change
long run
is
a question on which
it
may
the
would be premature
yet to hazard any confident opinion.
diced creed
What in
A
often be better than none,
as
narrow or preju-
and the collapse
of a firmly compacted dogmatic system, whether true or false,
not unfrequently brings with
it,
at least for the time,
all religious belief;
if
not also of
a dissolution of restraints.
all
moral
Thus, as Macaulay observes, Catholic countries
have become
infidel
and again reverted to Catholicism, but
have never since the sixteenth century become Protestant.
IxMTOLERANCE OF SCOTCH CALVINISM.
On
the other hand,
sion,
however
obligation has
it
257
must be remembered that the profes-
sincere, of a rigidly ascetic
code of religious
by no means always proved a sure guaran-
tee for even an average obsei-vance of morality.
Nature
have her revenges, and when the most ordinary and
will
harmless recreations are forbidden as
compensation
in
The charges brought
willing to condone.
and Manicheans
tians
sinful, is
apt to seek
indulgences which no moralist would be against
Nova-
Church have
in the early ages of the
been brought with equal plausibility against Puritans in our
own
day.
One
vice at all events,
which Christians of
every school, as well as non-Christian moralists, are agreed in
condemning,
is
reputed to be a special opprobrium of
Scotland, and the strictest observance of
and oppressive Sabbatarian regulations,
was made
to
all
those minute
which reference
just now, has been found compatible with conse-
crating the
day of
rest to a quiet
but unlimited assimilation
And under
of the liquid which inebriates but does not cheer.
the old regime to be drunk in private, though of course not
sanctioned as allowable, would have been accounted a far less
heinous outrage on the dignity of the "honourable
Sabbath
"
than to whistle
in
the public street.
theological side Calvinism has in
shown a tendency
all
to develop into Socinianism,
early Calvinlsts, after the
On
its
continental countries
example of
which the
their founder,
who
burnt Servetus, never hesitated to treat as a capital crime,
and
it
old
orthodox strictness
will
direction.
be curious to watch whether a relaxation of the in
Swedenborg, we
Scotland tends in the same
may remember,
insisted
on
connecting the Nicene doctrine with Calvinism, and therefore repudiated both
together.
At
present perhaps the
258
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
prevailing disposition
Presbyterian divines
is
among
the Broad school of Scotch
to reject
dogmatic
speculate on future contingencies
;
let
restrictions of all
But
kinds, whether orthodox or the reverse.
it is
needless to
us be content for the
present to take note of existing facts.
For the
last three
centuries the traditional Calvinism of Scotland has
a stern and vigorous tenacity of in
life,
which has no
any of the Reformed Churches elsewhere.
for the first
It
shown parallel
has now,
time since the Reformation^ entered on a state
of transition of which as yet
which cannot
fail,
whatever
we
see only the beginning, but
may be
have an important bearing not only on
its
ultimate term, to
ecclesiastical matters,
but on the habits and character of the people.
XXIX. FORCE OF INDIVIDUALISM MOVEMENTS.
There interesting
ment
are
some passages
in
IN RELIGIOUS
Mr. Gladstone's
very
and suggestive paper on the Evangelical MoveQuarterly Reviciu for July 1879, which
in the British
open out a wider question than that with which the writer is
And
immediately concerned.
it
will therefore
able to introduce the present subject
by a
particular portion of his argument.
that the Evangelical
movement,
suit-
After pointing out
influential as
attained, even at the close of the last
be
reference to one
it
was, never
and the beginning of
the present century, anything like predominance in the
Church of England less
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that
it
remained to the
Gladstone proceeds to explain how, as has
left
its
it
appears to him,
The explanation may sound
paradoxical or far-fetched, but there can be it
is
Evangelical
substantially
movement
by process of
dis-
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; Mr,
mark generally and permanently on the
English Church.
that
more or
by the great majority of the clergy
trust or aversion
it
last
under the ban of authority, and was viewed with
correct.
He
at
little
considers
first
doubt
that the
was, not simply in order of time or
reaction,
but in some degree by direct
causation, the parent of the Tractarian
movement which
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY
26o
followed
And
it.
he holds that
is
it
through
this
latter
movement, especially
in the later offshoot
Ritualism,
Evangelical revival has so largely-
that
There
life.
the
of Anglican
the tone
affected
is
preaching and
special stress.
He
indeed well known, but
how nearly movement
all
to our
recalls
is
the greatest of
them
all
men among
converts to
Rome
school.
was not divines trained
principles,
to
like
add another
much
as
"
the
also
its
may
still
stranger,
the Tractarian
high Anglican
in
Hook, or
Keble, Isaac Williams, and illustrious
name
Newmans_,
— Hugh
the
James Rose, so and
the
different,
who
Wilberforces,
shape and direction to the movement.
latter class also supplied the
to the
—began their
belonged originally to the same
Mannings," whose antecedents were very
gave
is
apt to be forgotten or ignored,
the most conspicuous
It
and justly
lays,
memory what
course as Evangelicals, and, what might seem all
religious
the great leaders of the specific Oxford
— notably
how
called
confine ourselves for the present to
one argument on which Mr. Gladstone lays,
it
a great deal to be said for this view of the
we may
matter, but
from
And
the
most distinguished converts
Church of Rome, such as the two Cardinals, who
be called respectively the moral and the
official
heads
of that Church in England, the Wilberforces, Mr. Sibthorpe, and, as the writer might have added, the late Dr. Faber,
whose early Evangelicalism was perhaps more pronounced than that of any of his fellows, and certainly exercised a more perceptible influence on teaching to the
On
last, in spite
his
religious
tone and
of his fervid Ultramontanism.
the other hand, Mr. Gladstone
is
surely mistaken in
speaking of Mr. Manning as a Tract-writer.
For some
INDIVIDUALISM IN RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS.
261
time after his abandonment of the Evangelical party he
Hook and
sided with the pronounced Anglicanism of school.
High Church party was represented
the British Critic, the
by two quarterly reviews
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
which took a broader
under the editorship of the
line
Mozley and the
Professor
his
forgotten perhaps that, on the collapse of
It is
late
Christian Remembrancer, late
Mr. Scott of Hoxton,
in
which Dean Church wrote most of the papers afterwards published as Essays
and Rcviezvs ; and
the English Revieiv,
the representative of the most rigid Anglicanism.
deacon Manning was a contributor to the
So
wc
far
disputed
are concerned with facts which can hardly be
and now
;
Arch-
latter periodical.
Mr. Gladstone
for the explanation.
indicates his belief that the extreme individualism which
was a weakness of the Evangelical movement, and which neither the
Roman Church
would have
tolerated, acted throughout as a
the
work of these men
them out of the Anglican
nor the Nonconformist bodies
Did the
"
may
drawback on finally
The
pal"e altogether.
of this assumption turns on what logical question.
and
as Anglicans,
drove
correctness
be termed a chrono-
Tractarian
"
seceders precede,
coincide with, or follow a remarkable change in this respect in the
temper of the Church of England
of doctrine
is
Church of England of
Rome
its limits
whom
it
would be
It
is
the
any of the Dissenting communities obvious that such toleration must
from the nature of the
case, for a clergy of
could justly be said qnot homines fatal to the coherence,
to the existence, of
in
which neither the Church
to an extent
nor, probably,
would endure. have
Individualism
.'*
no doubt at present virtually tolerated
any
tot sentcnticB
and therefore eventually
religious body.
And
it
may
be
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
232
true enough, as the writer hints, that
been nearly reached there
tliese
a risk of divergence increasing
is
Be
peril of disestablishment.
none the
less true
which
variety,
is
hmits have
Church of England, and that
in the
that as
it
may,
of this
spite
that, in
till
it
lets in it
the
remains
wide doctrinal
extreme form a thing of
in its present
very recent growth, and partly in consequence of
it,
the
Church of England has not usually shown herself very tolerant of clergy,
On
any other kind of individualism among her
and that she has suffered from want of doing
the other hand,
been not
but more scope given for this diversity of
less
some
is
evidently
at
least of
much
Roman
the
vocation, certainly in in
so.
surely quite clear that there has
is
it
force
Catholic Church, and
Nonconformist bodies.
the
There
Macaulay's famous contrast
in
between the position of John Wesley and that of Ignatius
Loyola
Rome
the Church of
;
utilised Ignatius, while the
Church of England drove Wesley on the part of her
different policy
pale,
is
Newman
Mr.
to retain
is
hardly
it
for himself, to
would be scarcely
fitting for others to discuss
he has expressly told
us.
And
at all that a different treatment into
one of
its
most
;
that the policy they
effective
rival.
himself should earliest
It
is
him out of
there can be no doubt
would have turned Wesley bulwarks, instead of the
founder of a sect which has proved
and powerful
possible,
answer confidently now, and
actually did pursue materially helped to drive it,
Whether a
would have availed
permanently within the Anglican
a question which
perhaps even
into revolt.
rulers
its
most determined
remarkable that Mr.
Newman
have taken as the theme of one of his
University sermons, preached the year before the
liNDIVIDUALISM IN RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS. beginning
of
the
There are passages
now
in
it
Church
thing
who
is
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; though
he has not quahfied
new
the
in
edition
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
the
ascribed to the moral influence of gifted persons,
are represented as the sole " legitimate interpreters
of Scripture.
But there
no reason
is
with his present opinions, and career, since the in
day when he
it is
sat "
The same
England."
The Course
December
assuming that
for
illustrated
by
harmony his
whole
"
on his
sobbing bitterly
;
of Truth
idea "
have a work to do
I
worked out
is
in the lines
poems
in the
Lyra Apos-
ends with the significant query, whether
"dim
future"
Creed."
And
we
shall "
in
on
written at Malta in the previous
while another of his
tolica
NEED
he reafiirms
it
(sic)
the
in
a prophet for Truth's
more
in
Apologia, where he observes that
come
"
an inn at Castro Giovanni, and replied to the
startled inquiries of his servant, "
"
for
almost put aside as a teacher, and every-
the main drift of the discourse would be out of
bed
1832),
which he might not be disposed
as they stand
them by any annotations visible
(January
Means of propagating the Truth."
" Personal Influence the
to endorse
movement
Oxford
263
prosaic form in the
" living
of Committees," but rather from
movements do not "
the force of per-
sonal influence and congeniahty of thought."
Nor can Cardinal
it
be said that there
Newman
is
anything peculiar to
in this insistence
on the importance of
individual action and influence in the promotion of religious truth,
though
home
with special force to
it
is
of course a conviction likely to
intensity of character.
on the surface of history of
all
men
But the
fact itself
all ecclesiastical
religions.
come
of exceptional genius and is
one which
lies
history, not to say of the
But, as the subject
is
a wide one,
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
264
we had
better here confine ourselves to Christian history.
Newman
In the Sermon already mentioned Mr. single "
example only of the
before
while time lasts to Athanasius,
The example Augustine
"
and
;
this
exp^ined
is
is
West have undoubtedly this
anthropological
of
Athanasius
the
be effaced
a note to refer
in his
alone the burden
the East and
impress
theological, the other in
its
But
aspect.
AtJianasiiis
in
left their
on the doctrine of the Church, the
this is not the ordinary
which individualism has taken
in
in
Athanasius
a critical one.
in the
one, as might be expected, in
speak
shall not
on whose works he was at the time engaged.
from that day to
way
that
now even one man has impressed an image on
Church which, through God's mercy,
its
gives a
when he says
principle,
effect.
When we
immdum, we mean
contra
day supported, or seemed of orthodox
on a point
belief,
that
to support, vital
to the whole structure of Christian doctrine, against
But such a doctrinal
heterodox world.
the Arian controversy
nor has
it
individual.
is
not
common
generally been met
The
elaboration of
on by theological
experts
action of the Church.
It
is
in
crisis
Church
history,
by the energy of a
dogma
is
an
as that of
single
mostly carried
and through the corporate rather in the conversion of
worldlings or unbelievers, the enforcement or application of great principles, and the development of the moral or spiritual life of the age, than in the abstract enunciation or
vindication of dogmatic truths, that personal influence has
played so prominent a part.
It
would be obvious
to the case of the Apostles, but
it
to refer
might be replied
though the reply would be only partially relevant
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that
the gift of inspiration and of miracles differentiates
them
INDIVIDUALISM IN RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS.
Take, however, the gradual con-
from ordinary teachers.
Papacy
struction of the splendid edifice of the mediccval for a splendid edifice
Viewed on
it
was, whether
theological side,
its
265
it
we admire
may be
;
or not.
it
regarded by one
party as a creation of Divine Providence, and by another as the masterpiece of Satan it
was
chiefly the
periods,
in successive
nificance of their social
;
but viewed on
who had grasped
own
position
and
I.,
is
it
spirits
relations to the
we subtract from Leo I., Gregory I.,
Hildebrand, and the third and fourth Innodifficult
result could
side,
pontiffs
If
the catalogue of Popes such names as
cents,
human
at once the sig-
its
and religious needs of the age.
Nicholas
its
work of some half-dozen great
to
see,
humanly speaking, how the
have been achieved.
And what
these master
did for building up the external polity,
men
like
Benedict, Dominic, Francis of Assisi, and Ignatius Loyola did, in very different
ways and
at different periods, for
moulding or reforming the internal It
must be
ation
clear, for instance,
confined
is
discursive
to Sir
Church.
James Stephen's charming but
we may
said of the origin
And
the
and idea of the widely
result rigidly regimental,
centuries later
advancing tide of the
same may be and
diverse,
in
system introduced three
by Ignatius Loyola.
more than
indi-
use the term, was the Franciscan
revival of the thirteenth century.
influence
of the
and sketchy biography, how thoroughly
vidualistic, if
its final
life
even to those whose inform-
It
was
his individual
stemmed the Nor was Protestant Reformation.
anything
else
that
the success of the attack less due to the personal energy of
Luther than the successful resistance to Ignatius. both cases alike the determining force lay
far
And
more
in
in the
266
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
men than
vigorous personality of the
Luther, as a theologian,
ment.
same day with greater
;
Calvin, but
his peculiar
his
in theological argu-
named
not to be
is
was
influence
scheme of theology had a moral and
personal rather than an intellectual basis, and
be questioned whether it
it
may
well
would ever have taken the shape
it
ultimately assumed, had a Pope otherwise
Leo X. understood how as Innocent
in the
infinitely
minded than
to appropriate his reforming zeal,
IIL had appropriated the devotion of Francis.
But the Papacy of the Renaissance had
and Luther was rudely
repelled, like
lost its cunning,
Wesley afterwards,
with not very dissimilar results. If
we
turn
back to England, the same phenomenon
again presents
The English Reformation
itself.
exception which helps to prove the rule. speaking, not a
religious
or
It
is
an
was, properly
theological, but a political
movement there was not, as Dollinger has pointed out, a single man of first-rate eminence, either for character or ;
capacity,
them sank
among in
the
English Reformers
;
too
many
of
both respects below the level of respectability.
Unlike the Scotch and Continental movement,
it
emanated
from the Government, not from the people, and the Puritan revolt which
grew out of
it
advance of the democratic tion of the next century,
was
closely connected with the
spirit.
which has
But the Caroline reacleft its
on the Established Church, owes
its
mainly to the individual energy of
men
individual piety of
the awakening
men
like
it
influence of a few gifted
like
and success
Laud, and the
Andrewes and Ken
came from the long
the eighteenth century,
permanent mark
origin
spiritual
;
and when
slumber of
was again through the personal and devoted men that the work
INDIVIDUALISM IN RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS. Wesley himself never
was wrought. from the
267
willingly departed
orthodoxy, and was so far
lines of the received
from sympathising with the Calvinism of Whitefield that he said he could sooner be a Turk, or a an
atheist,
deist, or
And
almighty tyrant.
Whitefield's
the masses gathered on the bleak
him did not
even
made God an
than believe a doctrine which
power over
electric hill-side
to
listen to
from the peculiar doctrine, or even
arise
exactly from the eloquence, of his sermons
commonplace enough
to read
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; but
force of individual earnestness
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; for
they are
from the marvellous
he put into them
;
was
it
with soul that gave reality to his
the contact of soul
down the grimy faces who had known little before
message, when the tears streamed of the rough Cornish miners, of the love of the Evangelical
God or man. In the Church of England movement owed whatever success it had
at the time to the personal zeal
and weight of men
if
Mr, Gladstone's estimate of the net result of the move-
ment be is
like
And
Simeon and Wilberforce and Fletcher of Madeley.
a
still
power. the
correct, as there
more
For, so far as
medium
good reason
is
to think
it
that
of Tractarianism, the process
agency alone,
authority,
but
persistent
opposition.
in
out,
its
has acted on the country through
individual
been pointed
it is,
striking testimony to the true secret of
not only
the teeth
The
of
its
was
effected
by
the aid
of
without
most strenuous and
Tractarian leaders, as
were most of them trained
Evangelical School, and the
new
revival
in
has the
was carried on
by the same means of direct individual action as the old one, but with far more commanding attributes of moral and
intellectual power.
It
was a true
instinct
which told
263
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Dr.
Newman
"
he had
a work to do
movement which never bore retired at
an early stage of
able without
"
him.
A
his its
progress,
prophet
"
stantly needed " for truth's creed."
is
in
is
The
most perfect organization,
doctrine, the
England
in
"
;
the
name, and from which he hardly conceiv-
one sense conpurest system of will not
hold
its
own without
the individual energy which can alone breathe
into the dry
bones the breath of
of individual exertions, and
renewed by them.
And
Systems grow cut
life.
require to
be sustained or
hence Churches which repress
that energy, and in proportion as they repress
must be
it,
regarded as in a state of partial or incipient decadence.
The
Catholic Church was at
its
lowest ebb at the beginning
of the sixteenth century, and the Church of England at the close of the eighteenth. logical
opinion,
strictness
the
Heresy
obstinate
and the best security against
in giving free
vidual zeal.
signifies in
preference its
etymo-
of individual
triumph
is
found
scope in the service of orthodoxy to indi-
To
use Scriptural
language, unity of spirit
can only be preserved by a generous recognition of the diversity of gifts.
XXX. PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN.
A
WELL-KNOWN Oxford
when asked why he
tutor of a former generation,
Sunday
preferred long walks on
to
attendance at St. Mary's, replied that he preferred sermons
from stones to sermons from
sticks.
It
is
presumably
a similar preference or a similar dread which has inspired so
many
been
There have
discussions on preaching of late years.
articles in reviews,
and a book by Mr. Mahafify, better
known for his classical publications, and " Conferences on Pew and Pulpit " at the City Temple, and an address by Mr. Walter in the Chapter House of St. Paul's, both critical and suggestive. attached
its
It
may, however, be doubted whether he
due weight
to a preliminary distinction,
which
he mentioned, but scarcely appeared to have thought out
He
in all its bearings.
cultivated
now than
observed that oratory
in ancient
is
far less
Greece and Rome, where
public speaking monopolized that control of public opinion
which
it
has
sarily follows
come
to share with the press.
from
this that preaching,
and
But still
it
neces-
more the
public reading of the Bible, to which a large portion of his discourse was devoted, cannot hold the
Church of our own day as
in
same position
in the
days before printing was
invented, or even before "the schoolmaster was abroad."
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
270
very
It is in fact
difficult
us to realise to
for
full
its
extent the distinction between a hearing and a reading age.
has justly been
It
never
if
had
society
any but a reading age, the history of the
known
most
brilliant scenes,
greatest recorded triumph.
When Demos-
world would have
and oratory
observed that,
its
lost
one of
its
thenes persuaded the Thebans, while the Macedonian
was already hovering on
army
their frontiers, to join the alliance
of Athens, his eloquence wrought a wonder second only to that ascribed by poetry to
of that
same
Amphion's
when the
lyre,
Thebes rose obedient
city of
to
walls
its call.
But
the most eloquent speech of Demosthenes delivered in the present
House of Commons might hardly
The
dozen votes.
made
influence half-a-
day are
ablest speeches in the present
rather to be read than to be listened to,
holds good also of
many contemporary
and
this
It
may
sermons.
indeed be truly said that the whole character of modern as distinguished from ancient
fundamental change.
by
writing but
himself called
by word of mouth it,
obstetric
Herodotus recited
we
are told,
dides.
it
literature
by
affected
is
this
Socrates taught his philosophy not ;
the " erotetic,"
method was of
his history at the
its
or, as
he
very essence.
Olympic games, where,
drew tears from the sterner eyes of Thucy-
The poems
of
Homer,
if
our modern
critics will
allow them to be so named, were chanted by the Rhapsodists.
The same
theology.
As
distinction
has
left
a well-known writer puts
Luther and the sermons at
St. Paul's
mark on our
its it,
" the
Cross
may
hymns
of
find their
parallel in the first age of Christianity, not in the con-
fession of
Augsburg or the decrees of Trent."
Fathers of the Church, like
St.
Chrysostom,
The St.
greatest
Ambrose
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN.
For
preachers of their day.
all
purposes the
practical
has been completely shifted by the
centre of influence
Thus, to take a very different
printing press.
Demosthenes has
!7I
us
left
(in
the
De
illustration,
Corona) a graphic
Athens of the messenger announcing
picture of the arrival at
Philip's seizure of Elateia,
and how
the prytanes downwards,
thronged to the market-place
all
the citizens, from
But when tidings arrived
to hear the news.
in
London
of the battles of Waterloo, Inkermann, or Sedan, the centre of attraction was the post or telegraph in
ordinary times the
object in
was
life
Roman
was there the
Athenian army
And
so even
whose
to hear or tell something new, loitered,
not in the Club or Coffee-house, but It
office.
or Athenian idler,
Sicily
in
in
the barber's shop.
news of the destruction of the
fatal
was
first
made known, and a
barber was actually put to the torture for spreading the
To come to later times, when Richard III. wished own succession to the English Crown by
report.
to secure his
discrediting
the
legitimacy of his unhappy nephews
public opinion, his article to a
first
political
in
care was, not to send an inspired
organ, but to cause Shaw, a noted
preacher of the day, to deliver a sermon to that effect at Paul's Cross.
To
return
to
our immediate subject,
we may
readily
conceive with what keen and breathless interest the public
reading of listened
apostolic
to
a
manuscript
by an infant
age.
And
for
Gospel
or
Christian
some
Epistle
would be
community
centuries
of the
afterwards the
reading of Scripture continued to form an integral portion of the worship of the
Church, as before of the Jewish
272
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
Synagogue
;
and
it
was usually followed, as
gogue, by what Justin Martyr tion,"
calls
Syna-
in the
"a word of exhorta-
which gradually developed, especially among the
Greeks, into a regular sermon by the bishop or some priest
by him. The selection of Scripture we should call them, was at first left to the
appointed
lessons, as
discretion of each bishop, but in course of time a systematic
arrangement was adopted with reference to the various seasons and solemnities of the Christian year.
St.
Chry-
sostom, himself the most eloquent preacher of his age, frequently complains of the prevalent habit of attaching
an exaggerated importance to the sermon, to the disparage-
ment of public
prayer,
on the one hand
and the
consequences, shown
evil
the growth of a too theatrical and
in
declamatory style of preaching, and on the other
in the
custom of
noisily applauding impressive passages of popular
preachers.
"This," he told his hearers on one occasion,
" is
no
theatre, nor are
a tragedy."
It
is,
you
sitting here as spectators
indeed, curious to observe
the similarity, in points of detail, between
modern preaching, though the day has banished,
stricter
at least in the
how
close
of is
ancient and
decorum of our own
Church of England,
outward demonstrations of approval from the sacred
all
walls.
Then, as now, the sermon was sometimes delivered from the altar steps, sometimes from the as now, shorthand writers eagerly
taking
down
jSvixa
or pulpit; then,
employed themselves
in
notes of the discourses of famous preachers,
so that St. Gregory of Nazianzus especially addresses in his farewell
sermon
at Constantinople,
and
them
at a later date
Gaudentius of Brescia complained of their transcribing him inaccurately.
Then
too, as
now, sermons were sometimes,
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN. though as
is
so
rarely, read off entirely
common
like those of
from notes or manuscript,
England, or committed to memory,
in
Bourdaloue, Massillon, and the great French
preachers generally
;
sometimes delivered partly extempore,
according to a plan previously prepared
Thus
altogether extempore.
St.
;
and sometimes
Augustine
tells
us that
was occasionally suggested by the
his choice of subjects
passage of Scripture which the St.
273
lector
had been reading, and
Chrysostom speaks of something he witnessed on the
way
to church, or
which occurred during divine
service,
suggesting the theme of his discourse, as when the lighting of lamps during his sermon had drawn off the attention
Very
of his audience.
analogy
in
likely
another respect
we might be
also, if
remote ages were as
tion about those
able to trace an
our means of informafull
by the more various and voluminous
as those supplied literature
of the
But, as a matter of fact, only the discourses
present day.
of really distinguished writers have
come down
and
to us,
there are no journals or biographies, or serials and newspapers, of the patristic era to enlighten us on the popular
But we know that even apostles
taste in the matter.
pated the snare of " itching
ears,"
and
antici
more than probable
it is
preachers often won as cheap a reputation among the early Christians as among their descendants. By degrees, however, preaching died out altogether
that popular
in the East,
and
in
the middle ages
it
had from various
causes sunk to a low ebb in the Latin Church, still
pate,
It
was
supposed to be the special function of the episcobut the statesman or warrior prelates of mediaeval
Europe lacked discharging
it,
alike
time, inclination,
and aptitude
and thus again the Anglican prelates
for
at
274
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BICGRAPHY.
a later date were stigmatized by their Puritan assailants as "
dumb dogs
And
that cannot bark."
" the
became, as Milman observes, heresiarchs of
all
the sects,"
Dominic
St.
till
hence
naturally
it
strength of
the
all
the thir-
in
teenth century founded the Order of Friar Preachers, in
order to meet them with their ation,
it
own weapons. The Reform-
need hardly be added, gave a fresh impetus to
among
preaching both of the old
ning to share
its
And we must
the assailants and the defenders
though the pulpit was then already begin-
faith,
influence on public opinion with the press.
remember,
after
making
change of circumstances, that oratory
all
allowance for
will ever
be a power
'among men, while human nature remains what especially that sacred oratory can never
important place is
in the
fail
it
is,
and
hold an
to
prophetic ministry of the Church.
1
of course quite true, as has often been pointed out, that "
"preaching the Gospel
ment only
of the kind so lovingly
woman to
my
in
does not
or even chiefly
Loss and Gain,
in the
Testa-
still
less
Dear Mr. Spoutaway, he goes
"
heart, he goes through me,"
But
it
is
are,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
that the ritual
and were intended to
from the
also true that
we now understand
no part of the
the
official
be,
first,
preaching,
term, was a distinctive It
and
formed
duties of the Pagan, or even of the
Mosaic priesthood, though into the service of the " a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
the Methodist old
almost unique peculiarity of Christian worship.
by
New
sermons,
a very real sense a proclamation or setting forth of
Christ.
as
call
commended by
and ordinances of the Church in
mean
what we
it
had
latterly
system of popular preaching the Stoics of the later
"
been introduced
Mr. Lecky speaks of
Synagogue.
being created and diffused
Empire
;
and he instances the
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN. who may be compared
Cynics,
itinerant
who were
a kind of
But he admits that the analogy
lecturers.
the latter case
Mendicant Orders
to the
of the Church, and the Rhetoricians,
275
in
a faint one, neither the talents nor the
is
more than of the
Rhetoricians, any
character of these
Sophists of a previous age, being usually such as to com-
mand
And
respect.
doubted whether far as
it
as regards both classes,
existed at
all,
it
may
be
"system of popular preaching," so
their
was not consciously or unconsciously
borrowed from the contemporary usage of the Christian Church,
as
was
certainly
the
case with
Emperor
the
Julian's not very successful attempt to import
it
into his
unreal and semi-Christianized revival of the Pagan cult.
There can be no question then that the object of raising the standard of preaching ance.
As
is
one of high practical import-
to public reading, there can perhaps little
be done than to take
all
available
more
precautions against
The well-known example, to their own marvellous effect produced by Mr.
slovenliness or irreverence.
which Mr. Walter and others have referred from recollection,
of
the
Newman's reading
of the lessons at St. Mary's, Oxford,
at once sympathetic is
and suggestive yet perfectly simple,
one which ordinary men must be content to admire
rather than to imitate.
demned, there
is
If careless reading
also an opposite
is
to be con-
and by no means purely
hypothetical danger of affectation arising from overmuch care.
The
case
is
not singular of an Evangelical divine
of the last generation,
who had taken
lessons in reading
the service from Mrs. Siddons, and the result, though he
was himself not otherwise than devout, was decidedly more striking than devotional.
But with preaching
it is
different.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
276
Orators indeed, like poets, are born and not made, but
may
a good deal
born orators cannot with impunity neglect as has been often said, " the secret of
be learnt on the knees," but that
more human elements of
the
still
be done by judicious training, and even
is
No
it.
doubt,
good preaching must
no excuse
for ignoring
A great
success,
barrister
is
reported to have expressed his surprise that the clergy did
make
not "
A
better use of their quite unique opportunities
whole week," he exclaimed,
no reply
" to
:
get up the case, and
But the requirements alike of conscience and
" !
of public opinion
would leave a parish
day a very limited fraction of the
"
priest of the present
whole week
" for
com-
posing his Sunday sermon, or possibly his two sermons,
and the absence of
"
reply
"
is
by no means an unmixed
benefit to the preacher, or at least to his discourse.
he
is
never under the
fire
to be shallow or supercilious,
and
some such purifying process of
criticism should
in
the education of preachers.
that what
is
That
may tempt him good reason why
of contradiction is
And
a
it
be supplied
does seem strange
practised almost everywhere else should
be
om.itted in the ordinary course of training for the Anglican
ministry.
The composition and
delivery of sermons form
part of the regular training of candidates for orders
among
the Presbyterians and Protestant Nonconformists, as also in
Catholic seminaries.^
And
without some such prepara-
^ Some such plan is said to have been adopted by the late primate, when Bishop of London, and an amusing story is told about it. He
had set a candidate for deacon's orders to preach in the private chapel at London House before himself and his Examining Chaplain, the late Dr. Stanley. The young preacher, whose conception of the duties of his office -was a very definite and somewhat narrow one, began by dividing his hearers into "the converted and the unconverted." The
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN. we cannot
tory discipline
fairly
endowed with exceptional and a comparatively modern
England
is
it
;
are not
wish them, to a peculiarity,
is
peculiarity, of the
Church of
almost unknown, and would scarcely be
other communions, Catholic
tolerated, in
would
as neither
or even
Reading sermons
preach without book.
who
expect those
gifts,
277
be tolerated
it
public meeting, or in a law court.
or
Protestant,
Parliament, or at a
in It
does not of course
sermons any more than speeches should
at all follow that
The
not be carefully prepared.
great French preachers
used to write and learn their sermons by heart, like the
Greek orators of
old,
and
one
at
least
of
most
the
eloquent extempore preachers in the Church of England at
the
might
present the
find
day
is
said
to
preparation of
committing to memory certain
some
the habit of
is
Hill,
Others perhaps
passages,
critical
a danger in trusting too
as
much
who had been
him which passage
most.
" Sir,"
discoursing before
in his
was the prompt
sermon had struck him
reply,
"
what pleased me
most was your passage from the pulpit to the vestry." Walter, by the way, brought a charge against ",
;
to
and who afterwards pressed the great man
to tell
themselves
is
Every one has heard the story of an
ambitious young preacher,
Rowland
same.
sufficient,
of our greatest Parliamentary orators
not but that there
phrpurei panni.
do the notes
"
Mr.
our pulpits
which he had heard an American preacher
describe as
"an
enough that
" to
invention of the Devil."
And
be cabined, cribbed, confined
in
it
a
is
true
wooden
or stone
box a few
Bishop
once interposed: "Stop there. Sir; in which class do you
place
at
me ? "
feet
above the ground, with a brass
278
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
bookstand is
and a pair of candlesticks on each
in front,
not the most favourable position for giving
side,
expres-
full
In the early Church, as
sion to the impulses of the soul."
we have seen, the sermon was sometimes preached from the
ambo
—which,
however, was probably more spacious
than a modern pulpit
and there
steps,
is
— and
sometimes from the chancel
no reason why the
not be followed now, as indeed
should
latter practice
often
it
is,
where the
size
and arrangements of the building admit of it. Or the Italian plan might be adopted of making the pulpit a sort of open gallery running round a
pillar,
which would equally
meet the requirement that the whole person of the preacher should be
visible,
and would also leave room
of action and movement.
which
A
may
safely
be
freedom
for
But these are matters of
left to find their
detail
natural adjustment.
more important suggestion has been urged both by
They
Mr. Mahafify and Mr. Walter. that the Church of
are agreed in desiring
England should follow Catholic pre-
cedent in establishing an " Order of preachers
ment the work of the parochial however admirably
for
fitted
clergy,
their
" to
many
supple-
of
whom,
ordinary duties,
are
quite unequal to the task of preparing a fresh sermon of
any value every week, not often
demanded
of them.
to say
two or
Mr. Mahaffy
is
three,
which
careful to
is
add
and such a recommendation comes of course with peculiar significance from an Irish Protestant
of celibate preachers in the his reasons for
emphasising
sensible ones.
But
if
this condition,
—
"
"
an Order
;
he gives
"
which are very
that suggestion be thought imprac-
— and one can imagine the wry faces the Synod would make over — he pleads at
ticable "
clergyman
Reformed Churches
it
new
Irish
least for "
an
PREACHING ANCIENT AND MODERN.
279
Order of itinerant preachers," who, though having wives, to their occasional
knowledge of inents,
and scattered audiences, removed from
may be as though
all
and domestic desagre-
their personal foibles
And
they had none.
here no doubt
he has abundant Nonconformist precedent, Wesleyan and other,
on
his side.
A
Canon and
distinguished
Professor,
whose leanings are decidedly Protestant, was once heard
mounted the
to say that the first time he
pulpit, after his
marriage, he could not help feeling that half his authority
Apart from
criticism of graver de-
the faults of style most
commonly charged on
had gone from him. ficiencies,
modern preachers may be summed up under the two heads of priggishness and over familiarity. The former temper was exemplified by the lady
who was taken by
a friend to hear
much
a famous Jesuit preacher, and came away
complaining that church."
my
dear,
to do."
Her
"she
could
friend's reply
shocked her
more
:
in
"Well^
why didn't you that is just what he meant you The same confusion of thought between reverence .''
and priggishness was
differently illustrated
at the time of the Irish famine,
a word off"ensive to pious ears
their daily sustenance,"
root on which so
and which
of the potato
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as " that esculent succulent, many hungry
sinners of
and by another who called
many thousands depended
in the inscrutable
apart from doctrinal questions, minister,
it
" that
for support,
wisdom of Divine Providence
has for a time ceased to flourish."
Calvinistic
by the preacher,
who spoke
the loss of which has deprived so
the
still
shocked,
laughing
help
hardly
may
mentioned
But an opposite fairly
in
fault,
be charged on
Macmillan, who
never preached without referring to " the back settlements of eternity,"
wherein the predestination of the elect had
2So
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
been irrevocably fixed before the foundation of the world. It
must be remembered, however, that the
when employed upon sermons,
is
critical faculty,
peculiarly liable to be dis-
torted or obscured by personal or party bias, as
Evangelical spinster,
who had
what she fondly imagined
when the
listened in rapt attention to
to be a
most edifying discourse,
exclaimed in anguish, as the preacher turned to the altar at
its
close, "
Alas
!
but he has only the
I
thought he had the
gift
of the gab."
gift
and genuine power of speech are of course dients of
all
true eloquence.
preacher to be eloquent
;
and
of the Spirit,
Originality of thought essential ingre-
But we cannot expect every after
all,
the main distinction
between a good preacher and a bad one,
is
the difference
between the man who has to say something and the man
who has something
to say.
XXXI.
HUGO GROTIUS. The
observance
Hugo
of
known
Grotius
to
year at Delft of the tercentenary
last
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;to
the world
him the name by which he
give
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
or,
is
he was called by his own
as
countrymen, Huig van Groot, serves at once to remind us of a great
memory and
it is
usually
of those
whom
that
of the truth that prophets are so
apt to be honoured in their
little
was not indeed
left for
their slain,
own
country, during
life,
the children to build the sepulchres fathers
have destroyed.
Grotius
but he was sentenced to perpetual
imprisonment by his native Government, and only escaped the
full
endurance of the penalty through the courage and
And
ingenuity of his wife.
suffered to elapse before the Delft,
three
when the Prince of Orange attended
monument
to him,
marked the
respect or reparation paid if
for erecting
tardy instalment of
first
by Holland
not her greatest citizen.
at
to lay a wreath
on his grave, and a subscription was organized a
had been
centuries
commemorative ceremony
to her greatest jurist,
However,
if
he has suffered
the usual fate of a great prophet at home, he has enjoyed
from his own day to ours an European of
the marvellous criticism
whose pen was too apt cipal
to run
celebrity.
hazarded
In spite
by De Quincey,
away with him, on the
work of Grotius, as a medley of
"
prin-
empty truisms and
282
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
time-serving Dutch falsehoods ties,
"
combined
in
the general verdict of posterity was
summed up
De Jure except
modern
many
Pads had done more
Belli et
fairly
than any writer
Smith to establish the working principles of His Mare Liberiun
society.
contain in
pretty
a remark of the Times, that the author of
in
Adam
equal quanti-
germ
may
even be said to
Like
at least the doctrine of Free Trade.
other great men, Grotius was a prodigy of precocious
genius, though infant prodigies
posed good Latin verses University course
Martianus Capella
;
verify
at twelve he entered
on
his
Leyden, where he came under the
at
guidance of Scaliger
;
by no means always
At. eight years old he com-
the promise of their youth.
;
at fifteen he published an edition of
he edited the remains of
at seventeen
Aratus, and took his degree of doctor of law, and began practice as
an advocate.
He had meanwhile
published
three Latin dramas on Scriptural themes, one of which,
Adamns
Exiil,
said to
is
of Paradise Lost.
At
have supplied hints to the author
the age of twenty he was appointed
historiographer to the United Provinces, and a year later
he composed a published
till
treatise
De Jure
Prcudcv,
which was never
1868, but Vv^hich in fact contains the ground
plan of his best-known work, the treatise et Pacis,
published twenty years
De Jure
Belli
The Mare
later, in 1626.
LiberuJH, printed without his sanction in 1609, and answered
by Selden
in his
3Iare Clausum, formed a chapter of the
unpublished treatise De Jure Prcedcz.
In 161 3, at the early
•age of thirty, Grotius succeeded Elias Oldenbarnevelt as
Pensionary of the city of Rotterdam long allowed to retain
— and
the
— an
office
he was not
same year he came
England with a deputation sent from Holland
to
to adjust
HUGO GROTIUS.
283
the rising differences between the two maritime States,
and was received with distinguished courtesy by James
But
as afterwards at the Court of Louis XIII. also influenced
him
a word may now be
said.
England this
We
have seen already
a jurist, Grotius was a
in
another direction, and of
that, in spite of his
man
I.,
his visit to
eminence as
of very varied interests and
acquirements, and was far from restricting himself to the
study of the law. poetry, found
and
studies in
fact
a
History, theology, politics, classics, even place,
as well
And
his writings.
as jurisprudence, in
his chief interest,
to the great misfortune of his
life,
and may be
said indirectly to have shaped his subsequent career,
theology. this,
He had
but his
define
it.
visit to
He
England helped both
to confirm
and
cultivated while in this country the society
High Church
school,
Overall and Andrewes, and became intimate with
Isaac Casaubon,
who warmly commends
and profound learning of
this
in his
the piety, probity,
"wonderful man," and "the
rare excellence of his divine genius."
implanted or fostered
The
mind by the
principles then
influence of the
Caroline school of divines adhered to him through
On
was
previously indeed given evidence of
of leading ecclesiastics of the nascent like
his
which led
his return to
Holland he found the
strife
life.
raging hotly
between the Armlnians and the Gomarists, or Anti-Remonstrants, as
they were then designated (the Supralapsarian
Calvinists),
But
Prince
and took part very decidedly with the former. Maurice of Nassau dreaded
of Oldenbarnevelt,
Arminian,
and
the Grand
determined
so-called "orthodox," or
Pensionary,
therefore
to
the
influence
who was an support
extreme Calvinist party
;
the
in 161
284
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
Oldenbarnevclt was condemned to death, and Grotius to confiscation of goods
and imprisonment
accordingly, on June
6,
up
1619, shut
for
He was
life.
in the fortress of
Loevestein, and there he remained for nearly two years,
during which period
he wrote his famous treatise
Veritate RcUgionis Christiancs.
share his imprisonment, and in April 162 his deliverance
to contain
to carry "
there
by placing him
books and dirty
1
in a chest,
The
linen.
she contrived
supposed only
employed
soldiers
complained of the weight, and observed that
it
must be an Arminian
His wife replied
inside."
that there were Arminian books in to Paris,
De
His wife was allowed to
He made
it.
his escape
where Louis XHI. received him graciously, and
promised him an annual pension of 3000
livres,
which, like
other French pensions of that day, was never paid, and he
was reduced
to great poverty.
At
this
time he composed
the work on which his reputation chiefly Belli et
Pads, based, however,
in large
rests,
before observed, on his earlier unpublished treatise
He
PrcedcE.
feeling
was prompted to write
it
sort of
which inspired another important work of a religious
him
Christendom of
reason at
"
all "
;
war waged with a licence even barbarous
ashamed
into
of,
for trivial reasons or for
he was writing amid
Thirty Years' War. translated
It dis-
to witness the spectacle presented throughout
nations might be
The
title
all
no
the horrors of the
of the work, which has been
every European language, gives a very
inadequate conception of treatise
De Jure
by the same
nature to be noticed presently, his love of peace. tressed
De Jure
measure, as has been
on moral,
social,
said to exhibit the
its
real scope.
It is in truth
a
and international law, and may be
first
serious attempt to establish on
HUGO GROTIUS.
2S5
independent grounds a principle of right and basis
Hallam has drawn out a
society and government.
abstract of
and Mackintosh pronounced
it,
it
for
careful
to be " per-
haps the most complete that the world has yet owed, at so early a stage in the progress of
and learning of one man."
any
science, to the genius
That the superadded know-
ledge and experience of two centuries and a half show his
theory to be
in
some
respects defective,
is
no disparagement
to the high merits of the work.
Nor were their
The
way.
the treatise, ChristiancB, getics,
but
treatises is
remarkable
less
in
and perhaps best known of them,
already mentioned, classical
De
Rcligionis
Veritate
manual of Christian Apolo-
and was translated not only into most European,
more
One
earliest
became a
several
work was is
theological writings
his
Oriental
his
languages.
Another
Commentary on Holy be
to
likely
remembered
considerable
But he
Scripture. for
two
theological
on what were then burning questions of the day.
the Dcfciice of the Catholic Faith on the Satisfaction
of Christ, written
in
vindication of the doctrine of the Atone-
ment against Socinianism, which, however, advocates a modification of the Lutheran rather than the Catholic view of the subject.
The Via et Votnm ad Pacem
published only three years before his death,
have given the side to the
first
Ecclesiasticam,
may be
Reunion movement of the seventeenth century,
taken up so warmly on the same 'side by Calixtus .
his contemporaries, nitz,
said to
powerful impetus from the Protestant
among
and afterwards by Molanus" and Leib-
and which met with a cordial response
same century from men
like
later
in the
Royas de Spinola, Cardinal
and Bishop of Neustadt, who acted with the
full
sanction
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
286
and encouragement of Pope Innocent XL, and Mr. Mark Pattison,
Bossuet.
Erasmus,
in the
latterly
who compares
by
Grotius to
Encydopcedia Britan7iica, says that both of
them, though for very different reasons, "indifference to dogma," which
felt
Erasmus put
the
same
aside with
the superior contempt of a scholar for monkish wrangles, while Grotius wished to get rid of religious unity
to the
way the
same
and concord
That, however,
view.
of stating the case.
as an
it
impediment to
and Hallam evidently
;
is
Grotius betrays
Atonement a very keen eye
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; one
inclines
hardly an accurate in his treatise
on
might say the keen
insight of a juristâ&#x20AC;&#x201D; for theological subtleties.
But he had
an overpowering conviction of the supreme importance of unity and authority, and was willing to go a long
meet the Catholic party
On
religious sanctions.
in
way
to
order to secure these great
the necessity, for instance, of a
centre of unity he spoke very decidedly, and hence he
was ready
to concede to the
Galilean school of that
defended
many
Papacy quite
as
day would have cared
much
as the
to claim
;
he
Tridentine doctrines in detail, and thought
the schism of the Reformation had done more
good.
It is
quite intelligible that an
harm than Amsterdam preacher
should have denounced him as "papisajis," and that reports
Rome
of his conversion to quarters.
should have been
rife in
many
Hallam, who thinks he had "a bias towards
Popery," expresses his conviction that, had Grotius lived a little
that
longer, he certainly " still
true, as
remained
" ;
Mr. Pattison
would have taken the easy leap
and he insists,
is
probably
right.
It
may
be
that he looked at the matter
rather from the standpoint of a statesman than of a divine,
from
his intense appreciation of the
need of ecclesiastical
HUGO GROTIUS.
287
organization and unity, but he had also a very deep senti-
ment of by the
piety,
and
his religious leanings
Calvinist intolerance to
subjected
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;pointed
direction.
He
Church
in a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
vivified
perhaps
which he had himself been
Catholic rather than a Protestant
avowedly much preferred the Anglican
to continental Protestantism.
His historical works, among which the chief place must be assigned to the Annals of the Loiv Countries published death, are of less
after his
permanent
theological and juridical treatises.
interest than his
But the many-sidedness
of his mind, his vast erudition, his wide range both of
thought and sympathy, and his curious anticipation
many
in
respects of principles repudiated or ignored at the
time, but which have since then passed into general accept-
and
his claim
human
progress.
ance, constitute his characteristic excellence, to rank
among
The bent tical,
the foremost pioneers of
of his genius
and
in
diplomatic
was speculative rather than praclife
he attained to no great success.
His mission was to lay down to others to develop
born
man
principles,
and apply.
of letters, but unlike
which
it
was
left
Like Erasmus he was a
Erasmus he
felt
a keen and
absorbing interest in the moral and religious welfare of
His great
mankind.
a genuine
harmony war.
desire to
political
treatise
was prompted by
promote the good government and
of Christian nations,
and to abate the horrors of
His great ecclesiastical treatise was designed, not to
minimise the importance of Christian dogma, but to enforce the paramount obligations of Christian unity, and exhibit
what appeared
to
him the grave
of a state of schism.
might entertain
religious evils
and dangers
Whatever abstract preference he
for particular Protestant doctrines,
he not
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
288
only did not love but intensely loathed
"
the dissidence of
Dissent and the Protestantism of the Protestant religion."
Such a man was scarcely his in
own day
in
intelligible to the Protestants of
France and Holland, with
outward communion, while
his
whom he remained
nominal Protestantism was
The
a scandal and perplexity to contemporary Catholics.
man who most say shared
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
thoroughly appreciated
his religious position
aim," as Mr. Pattison says,
Christendom."
"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; one might
was Casaubon.
indeed "
Their
was the same, the reunion of
Dollinger observes that he "insisted far more
strongly than Calixtus on the profound and extreme diverg-
ence of Protestantism from the Church of the early centuries,
and the necessity of either seeking reunion with the
ancient Church, or at least restoring rejected."
not unreasonably conjectures,
he did not
when
it
much which had been
But whatever might have occurred, as Hallam
in fact see his
if
way
was urged on him by
his residence in France.
his life
to a
his Gallican friends during
His health had never been robust,
and the end came rather suddenly to the Court of
Queen
had been prolonged,
change of communion
at last, after a brief visit
Christina of Sweden, where he was
He
cordially welcomed, but did not find himself at
home.
died in 1645 at the age of sixty-two.
remarkable
that, in a life of less
It is truly
than average length and more than'
average trouble and vicissitude, he should have accomplished so
much
as he did.
In an age of multiplied discoveries and
feverish competition such many-sidedness as his
But
almost or altogether impossible. to
name another
in his
own
it
would be
or perhaps in
earned a high and permanent,
if
becomes difficult
any age who has
not equal, celebrity, at once
as a scholar, a jurist, an historian,
and a
divine.
XXXII.
'SVVEDENBORG AND SWEDENBORGIANISM.
There in
are not probably a very large
England who
either
know
or care
number of people much about that
most mystical and eccentric of theologians and heresiarchs,
Emanuel Swedenborg, nor has had any large following ever, to
the sect he founded ever
in this country.
It appears,
be entering on a phase of special activity
United States, where a recent writer
in
disciples of the
Swedish
the
the North American
Revieiv informs us that strenuous efforts are being
by
how-
in
made
reformer to spread his opinions.
And
he adds with regret that "they naturally lay chief
stress
on
base
is
whereas
his religious opinions,"
better to approach secure."
him
"
from the
it
would be much where
scientific side,"
chief stress on the religious opinions of their founder. is,
" his
Possibly, but religionists are apt to lay the
There
however, an enlightened minority of American Sweden-
borgians, 94 in number, " receivers of the heavenly doctrines in this country,"
to
who
the " General
three years ago presented a memorial
Convention
ruling authority in their
"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;which apparently the â&#x20AC;&#x201D; asking courteous
communion
is
in
terms, and with citations from Swedenborg's writings, that " the attitude of the organized
New
Church may no longer
continue to be one of seeming antagonism or conscious
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
290
other religious bodies,
superiority to
modest self-appreciation, and kindly, of other Christians."
but rather
one of
fraternal recognition
This looks rather
like
asking their
Church, which holds doctrines widely different from those
most
of
"
other
Christians,"
to
efface
itself.
One can
hardly wonder that, after being unfavourably noticed by the N'cw Jcrusalcvi Magazine, the memorial
dismissed, nor
is
New
controlling powers in the siv^e
system, perhaps fearing
might cause less
can
was quietly
easy to dispute the inference that " the
it
Church cling to the exclua
lest
removal of barriers
their alleged peculiarity to disappear."
Still
be reasonably denied that the controlling powers
it
are wise in their generation
;
we
all
know how much
the
growing disuse even of a distinctive dress has tended to
weaken the
force of
reviewer's belief
Quakerism as a
religious institution, has outlived is
likely
religious sect.
The
that " Swedenborgianism, as a form of
is
excuse for being," which
its
enough, but he can hardly expect that view to be
shared by the authorities of the Swedenborgian Church.
What
does appear strange, not to say paradoxical, in his
contention
is,
not the belief that Swedenborgianism
— like
Fourierism, the Individualism of Emerson, and other forms of
thought
America d'etre
it
which
forty years
may
were
closely
— has
ago
with
whatever
it
in
j-aison
once have had, but the bold suggestion that
Swedenborg's followers have
meaning of
associated
outlived
their
all
along mistaken the true
master's teaching,
when they turned
a
great philosopher into a seer and the founder of a sect.
"The
claim to
'
angelic
borg certainly made
—
'
authentication
" is
and the writer proceeds
to
really a drag
sum up
"—which Swedenon the doctrine
;"
the doctrine in a series of
SWEDENBORG AND SWEDENBORGIANISM. " truths "
some of which
or " divine commonplaces,"
commonplace enough, while
others,
being either
or
indisputable
291
true, are so far
if
are
from
undisputed that they are
repudiated by the immense majority of Christians of every
communion.
And
he thinks that Swedenborg was led to
adopt them from observing the utterly corrupt state of
all
existing Christian organizations, in support of which he
quotes from one of the prophet's works a long story of
what
"
the bishop, looking at me, said," which
episcopal interlocutor looked at
not
is
both so
and so profane that one cannot help suspecting the
silly
in
Be that as
the flesh.
it
Swedenborg
may,
to be told that tlie doctrines of
own age become
in vision,
Swedenborg have
religious truisms,
and
rather perplexing
it is
in
our
which form the burden
of popular preaching and are enunciated from
all
more or
less liberal pulpits. It
may be worth
while, in view of this marvellous asser-
tion, briefly to recall w^hat
religious
system really
the principal doctrines of his
are.
Emanuel Swedenborg, the
son of a Swedish Lutheran bishop, was born at Stockholm in
1688,
and began, according to
receive spiritual
inspirations undoubtedly
logical recoil
own
his
manifestations about
originated
versive of morality
rejected with
the Church.
it
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; not ;
His theo-
without good
a
in
from the current Protestant doctrine of
which he regarded
account, to
1745.
violent
justification,
reason
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as
sub-
but in rejecting Lutheran doctrine he
the great
body of the
traditional belief of
His teaching on the Trinity
is
not easily
distinguishable from Sabellianism, and in order to cut up
by the
roots
the
denied original sin
Lutheran scheme of altogether.
The
justification,
he
reviewer says that
U
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
292
he "abolished the equally clear
;
his
devil,"
but that
is
not by any
whole teaching on the future
on future states of reward and punishment, obscure and mystical language, though
means and
life,
clothed in
is
includes very
it
precise statements about the condition in the next world
of the leading Reformers
who were doomed
by
of justification
theories
inculcated
One
here.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; Luther,
expiate
to
Calvin,
and others immoral
the
hereafter
they had
only which
faith
of Swedenborg's system, to
part
which he attached a high importance, and which had indeed long before been a favourite idea with both Jewish
commentators and early Christian Fathers, though application of
it
was "the doctrine of correspondencies." over and above the
literal
and
their
from his own,
differed of course widely
meant that
It
direct sense of Scripture,
which can be ascertained by the ordinary methods of exegesis, there
is
an occult and spiritual sense only to .
be discerned by the eye of historian facts, it
any
is
may
apparently relating a very simple narrative of
be the primary object,
rate of the writing,
know what
students
has
made
while the
thus,
if
not of the writer, at
composed under Divine guidance,
convey some deep Christian mystery.
to
is
And
faith.
All patristic
among
extensive use Origen
of this allegorical
method of
one which naturally commends
and somewhat visionary habit
itself to
of
others
interpretation.
men
mind, and
Swcden-
borg, strange as were his views, and in spite of a intellectual penetration,
was an
was one, and a devout
enthusiast.
enthusiast,
and he was no doubt describing
well as
his
"consists in
there
keen ever
" Piety," he observed
himself,
theory,
if
It
of a devout
his practice, as
thinking and
speaking
SWEDENBORG AND SWEDENBORGIANISM. much time
piously, spending
prayer, behaving
in
at that time, frequenting churches,
293
humbly
and attending devoutly Sacrament of
to the preaching there, often receiving the
the Supper every year, and performing the other parts of
worship according to Church ordinances."
Into his inter-
pretation of particular passages of Scripture, and details of his doctrinal system, there
here.
Enough has been
is
other
no need to enter
already to show that
said
a very peculiar one, and certainly does
it
is
not consist so
exclusively of " the cardinal doctrine of love to the Lord
and charity borgians
to
of
the
any
neighbour,"
plausible
as to
pretext
deprive for
Sweden-
continuing
to
maintain a separate religious organization of their own, as is
contended by the reviewer
certainly well qualified in
of Swedenborg,
if
;
who,
it
must be added,
is
one respect to be the exponent
obscurity of style be a qualification for
interpreting a writer
who
is
himself obscure.
It
must be
allowed that Swedenborg was a far more vigorous and
hardly more heterodox thinker than an earlier (German) "
theosophist,"
whose
by Hallam, and who
"
incoherencies of madness
is
best
known
in
"
are noted
England from the
circumstance that unhappily the wild mysticism of blessed
Bohmen "
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; which
he learnt
"
the
years vir-
in his later
tually to prefer to the teaching of either Scripture or the
Church
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; served to cloud
the keen and masculine intellect
of no less eminent a divine than William Law, author of
the Serious Call, and to convert his once robust theology into a strange farrago of
The
maundering
imbecilities.
reviewer seems to consider the real essence
of
Swedenborgian doctrine to correspond pretty much with the so-called rationalistic or very
"
Broad Church
"
teaching
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
294
of
present day, and
the
thus
Swedenborg, who anticipated
and was
few years
for a
in
"
age has overtaken
the
its drift,
interpreted
advance of
becoming
follows that, " as all churches are fast
the
New
doomed
Church, as a
Jerusalem
Swedenborg was
consider that
philosopher than a theologian
combination
of
separate
He
to inevitable extinction.
"
,
It
liberal,"
society,
much more
is
of
a
prodigy, a
a scientific
Copernicus,
Euclid,
secret,
further appears to
really
—
its
course."
its
Laplace, Vesalius,
Galen, Boerhaave, Harvey, Oken, Gothe, and whomsoever {sic)
may have
else
among
been distinguished
discoverers, inventors
"—and
that the false
which the perverse reverence of
explorers,
position
into
disciples
religious
his
intruded him has prevented his scientific eminence being as yet adequately recognised.
It
with this estimate on either point.
man
fessedly a his will
is
of considerable scientific attainments, but
chief claim to
posthumous
celebrity, valcat quantuin,
always be based on the peculiar form of religious
enthusiasm which he exemplified and
municated to
his
followers.
represent his teaching, in anticipation of
modern
its
Nor
" liberal "
Apostles' Creed except the subtle
so
dox
" ;
"
is
at all
correct
to
theology, single
though
it
of
article
is
the
can survive the application solvent.
It
is
therefore
one thing, and modern religious
a —which another. quite — affects
is
logically carried out
measure com-
in a it
Swedenborg's ideas are quite unortho-
but heterodoxy
liberalism " doxies "
first
and powerful a
perfectly true that
is
idea and intention, as a mere
more than doubtful whether any
of
impossible to agree
Swedenborg was con-
would
sublime
indifference
That Swedenborg's
result in
an
"
to
all
principles
extremely radical"
SWEDENBORG AND SWEDENBORGIANISM. form
"from
heterodoxy,
of
instinctively recoil,"
of heterodoxy
it
which
[most]
unquestionably true;
is
would be
after
tive " anti-preternaturalism," to
what cumbrous phrase.
295
reh'gionists
but a form,
and not a mere nega-
all,
adopt the reviewer's somecan his suggestion be
Still less
admittedâ&#x20AC;&#x201D; but here he becomes rather hopelessly obscure
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that
Swedenborg's
points not at
on earth for
;
what
all
life,
but to a perfected society
that he was, in short, endeavouring to substitute
his critic calls preternaturalism a
secularism,
"
To contemplate
one's breath away, for
power of the
it
so-called
forces
kind of glorified
he says,
this,"
"
almost takes
one to imagine the entire
religious
world diverted from
employment and devoted
present
humanity
regenerated
a
of
ideal
to a future
delightful prospect,
no doubt, but
Divine revelations,
in
ends."
social
to
its
A
this interpretation of the
which he unfeignedly and passion-
ately believed,
would not almost but altogether have taken
Svv^edenborg's
breath away,
we saw
who was much
just now, to church-going, prayer,
the Sacrament of the Supper."
on
gloss
h's
teaching,
may
be an ingenious
only in the same sense as
but
Euemerus put an ingenious
It
addicted, as
and "receiving
gloss
on the old Greek myths.
Even the reviewer shrinks from
insisting " that
Sweden-
borg fully entertained the views outlined above."
might
not, perhaps,
have anathematized them,
for
He
he was
not given to anathemas, but he would assuredly have consigned their teachers, had he
known
such uncomfortable purgatory, or the
Protestant
Reformers,
who
still
of
them, to some
worse position, as
propounded
immoral
theories of justification, occupied in his visionary world.
The
reviewer
" rejoices
in the existence of a
Swedenborg
296
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
may
Publication Society," which
AND BIOGRAPHY.
serve to diffuse the works
of the great philosopher of the future, but "cannot rejoice in the existence of a
New
Jerusalem Church," which only
serves to smother his philosophical light under the bushel " If
of an effete theology. establish itself on
schemes indicated just now plaint of
its
decadence."
New
indeed the
this rock "
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; "there
There would
If secularism cannot hold its
Church," new or old,
"
the incongruous
be
for its continuance.
own without
preternaturalism
the help of
"
some
has no cause to
its
rival
least of
;
can secularism expect to gain a fresh lease of
the hypocritical
social
surely, however,
be alarmed at the future aggressions of all
and
would be no com-
no adequate reason, or ground of hope,
"
Church would
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; of the secularist
tour de force of thrusting itself
by
life
under
patronage of the most eccentric, most
devout, and
most incomprehensible of modern
enthusiasts.
Meanwhile the American reviewer has simply
religious
reproduced, in a cruder form, the transparent fallacy of his
French Protestant biographer some twenty years ago, M. Matter,
who argued
that
therefore not a mystic
was
really both.
;
Swedenborg was a like
rationalist,
Bohmen, a century
and
earlier,
he
XXXIII. STRAUSS.
The
death ten years ago of David Frederick Strauss
was a notable event generally,
Germany and
in
were neither Germans nor divines.
who took no speculation
interest in theology, or
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as
it
To Englishmen even who looked on German
has been somewhere expressed
vast Hercynian forest,
He
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as
name
at
least
or
was
sceptical
school of theology, and in this sense his latest work,
und der
a
had long been dreaded or admired as the
chief living representative of the rationalist
Altc
"
out of which Bunsens and other
monsters occasionally emerge," his familiar.
the theological world
and could hardly pass unnoticed by those who
Neiie Glaubc, was
made
delivered the year before his death
Der
the text of an address
by Mr. Gladstone
at
Liverpool College, which provoked a good deal of com-
ment
at
the
time.
Nor was such an
estimate of his
position altogether an unreasonable one.
of kindred tendencies
may have
Other writers
shown, like Baur, a more
balanced judgment and a firmer argumentative grasp of their subject, or, like
Germany, a wider
Renan,
may have
circle of readers
attracted, even in
than Strauss.
But the
phrase so often applied as a mere idle conventionalism has
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AxMD BIOGRAPHY.
298
meaning- here.
its full
was
only twenty-seven years
epoch
" in
say that the
It is perfectly true to
appearance of the ^xsXLeben Jesu
in 1835,
of
age,
when
the author
" constituted
theological literature and thought in
His success as a writer was no doubt due
in
an
Germany,
some measure
to that transparent lucidity of style in which he contrasts
so remarkably with the great majority of his countrymen,
of whatever school, and which has been not inaptly com-
But
pared to DoUinger's.
in
the rival champions of faith
and unbelief that very clearness of language
is
partly,
if
not
mainly, due to the clearness of thought which distinguishes
many of their
both of them from too
know
contemporaries
to say it J. S. Mill,
A
similar
remark might be applied
whose conclusions
perhaps materially
differ
in
we can adequately
history of
from those of Strauss, though they
and
it
will
be necessary to glance at
Meanwhile the main incidents of be dismissed
in
how-
contemporary state of theological
speculation in Europe, and especially in his
may
Before,
appreciate Strauss's place in the
modern thought,
the antecedent
to the late
religious matters did not
were arrived at by a very different process. ever,
they
;
know how
exactly what they mean, and therefore
a few words.
his
Born
own
country.
uneventful in
wigsburg, and educated for the Protestant ministry, he described
by Quinet
as " a
young man
life
1808 at Lud-
full
is
of candour,
sweetness, and modesty, of a spirit almost mystical, and
saddened, as caused." in
1
83
1
it
were,
by the disturbances which had been
After completing his university studies, he went
to Berlin to hear Schleiermacher lecture
of Christ,
and returned
to Tubingen,
become acquainted with Baur,
as
on the Life
where he had already a privatdocent in the
STRAUSS.
299
The appearance
Protestant Faculty of The'ology.
Leben Jcsu led to his dismissal afterwards
a
Government armed
theological at
in
1835
;
of the
but four years
was offered him by the
chair
by an
Zurich, from which he was driven
insurrection of the orthodox Protestant party,
and
thenceforth he devoted himself to a literary career, hardly interrupted
by
his election in 1848 to a seat in the Diet of
Wurtembcrg, which the unpopularity of
his strong political
Conservatism led him soon afterwards to resign. be observed
in passing, that this
may
It
union of the most revo-
lutionary theories in philosophy and theology with a rigid
bureaucratic the
arapa^ia
Toryism
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; reminding
theory of the
Stoics
phenomenon among advanced was disagreeably exemplified
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
thinkers
in
some ways of
common
a very
Germany
in
it
;
in the political pusillanimity
The Lcbcn Jcsu was
and toadyism of Gothe.
1840 by a work on Christian
Modern
one
Doctrine
in
followed in relation
to
Science, in which the pantheistic views which the
author had learnt from Hegel are more fully developed. In 1847 appeared Julian the Apostate, and
in
1858 a Life
of Ulrich von Hutten, the well-known author of Epistolcs
Obscurorum Virorum, which was republished
what altered form
in 1871,
something more than a purely pose, the
first
in a
some-
both editions having avowedly literary or historical pur-
being directed against the Austrian Con-
cordat, the second against the influence of " priestly obscurantists "
in
translation
the restored
German Empire.
by Mrs. Sturge appeared
author's death, in 1874.
second Leben Jesu lished in 1864,
'fiir
An
shortly
English
after
the
These are minor works, but the das deuische Volk
bearbeitet,
pub-
and the Der Alte und der Neue Glaube,
in
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
300
1872, complete the theological trilogy, so to call
which Strauss
much
It is so
Germany
the fashion to regard
many
fountain-head of modern Rationalism that
may be
surprised to learn, what
and
is
work
— that
expressly acknowledged the
England and France fell
the
first
assault
thence
into
its
rise
France, and from
"
Germany.
fact,
To England's
share
and the forging of the weapons, the
these weapons across
and adroitly
as the
in his latest
really took
into
work of the Freethinkers or Deists briskly
by
persons
undoubtedly the
is
by Strauss
movement
sceptical
England, and passed
in
it,
be permanently remembered.
will
;
Frenchmen brought wielded them
Channel, and
the
in constant light
skirmishing
;
while
Germany one man chiefly undertook the regular investment of the Zion of orthodoxy. Voltaire on one side,
in
Reimarus on the
character of their
the
typified
other,
The English Deistic school, of which Cherbury and Hobbes may be called the
respective nations."
Lord Herbert of founders,
and which culminated
and Chubb,
—whose
tianity as old as the Creation,"
development
by
sceptical writers,
from
is
reflex
who had
country
this
aggressive,
a
the
;
it
first
half
teaching of Tindal
be said to be ".Chris-
—was coloured influence
received their
became
less
of first
serious
in its later
the
French
inspirations
and
more
and the sneering tone of Voltaire and Diderot
reproduced in Gibbon and rule, is
in the
may
keynote
the temper of of
the
Tom
German
eighteenth
Paine.
Far
rationalism.
different, as
But
in the
century the philosophical
speculations of Wolff combined with the introduction of
English Deism, through translations of Tindal and other writers,
and the influence of French
infidel refugees at the
STRAUSS. court of Frederick II.
ward both
profession in
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;himself disguising under the out-
Protestantism
of
morality and
301
its
cynical
his
Divine Author
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to
disbelief
the slug-
stir
Between
gish waters of traditional Lutheran orthodoxy. that time and 1835
we may
trace
first
a destructive and
then a reconstructive period in German Protestant theology.
The at
destructive criticism
was begun by Semler, a Professor
who meant, however,
Halle,
to
be an apologist, but
remodelled the Canon of Scripture on a priori grounds,
and
first
introduced the distinction, of which Baur and
others have so largely availed themselves since, between St.
Peter and St. Paul as leaders of two opposite parties in
the infant Church. to
have
left
whom
Lessing, of
Strauss
is
biography, though
an unfinished
reported
perhaps
himself rather a doubter than a Deist, gave a powerful
impulse to the same movement by the publication of the Woljfenbiittel Fraguients
criticism of
who
Semler
of Reimarus.
w^as continued
The
rationalistic
by Eichorn and Paulus,
eliminated the supernatural element from Scripture
altogether, while maintaining
its
historical accuracy.
miraculous portions of the narrative were not so
denied as explained away. sick
was
effected
Thus,
e.g.,
The much
the healing of the
by natural means or by
a
kind
of
magnetic influence on their minds, the multiplication of the loaves by a secret supply, walking on the water meant
walking on the bank beside
it,
and the Resurrection
was only a way of recording the never really died on the Cross. difficulties
of this
method of
fact that the
The
itself
Saviour had
critical
and moral
interpretation have been
by
no one more mercilessly exposed than by Strauss himself but
it
was popular
for a time,
and was applied
to Christian
302
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. by
doctrine
writers
The
scheider.
Bretschneider, Rohr, and
like
and Hegel tended of course they came into
in
the
same
though
direction,
immediate contact with the theological
less
of the
controversies
day.
was only natural that a
It
movement should be provoked, and
reactionary
country of mixed
it
was
religions
like
equally natural
in
Germany
should assume a double form.
that
Weg-
philosophical teaching of Fichte, Schelling,
it
a
On
the
one hand, there commenced with the present century a Catholic reaction, of which Count Stolberg, Frederick and
Augustus Schlegel, Tieck, and Novalis are leading representatives, '.though only the
Roman
Catholic Church.
macher,
who
was, as
two actually joined the
first
On
we have
the other hand, Schleier-
seen, one of Strauss's earliest
teachers, attempted in his GlaubenslcJire to find a basis for
orthodox it
belief, or
rather orthodox sentiment,
by founding
on the collective Christian consciousness, emulating to a
certain extent the " pietism " of
but
in fact,
Spener a century before
as Strauss has pointed out, he gave
;
up the
genuineness of the Gospels, the divinity of Christ, and the reality of prayer,
which
for
him had a purely
His treatment of the
value. differs
in
form rather than
in
New
subjective
Testament miracles
substance from that
of
Religion became in his hands a matter of devout
Paulus.
emotion,
independent of
history
and
dogma,
created a spirit rather than founded a school.
and Ewald, and
still
more of course Neander
and
he
De Wette
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; whose Life
of CJirist was expressly designed as an answer to Strauss returned more nearly to the Evangelical standard of ortho-
doxy
;
while the advanced Lutheran school, represented by
Hengstcnberg, Havernick, and Stahl
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; which
was partly a
STRAUSS.
303
reaction from the enforced fusion Calvinist Churches in
1
817
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; may even
Thus we
England.
in
to the appearance in 1835 of the
was a
are brought
Lcbcn Jcsu, which
first
addressed, as the author was
protest,
and
III. of Prussia,
be said to have some analogy to the
movement
Tractarian
of the Lutheran
by Frederick Wihiam
careful
to
explain, not to the general public but to scholars, at once
against the rationalism of Paulus and the mysticism of
Schleiermacher
not, however, a protest in the interests of
;
In
orthodoxy.
1846,
when
the work had
Germany, an English
fourth edition in
from the pen of the
then unknown,
writer,
became famous under the
sobriquet of
The Lcbcn Jcsu may be divided giving an
introductory sketch
Biblical criticism
reached
its
translation appeared
who
George
afterwards
Eliot.
into three parts, the first
of
previous
systems
of
and the formation of the mythical theory,
the second examining the Gospel narrative in detail, the third
and concluding portion discussing
cance.
Towards the end,
in
of the Orthodox system," which the
in
New
its
doctrinal signifi-
a section on the " Christology is
shown
have
to
Testament, the author describes
its
roots
in a strain of
almost rapturous eloquence the idea of Christ,
"
so
full
of
blessing and elevation, encouragement and comfort," which
prevailed
in
the
early
Church.
materials, he adds, in the
New
There were abundant Testament
for construct-
ing the rule of faith eventually formulated in the so-called Apostles' Creed
;
and the condemnation, as they
arose, of
the successive heresies, from the Ebionite to the Monothelite, ^
A
which contradicted that
faith,
fuller analysis of this section,
comparing
the second Leben Jesu^
of the Atonement.
is
given
m
was
Excursus VI. of
it
fully
justified.
with the preface of
my
Catholic Doctrine
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
304
Nearly thirty years elapsed before the author published in
1864 his second Leben Jcsu, addressed
to
a
learned
oddly phrases
but it,
"
time not
form, not in principle, and
rather
to the Gentiles,
when
But the two works
differ
as Paul turned
the Jews rejected his Gospel." in
this
a popular audience, as he
to
the preface to the latter
contains a distinct affirmation of their essential identity.
The
"
"
Christology of the Church
is
still
represented as
the product of several " groups of myths," of which twelve are enumerated
;
but the word must not be understood
the sense which Comparative Professor it.
Max
M
tiller
and
The Gospel myths
G. VV. Cox, has attached to
Sir
are not a poetical presentation of
and simset or other natural phenomena, but have
sunrise
grown up round a nucleus of
historic fact.
existence of Christ, which was
work,
in
Mythology, as treated, by
is
now
expressly affirmed
influence of the
Tubingen
are few great
men
of
whom
the religion which bears His rather than
now be
by Himself.
— and little
name
" Little
certainly ascertained
;
here
we
trace the
but he insists that there
;
so
personal
which practically means
school,
of Baur, on the mind of Strauss
The
uncertain in the earlier
left
is
known, and that
w^as created
by
St.
Paul
of His real history can
what
is
certain
is,
that the
supernatural acts and events on which the faith of the
Church has true,
chiefly fastened never occurred at all."
aiisgezeichnetcr
Wcisc) manifested
ample can only be regarded for,
as
it is
— perhaps He
It is
however, that the Divine wisdom was remarkably
is
in
Christ, but
as a partial
elsewhere stated with also with a view to
much
{in
His ex-
and onesided one,
force against
Keim
Schleiermacher— so long as
regarded as a mere man,
He
cannot be said to
STRAUSS.
30s
The same
represent the perfect ideal of humanity.
ment has been urged Professor F.
Newman on
country,
this
in
one
by
Hke
and Dr. Liddon on the
side,
These views
Unitarian compromise.
other, against the
argu-
writers
about the Hfe and character of our Lord are repeated and
upon
dwelt
Strauss's
in
The
work.
last
between the old orthodox Christianity
distinction
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; which
is
again
declared to have been the belief, and the natural belief, of the early Church
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
the religion of the future
out at length in the preface to the second Leben
is
drawn
jfesu,
and
resolves itself into the substitution of a purely rationalistic
and
system
intellectual
And
revelation.
or Protestant,
a faith resting on a professed
for
therefore the Church, whether Catholic
must
be superseded,
religion with sacraments
for
implies a sacerdotal hierarchy, and the
getting rid of the priesthood
eliminate the super-
The
author, while differing
important points, as well as
Vie
de Jesus, which
Germany through labourer in the
on
his
cause.
memory its
from the
circulation
Renan
as
If there
is little
in
a fellow-
His book opens with a long
of his brother,
publication,
fictitious aids of
and who
who is
died within
congratulated illness
a supernatural belief.
difference of view
later versions of the
but
enormous
manly endurance of a long and painful
without the
series,
in general tone,
translations, hails
same
dedication to the
a few months of
had an
step towards
first
to
is
natural element from religion. in
supernatural
a
and means of grace necessarily
between the earlier and
Leben Jesu, the closing work of the
which followed after an interval of eight years, does
sum up and expand,
in
what
is
meant
literary testament, the conclusions previously
for a sort of
worked
X
out.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
3o6
It
mainly an answer to two questions, "Are we
is
?
Christians
"
Have we
"
and
a Religion
still
cannot
who
who
those
with
his
There
are
Christianity purged of
of a
talk
author replies to
emphatic negative.
an
dogma, a Christianity,
in short,
which
what an admirer of
in this
country, "
is
To
his
it,
" Christianity is
to
and
it
who
still
And
As
dead."
is
a definite form
be Christians,"
himself and those
in
proclaim an undogmatic Christianity,
possible to relinquish still
Chris-
system has lately repeated
to proclaim that Christianity
puts
all
sufficiently
is
But Strauss says
enlightened to dispense with Christ. effect,
is
from him most widely
differ
that the
respect,
to
question
first
tian
fail
still it
and clearness
characteristic of the straightforward honesty
of thought, which those
And
"
?
he himself
of religion
;
it
is
to be religious, but not
accordingly,
speaking
for
we would speak
" If
agree with him,
men, we must acknowledge that we are
as honest upright
He
no longer Christians."
will
have nothing to do with
the ingenious devices of a subtle rationalism or a vague
and inconsequent pietism, by which so many of cessors their
and contemporaries have, sought
followers
Christian
and
themselves,
theology must
but
says
be replaced by
kosmic conception educed painfully from
There
historical research."
age where he draws out of a Protestant pastor,
a quiet
is
Hebrew
first
sarily superior to
" to
scientific
humour
in
that
modern
the
and
the pass-
in detail the
supposed teaching himself obliged to
article of the Apostles'
For
not excepted.
prejudice
plainly "
who has found
explode one by one each successive Creed, the
his prede-
to deceive both
it is
in fact a
suppose that monotheism
polytheism
;
is
"mere neces-
both were but temporary
STRAUSS.
307
stages in the gradual advance to a higher truth.
God and
of a personal
a future
untenable, but
we need not
therefore
pessimism
Schopenhauer,
which
of
the contrary,
"we
acquiesce "
is
ideas to be
the
in
blasphemous,
we have no
religion.
claim the same piety for our
Kosmos
arrogant, and profane," or admit that
On
The now shown
are
life
which the devout of old claimed
for
But of
God."
his
course the notion of religion acquires, on this hypothesis, a
wholly new meaning. a worship, though
no longer produce or justify
It will
not
will
it
exert a moral influence
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; an
fail,
the author thinks, to
assumption which, except
may
the case of very peculiarly constituted natures,
be questioned.
Kosmos, universe
in ;
It
is
and
that,
consist
to
words, on
other
we
the
in
dependence on the
laws of
the
are bidden to believe,
and nobler conception than the
"
in
well
is
material
a far truer
low anthropopathism
"
of
dependence on God. This tion
is
not the piace to enter into a detailed examina-
of the
merits,
theological
system,
materialism
is
religious
or
of
historical,
system which
a
if
in
The
by such a name.
to be called
Strauss's
ends
pure
praise of
a fearless and consistent thinker, and a luminous expositor of the views he had deliberately adopted and held unflinchingly to the to
last,
he
may
doubt the sincerity of
as he assures us, under
giving an account of
through
life
for that
fairly claim.
his
a solemn sense
his
all
stewardship,
it.
no reason
of the duty of that
him
he fought truth,
and
as untruth, while he dis-
desire to shake the faith of those
already lost
is
which appeared to him as
against what appeared to
claims
There
almost dying assertion, made,
who have not
Strauss's originality of genius, one cannot
X
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
3o8
but think, has sometimes been overrated. negative criticism there
is
He began
theories he advocates.
of Hegel, though Hegelianism variously interpreted
correct, as
was
intellect
it
clear
historical grasp
is
and
is
it
disciple
not
necessary here to
for
good
him, however
if
is
or evil,
little
the
His
one.
rather than creative, and in
critical
But he has
whom
left his
on German theology
;
and
mark,
for
one
serious believers are indebted
all
may sympathize He has unmasked
they
barren and unhopeful creed.
shams,
common
he was certainly inferior to Baur, to
important service at least to
and ended as a
certainly a very
indeed he owed a good deal.
whether
his
has no doubt been very
whether his interpretation of his master
inquire
most
and
;
Apart from
very Httle really new in the
he has put nothing better
with
his
a host of
in their place,
and has
the elaborate, however unconscious, subterfuges of
made
such teachers as Semler, Schleiermachcr, and Paulus for ever impossible in the future. faults, the
ally
he meets them with the downright challenge of an
;
able,
an honest, and an open
writers it
In Inm, whatever be his
advocates of revelation need fear no treacherous
was
foe.
whose names are familiar his misfortune to
He
does not, like some
to us, insult the faith
abandon by professing
Christianity,
while he repudiates the teaching and the mission of Christ.
XXXIV. JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS.
The announcement Rev. John
Oratory," could
April 1876 of the death of "the
in
Bernard
Dalgairns,
not
fail,
priest
of
over and above
interest for his
own
who remember
the Oxford of
London
the its
necessary
co-religionists, to recall to others also
some
forty years ago
many
cherished recollections and associations of the past.
Dalgairns took his degree in
the
same
class-list
in
1
839,
when
his
with Professor Jowett, Bishop Eraser
nephew of
of Manchester, Dr. Kay, and Dr. Anderdon, a
Cardinal Manning's,
he was one of the
who has
first
followed their great
since
become a
When
was arrested
chief author
and apologist, there
still
felt,
which
for the
may
The backwater
Dr.Whately had was
but
who
at least three stages
the advance of the Tracta-
rian revival
1.
and
;
leader in 1845 across the Rubicon.
of religious transition.
about 185
Jesuit
batch of Tractarian converts
Oxford has passed since then through
logical stagnation,
Mr.
name appears
time by the set
of
its
of theo-
be said to have lasted
till
of this great movement, which
characteristically christened " its first
loss
in a period
force
was
spent,
and
Newmania," in the turn
of the tide " the Oxford of the Lyj'a Apostolical' as
it
has
been observed with considerable truth, "was slowly giving
3IO
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BICGRAPHY.
way
to the
Oxford whose
spirit
is
best reflected
by the
poems of Clough and Matthew Arnold." Some exception might perhaps be taken to the coupHng of two such incongruous names, though both reverse of Tractarian
With the second
stantially accurate.
there began at Oxford what
movement
against the
may be
tutor,
who has
—gibbeted
— of whom
five
Reviczvs,
bishop,
as
far
in the University.
in
for the ministry of the
in
men
had a leader
Jowett was for the time
;
intended it,
was a
Anglican
of high ability, can hardly be said
in
the sense in which Mr.
had been the leader of that which
ship
little
introducing
still
One
party for the time in the ascendant, though
from deficient
its
but neither he
nor
it
Newman
had superseded.
Mr.
hero, on account of the long
about the endowment
quarrel
Septein
the
the supply of Oxford graduates,
in
and especially of classmen,
to have
emanating
had been or
conspicuous effect of the change, however
The
the sub-
time by an Oxford
either
by those who were instrumental
Church.
is
half of the century
and
were residents and office-bearers
sensible diminution
spirit
considered a reaction
at the
become a
since
contra Christnni
a
of 1833, which culminated in i860
with the publication of Essays
from seven writers
represent
but the statement of fact
;
of the
Dr. Stanley,
Greek professor-
who
then held
the chair of Ecclesiastical History at Oxford, and whose social capabilities fitted to
added much
to his influence,
On
had dropped.
the Broad Church reaction supervened
a revival, not exactly of Tractarianism
become things "
was exactly
wear the mantle while the author of Tract XC.
Ritualism
"
is
of the past at
all
— while
— for the Tracts had
the clumsy sobriquet of
events singularly inappropriate in
JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS. describing
A
academical phase.
its
designated, the force of which Pattison, it,
some years
High Church
name
however, there was, by whatever
may
it
by no means
is
right, that
cendent
gifts of
spent.
Mr.
movement of
not without bitterness, with the original
and learning the domina-
1833, as substituting for intellect
was
revival,
be best
Mind, contrasted
ago, in an article in
tion of an " ecclesiastical ring "
311
and so
;
far,
of course, he
no second leader had inherited the transMr. Newman.
At
present the rival schools
of Catholic tradition and of Rationalism are engaged hand to
hand
in
sharp conflict at Oxford, as
But
England generally.
it
must
in
suffice to
the Church of
have thus
briefly
sketched the successive waves of religious thought which
have passed over the
life
of Oxford, since Mr. Dalgairns
was a member of Exeter College, and one of the most
among
promising
the younger disciples of the Tractarian
movement.
When
the crash
came
in 1841,
and Mr.
Newman bowed
before the storm of academical and ecclesiastical censure,
he did
not, as is well
known, resolve
once on his
at
step, but retired for awhile to Littlemore, with a
chosen friends and followers, several of
some did
not, eventually
accompany him
Conspicuous among these
"
whom
final
band of
did, while
in his secession.
monks," as they were some-
times rather absurdly called, were Mr. Dalgairns and Mr.
Anthony Froude, both series of Lives refers
in
his
of the
of
whom
took part in the Littlemore
English Saints, to which Dean Milman
Latin Christianity as admirable for their
"research and exquisite charm of style," though he complains of their unhistorical character.
very easy at
first
It is certainly
not
sight to recognise the future author of
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
312
AND BIOGRAPHY.
the English History in the biographer of St. Neot, though
Dean Milman's charge
will
applicable to both works.
by many
By
critics
be held equally
general consent, however,
one of the most popular of these biographies was the to
which Dean Milman more especially
Harding, written by Mr. Dalgairns, who had
St. Stephen
already challenged
by
attention
his article
His
the Bi'itish Critic.
Da7ite in
first,
the Life of
refers,
style,
on Ozanam's
as
was natural
under the circumstances, bore evident marks of Mr, Newman's influence, though he could not be said to equal that great master of pure English
had too much copyist.
;
while, on the other hand, he
originality to be merely an even unconscious
Newman
In 1845 Mr.
Oxford and
finally quitted
the Church of England, and of those
who went
with him
the two best known, and best deserving to be known, at the time and since, were Faber and
Faber
Dalgairns.
passed away in 1863, after a long and painful
illness
and
;
the grave has since closed over his intimate friend and associate for
many
ship of the
London Oratory.
men were very
years,
who succeeded him
the head-
in
In some respects the two
unlike each other.
Faber was by nature
a poet and an orator, and his impassioned delivery of
"Roll on, thou deep and dark blue Ocean,
roll,"
in
the
Harrow Speech-room, was remembered long afterwards by
his schoolfellows
;
there
is
nothing to show that Mr.
Dalgairns ever wrote a line of poetry
in his
life.
As
a
preacher he lacked the persuasive eloquence and musical intonation favourite
of
voice
which
anywhere, and
would have made Faber a
which
helped
to
account for
the large gathering of Protestants, as well as of his
congregation, round
the
pulpit
of the
own
London Oratory,
JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS. whenever he was announced to preach thought while
sermons were
his
and
philosophical
in
hardly
313
but in power of
;
inferior
historical
to
Faber's,
knowledge
he
surpassed him.
There life
little
is
of interest to record in
He
after his conversion.
spent
studying theology, and was ordained return to
England he again joined
Mr. Dalgairns's
some years abroad
his old master,
then founding the Oratory at Birmingham
subsequently allied with Faber
remained a member to the
in
last,
him
who was
and he was
;
London, of which he
though
before his death failing health, induced the brain, had unfitted
in
his
establishment of a
in the
branch of the same institution
On
France.
in
some years
for
by overwork of
for active work.
To
the outer
world he was chiefly known as an able and acute, though not
Besides occasional contributions on
author.
prolific,
philosophical questions to the Contemporary Reviczv, the
Academy, and other
periodicals, he published
two works
displaying considerable historical as well as theological
and an interesting Essay on "Tauler and the
research,
German
Mystics," which originally appeared in the Dublin
His
Reviciv.
Heart, has
admiration
all
earliest
the
Roman
charm of
in the
Life of
Catholic work, on the Sacrea
style
which won Dean Milman's
Harding ; but the
St. Stephen
Introduction, on the history of Jansenism, able and interest-
ing as
it
certainly
is,
shows rather the
advocate than the judgment of a it it,
skill
of a brilliant
critical historian,
though
does not deserve the very severe censure pronounced on in
by the
the preface to
his
late Dr. Neale,
the Jansenists puts
him
Jansenist
CJuiixh of
whose strong
bias in
Holland, favour of
also out of court as an impartial
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
314
Both writers require the correction of some
witness.
independent authority, such History of the
as
Mr.
The
CJmrcJi of France.
really
admirable
Jervis's
subject of Mr.
Dalgairns's principal work, on the Holy Comiminion, offers
scope for religious partisanship, and
less
it
much
contains
of interest to students both of theology and ecclesiastical
whether they happen to agree with
history,
conclusions or not. life is
to
to
have
His
intellectual tastes
lain chiefly in a
all
the writer's
seem through
metaphysical direction, and
be regretted that he had not
fuller leisure
it
and oppor-
tunity for utilising his familiarity with the general course
of modern thought in this subject-matter, and especially his
knowledge
of the great
acquirements are not too
and are
essential
for
German
common
Such
metaphysicians.
even
in the present day,
many
the discussion of
questions
which, from different points of view, have a pressing claim
on the attention alike of the philosopher and the Christian
Among
Roman
Cathohcs, Mr.
Dal-
gairns, at the time, stood almost alone in these, his
most
apologist.
English
To
characteristic aptitudes.
to Mr, Renouf,
same kind
whose
It is certainly a
writers in this country
during the
not exactly of the
little
last
is still
leisure
for prosecuting
noteworthy circumstance
the exception of Cardinal Wiseman,
which
no disparagement
is
and unfortunately the absorbing duties of a
;
School Inspector leave him them.
say this
specialities are
who have
all
the
attained
half-century have been
more curious
that, with
Roman any
converts
Catholic celebrity ;
and
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; this remark applies as much to
theological as to general literature.
The
fact suggests
one
or two concluding reflections which can only be indicated here.
JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS. It
315
has been observed that converts always bring to their
adopted
much more than they
faith
gain from
The
it.
statement can at best only be received with considerable
There are converts and converts, as
qualifications.
there
are
very
great
system and another. verbial,
it is
If " the zeal of a
sition to the cause
" is
to
pro-
be a very questionable acqui-
he has undertaken to support.
some systems communions
On
the
are so thoroughly rotten that no
infusion of fresh blood can be of
while rival
renegade
also
religious
often so entirely disproportionate to either his
knowledge or discretion as
other hand,
between one
differences
much
service to them,
are not likely to gain
much from The
the accession of any neophytes trained under them.
want of a good
Eastern Church, for instance,
is
deal of internal reform, but
could not expect
for that
it
probably
in
much help
purpose from a contingent of Turkish proselytes.
In the particular case before
among whom Mr. Dalgairns
us,
the Tractarian converts,
held a prominent place, did
unquestionably bring to their adopted Church an accession of moral and intellectual power out of
all
mere increase of numerical strength.
Fresh from the best
culture
Oxford had
taken the
fullest
to bestow,
advantage of
proportion to the
and having many of them
it,
their enthusiasm,
vehement and one-sided, was backed by a
ment of learning and It
is
ability
however
solid reinforce-
which could not
fail
to
tell.
actually the case that about forty years ago the English
Roman
Catholics had no single publisher of any standing.
As it happened, two publishers of established among the earliest converts, and in every form literature,
from the slender novelette
which ladies
"
repute were of religious
with a purpose,"
delisfht to write as well as read, to the
grave
3i6
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
theological treatise, convert authors supplied the wares for
And
their customers.
preachers
very soon too, again with the solitary
Cardinal Wiseman,
exception of
came
to
leading
the
Catholic
be exclusively converts, and Protestants
who would never before have dreamed of entering a "Romish" place of worship â&#x20AC;&#x201D; unless it were to hear what Pugin used to
numbers
call
side to the picture, fresh
"
the shilling opera
There
to listen to them.
which
is
is
"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; came
by every
naturally suggested
announcement of the removal of a leading author
body from the
or preacher of the convert
immediate gain to the cause of Catholicism been manifest enough
;
but
now
in
of any great importance, as counted.
over
will it,
It
for several years past
recruits are to
its
ranks
be weighed as well
becomes therefore a question of some
interest
be the net result of the change which has passed
when the
died out.
if
The
scene.
England has
there have been comparatively few accessions to
what
large
in
of course another
original generation of converts shall
have
Within a week of the death of Dalgairns, news
arrived from
Rome
of the departure of another of the early
Tractarian contingent, Mr. Simpson, author of the Life of
Campion^ whose literary powers were of no mean order, while his sincere devotion to the faith
he had embraced was not
darkened by the slightest shade of theological
and
his
endeared him to
all
who knew
will
fill
Of both men indeed
him.
may be said that they had, as many friends, and never made a
it
who
bitterness,
genial kindliness of disposition and social gifts
they deserved to have, personal enemy.
their place in the future
indeed remains, and he
is
t
Cardinal
a host in himself.
But
Newman
But to no
JOHN BERNARD DALGAIRNS. cause and no communion the same century.
such a
is
gift
To many, who
may
significance
:
perhaps
Dim
"
Truth's Creed
?
!
listen lips,
now recur shall we need
even
Future
vouchsafed twice
still
reverence for every utterance from his
question
317
in
with eager
his
with
own a
old
fresh
a prophet for
XXXV. BISHOP DUPANLOUP.
The
M. Veuillot of the Univcrs composed
late
characteristic
described
epitaph on Bishop
as a
questionable
questionable theologian
he
and an equally
emphatically denied
politician,
model Bishop," and
a highly
whom
Dupanloup,
finally dismissed, in
be
to
" a
terms far more
applicable to himself, as im de ccs passants reinarquablcs
The
qui iiarrivent pas.
description
was
characteristic,
because neither good taste nor discretion ever restrains
Ultramontane organs of that type from throwing plenty of
are
some will stick, at the greatest own Church, whether living or dead, who suspected as such men are sure to be suspected
dirt, in
men
the hope that
of their
—
of any taint of Liberalism. the
memory
The
gross insults heaped on
of Montalembert will not easily be forgotten.
Archbishop Darboy's heroic, not to say martyr, death
name from something more than
did not shield his great
studied
obloquy and
greater
man among
during
life
beyond Curse
"
all
in
Christian,
ourselves,
by the same
who have shown remember
neglect.
little
"
Lacordaire,
like
a yet
was distrusted and snubbed
insolent
and aggressive
disposition
since
his
his splendid services to Catholicism.
faction,"
death
to
Horrible
expression— a kind of ghastly parody of
"
the
Southey's Kehania, translated into a jargon of or
rather
unchristian,
Billingsgate
— was
the
BISHOP DUPANLOUP. by M. Veuillot
elaborate imprecation hurled
fnm
de
Rome
at Passaglia, far
logian of his day,
and of a learned
319
the greatest
and the compiler of the Bull treatise in defence of
Inejfabilis,
when he dared
it,
Dupanloup
pronounce against the temporal power.
to
Par-
in his
Jesuit theo-
could expect no better treatment at such hands.
was not
man
in all respects a
already named, he was
of the
failure"
a sense which
is
If he
calibre as those
eminent alike as a preacher, a
speaker, a writer, a politician,
"he was a
same
and a
prelate.
To
say that
true of course in a sense, but only in
applies with at least equal force
to
the
He
leaders of the party that his critics delight to honour. failed
no doubt to realise his ideal of Church and State, and
was
inevitable, in the existing condition of the world, that
it
he should
fail.
It is still less
conceivable that Ultramontanes
of M. Veuillot's school should succeed in making their
programme
But
a reality.
own
in the ordinary sense of the
word, and as regards his own personal influence, Dupanloup
was anything but a a Cardinal, though
failure. it is
He
certainly did not
become
very likely, had he lived a year or
two longer, that he might under the present pontificate have attained to that dignity
served of a
still
;
but he was not, as was once ob-
more eminent personage, who
Sacred College,
"
the stuff Cardinals are
now
in
made
of,"
under
Even
then,
the sort of regime which then prevailed. ever, his opinion
for
something
at
is
the
how-
on French
ecclesiastical matters
counted
Rome,
as he
was loved
because
little
there,
he was well known to be the most active and influential
member of the national
episcopate.
By the
present Pope he
appears to have been unreservedly trusted and consulted,
and His Holiness was reported, no doubt
correctly, to be
320
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
deeply a
No French
afflicted at his death.
Cardinal for
many
long year has wielded half the influence of the late
Bishop of Orleans over his countrymen. But the reasons
why
the Univers refused to recognise that fact are not far to seek. It
was the
Dupanloup through
lot of
by Ultramontanes
as a
to
life
be assailed
and by Liberals
Liberal,
as an
Ultramontane, and both classes of assailants had some-
Not
thing to say for themselves. ever, at least
He
from being always consistent. sympathies
and
strong
Catholic
Liberalism always succumbed the two came into
Bishop cases,
ago,
that
the Bishop was
consciously, insincere, though
to
sympathies,
for a
mean anything short of Ultramontanism.
when Gallicanism was not only the
still
A
eloquence
He
French
extreme century
a power^ he would have
but
the
personality of
Bossuet, though of course the two are not for a to be compared.
his
There was much about him to
been a leading Galilean. recall
but
IX., could hardly, in
in the reign of Pius
far
Catholicism when
his
and Catholicism,
conflict,
he was
had strong Liberal
had
moment
inherited, to a great extent, the
dignified presence as well as the doctrinal traditions of the
old Galilean episcopate. less
than a
course to
prelatist,
Rome,
He was
heart a monarchist no
as the centre of unity, but independent in
was the object of
its
local self-government,
if
not of his practical aims.
nacity,
in
and a national Church, subordinate of
his aspirations,
In his sternness, his pug-
and something of personal hauteur
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; which preâ&#x20AC;&#x201D; he
vented his becoming popular
among
his clergy
produced characteristic
of the
famous Bishop of
Meaux.
He had
in
traits
him, however, as
is
clear from
re-
M.
Renan's Souvenirs, a vein of chivalry and tenderness which
BISHOP DUPANLOUP.
321
But above
evoked the passionate devotion of youth.
all
things he was to the backbone a Frenchman, and a French ecclesiastic
and that may account
;
ing inconsistencies.
a statesman, could say, as he reference to the
Roman
mais je suis papiste,"
who was very
it
for
many
of his seem-
M. Thiers, who was a layman and
If
is
reported to have said, in
question, "je ne suis pas Chretien,
not wonderful that Dupanloup,
is
emphatically a Christian and a Catholic, as
Frenchman, should have been "a Papist," as
well as a
some other
regards the temporal power and
The whole
points too.
course of French history since the Revolution
of '89 has tended to alienate the Church from the Govern-
ment, and thereby inevitably to throw
Rome.
Yet
trust his " a
in
own
Papist
"
;
feelings
and convictions, Dupanloup was not
That
Before going to
not the whole truth. the
Bishop
published
to
that " his submission to
the Vatican Council was tardy."
Council,
arms of
into the
and hence the Ultramontane antipathy
The Univers complained
him.
it
theological matters, so far as he dared to
a
is
but
true,
Rome
Pastoral
it
for
is
the
professedly
discussing the " opportuneness " of the proposed
dogma,
but most of the arguments urged against the expediency of defining
it
turned really on the evidence for
as his
it,
opponents were not slow to discover and indignantly to
And
proclaim.
during the sitting of the Council the most
vigorous Opposition pamphlets emanated from his pen.
That was a
fatal offence,
which no
"
tardy submission," no
zeal for the Church, or even for the temporal power, could
condone
what
is,
fault/'
in
Ultramontane
eyes.
And
moreover
it
or used in our schoolboy days to be called,
was not "
a
first
which might exempt the culprit from a flogging.
Y
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
322
Bishop DupanloLip had not been a good boy,
montane
had shown teristic
—what — his
years ago
strong common Abbe Gaume and
of
possession
pleased the
it
he
invariable charac-
Frenchmen, especially of French
even of gifted
ecclesiastics
Some
by no means an
is
the Ultra-
in
In one notable instance
sense, before that.
sense.
certain
other obscurantist wiseacres of his school in France to get
up a crusade against the use of the Greek and Latin, or they preferred to phrase education of youth. tradition of the
"
Pagan," classics
in
as
the
Dupanloup, backed by the immemorial
Church both
own
relying on his
the
it
in
France and elsewhere, and
educational experience, threw the whole
weight of his not inconsiderable influence into the opposite
The scheme
scale.
of teaching
the
Greek and Latin
languages from the writings of the Christian Fathers was certainly an original one, but
the time
by the Ultramontane
it
was warmly espoused
zealots,
the absurdity of drawing up a
modelled on
this
The scheme was
it
for classical learning
equalled by his ignorance of
it
;
books
eventually collapsed.
course ardently supported
of
at
perpetrated
of school
series
programme, but
whose contemipt
Veuillot,
who even
by M.
was only
and the Bishop of Orleans,
who had
not unjustly taunted him with making calumny
the chief
weapon of
religious journalism,
forgiven for his powerful opposition to
had forbidden
But is
if
for
"
Dupanloup defended fool,
the Pagan classics,"
atheism or unbelief.
remembered
Moreover, he
his clergy to read the Univers.
not a fanatic or a
of
was not readily
it.
as a priest
— as any educated
would be sure to defend it
man, who
— the study
was assuredly from no tenderness
One
of the
had been
first
acts for
to receive the
which he
is
dying abjur-
BISHOP DUPANLOUP.
323
and confession of Talleyrand, and among
ation
his earliest
achievements was a lecture against Voltaire, delivered before the students of the Sorbonne
owing
sorship,
literary efforts
—which it
cost
produced
his profes-
were directed against the recent Voltaire cen-
was
tious writer,
him
— while his latest
His detestation of Voltaire, as an
tenary.
to the
to the tumult
intensified
Maid of Orleans
infidel
and
licen-
by a kind of chivalrous devotion
— the heroine of his episcopal city
whose canonization he exerted himself
to procure,
and he
the gross outrage perpetrated on her
could not pardon
memory by the foul-mouthed author of La Pucelle. His inmany years to keep M. Littre out of the Forty of the French Academy, and when the Positivist
fluence availed for
whose deathbed conversion was not then foreseen last effected
an entrance
dust from his
feet,
and himself
retired
from the mystic
whose sanctity had been profaned, though of his
chair
was not accepted by
— had at
he shook off the
in spite of him,
his
circle
his resignation
colleagues.
But
within the limits of orthodoxy his sympathies were gener-
ous and comprehensive, and leaned always to the liberal
He
side.
used every
alembert, to
whom
effort,
through the medium of Mont-
he was warmly attached, to induce Dr.
Bollinger to attend the Vatican Council — to which, however,
he had not been invited
—
in order to join in
" the base acts " he thought only too likely to be
there
;
Dr.
Newman
Council, as his that, while the
"
opposing
attempted
he invited and urged to attend the
theologian."
It
was natural enough then
Univers refused him the praise of a model
bishop, the Debats, premising that he had always been
its
"
the
political
opponent, should offer a high tribute to
generosity, frankness,
and true nobility of
his nature," Y 2
and
324
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. him
declare
to be "
one of the
glories, or rather the glory,
of the French episcopate, whose place will not easily be
This
supplied,"
is
and not the
perfectly true,
less true
because his influence, like that of Bishop Wilberforce in
England, was of a kind to be to be perpetuated.
He was
felt at
the time rather than
a copious as well as a brilliant
but more of a pamphleteer than an author
writer,
in this
;
respect a thorough Frenchman, though not, like Renan,
whom
he sharply attacked, a master of French
wrote
endless
social,
educational,
pamphlets
make
calculated to
and
on
theological,
questions
political
He
style.
ecclesiastical,
of the day,
a telling impression for the
moment,
but had not leisure or patience for the composition of what the
Germans
call civige
He
from Bossuet.
Werke, and here he differed widely
cannot
in
fact
be said to have
any permanent contribution to theology or it
must be regarded
works
will live,
gotten.
of
though
and
more than questionable whether his
name
is
his
not likely to be for-
His career was a long and honourable one, and he
carried with
men
as
made
literature,
all
him
to the grave the respect of his country-
shades of opinion, with one conspicuous and not
very creditable exception.
Yet he can hardly be
fc/ix opportmiitate mortis, for while he outlived
months the
pontiff who, devout
called
by a
fcAv
and single-minded as he
was, could not appreciate and would never have rewarded his distinguished services to the
Church, his death followed
too closely on that of Pius IX. to give of profiting
Holy See
by
in
him the opportunity
the tardy but sincere appreciation of the
the person of his successor.
He
has
left
behind him no prelate of equal or nearly equal mark on the roll
of the French episcopate.
XXXVI.
CANON OAKELEY.
On
January
another of the oldest and most
29, 1880,
distinguished of the early Tractarian converts passed away.
Frederick Oakeley, formerly Balliol,
Catholic Church,
Duncan
Canon of Westminster, died leaving behind
Church of ill
will
as Fellow
and Tutor of
Missionary Rector of
for the last thirty years
Roman
known
and afterwards as Minister of Margaret Chapel, but
in
his seventy-eighth
him many kindly memories, both and of
his birth
anywhere.
Mr.
John's
St.
Terrace, Islington, and
his adoption,
year,
in
the
and probably no
Oakeley was a man of powers
decidedly above the average, and, had he been of a less retiring disposition
and
decided than they
w^ere,
rise to
his conscientious convictions
he might
fairly
less
have expected to
high distinction in the Church of England.
The
youngest son of Sir Charles Oakeley, formerly Governor of
Madras, he was born
in
1802,
and began,
like
Mozart, at
four years old to give evidence of his musical taste lasted through
life
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;being able at
duce on the pianoforte simple fancy
;
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;which
that early age to repro-
airs
which had taken
his
and at the age of eight the organist of Lichfield
Cathedral
(his
family were then
living in
the episcopal
him play the chants on week days.
Palace there) used to
let
When
he was sent as a private pupil to Mr.
he was
fifteen
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
326
Charles Sumner,
Bishop of
afterwards
Winchester,
whom,
in spite of all differences of opinion,
warm
affection
through
life
and a long
;
for
he retained a letter
of his
appears at the close of the Bishop's Life by his son, where it
is
amusing to
in his
him recounting how on one
find
undergraduate days, the Bishop, with
breakfasting, rebuked
him
he was
gently, but very justly, for his
Roman
sweeping abuse of
occasion,
whom
Catholics,
of
whom
he was
obliged to admit that he had no personal knowledge whatever.
He
went up
to Christ
Church
in 1821,
a second class three years later; in
Chancellor's prize for a Latin Essay "
Tribunes
among
English Essay
and obtained
1825 he gained the
On
the
Power of the
the Romans," and in 1827 the prize for an
"
On
the Influence of the Crusades on the
Art and Literature of Europe," and also the Ellerton Theological Prize.
In 1827 he was also elected Fellow and
three years afterwards appointed Tutor of Balliol, where he
had among
his colleagues
Mr. Tait, afterwards primate,
and the present Bishop of Salisbury. His friendly
we
relations
name Memoir of Catherine and Crawfurd Tait among those who were foremost to testify their sympathy with the with Dr. Tait were never interrupted, and in
find his
the
Archbishop of Public
in his
heavy bereavement.
He
Examiner and Select Preacher
was appointed
in
held the offices at Oxford,
and
1837 by Bishop Blomfield one of the
Preachers at Whitehall.
It
was
in
of Sermons preached there that he
the preface to a volume first
indicated his
sym-
pathy with the Tractarian movement, having previously been, like
nearly
Low Churchman. his
all
the
In 1839
new views, when he
left
leading Tractarians, a decided ^^^
gave practical testimony to
Oxford to take the incumbency
CANON OAKELEY.
327
of the Proprietary Chapel in Margaret Street, of which
Henry Drummond was
lessee,
the Church of
Rome some
had before belonged theological career
and which had been previ-
Dods worth
ously held by the late Mr.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;who himself joined
years after Mr. Oakeley
to the Unitarians.
may be
It is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
here that his
said to have begun.
Mr. Gladstone spoke of Mr. Oakeley some ten years ago, in
an
one "who much finer and much rarer and expressing the harmony between the
the Contemporary Revieiv, as
article in
united to a fine musical ear a gift in
discerning
inward purposes of Christian work and ture,
and who had
gathered
its
outward
round him
[at
investi-
Margaret
Chapel] a congregation the most devout and hearty that for one,
world."
have ever seen
In that congregation Mr. Gladstone himself and
the late Mr.
many
I,
any community of the Christian
in
others
Hope Scott were constant worshippers, while who had little sympathy with Tractarian
views, such as
Bishop Thirlwall, were attracted by Mr.
Oakeley's thoughtful and weighty sermons, which dealt
mainly with the ethical aspects of religious
was the specialty of Margaret Chapel the pioneer of what
is
now
in
truth.
But
it
those days to be
called " Ritualism " in
the
Established Church, though scarcely any of the distinctive details associated with the
term w^ere to be found there
or would then have been tolerated.
Mr. Oakeley's fond-
new
ness for ritual, which he carried with
him
communion, probably received
impulse from his
its
first
into his
boyish delight in the services of Lichfield Cathedral, where, as
we have already
week
days.
seen,
he used to play the organ on
But choral services and surpliced choristers
were then considered a startling innovation anywhere out
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
32S
of a cathedral, and the " eastward position
looked candles
;
must have
of vestments, or even of lighted
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; except, as he afterwards explained, on fog-gy â&#x20AC;&#x201D; there was no thought while the plain wooden "
mornings
"
;
altar cross find
more unusual
still
"
was considered quite alarming.
a letter in Bishop
It is curious to
(then Archdeacon)
Wilberforce's
Life expressing his disgust after going to Margaret Street at the
oddness and Romanizing character of Avhat would
now be thought very moderate ceremonial, hardly above the average of many " Evangelical " churches, and his conBut
sequent determination never to go there again. not too
much
it
is
to say that to Mr. Oakeley's ministry at
Margaret Chapel, more than to any other single instrumentality, ritual
due that marked restoration of musical and
is
solemnity Avhich has triumphed over the parson-and-
clerk duet constituting the almost solitary ideal of Anglican
Avorship in the days of our grandfathers, though
it
almost faded into a dim tradition of the past.
It
difficult for
in
now may be
has
those of a later generation to understand how,
1844 (which
falls
within the period of Mr. Oakeley's
incumbency), the Times was fiercely asserting "the repug-
nance of the novelties,"
laity to the introduction of these
which involved
"
about principles," and their indignant demand to worship as their fathers worshipped,
same
ritual
who
in
and
''
to be allowed
to observe the
they had been accustomed to from infancy
and how mobs hours
obnoxious
a contest not about words but
of thousands of persons would wait
" ;
for
pouring rain to hoot and yell at the clergyman
introduced these
"
obnoxious novelties," the whole
dispute being about the wearing of a surplice in the pulpit. It is still
harder perhaps for us to realise
how
a year later
CANON OAKELEY. London
a huge vestry meeting was gathered in
that it
"a parish containing upwards of 43,000
may
be doubted
if
43 had been
deranged service
who
complain
whom
attending
centre at the will
its
mere pleasure disturbed and
at his
beautiful
tJie
to
souls (of
in the habit of
the parish church) was disturbed to
of one individual,
and solemn ceremonial of Church
which had been handed down to us unchanged
more than two
At
329
last the
centuries,"
matter found
i.e.
its
and the Bishop of Exeter
way
to the
(Phillpotts)
House of Lords,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;who
had been
sharply admonished by the Times " as a conscientious to retire from the bench,
and
let
it
"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; ventured
man
the people of England
have the sacred service of the Church as their grandsires had
for
the parson-and-clerk duet.
these obsolete forms and usages were
"
and
sires
to ask Earl Fortescue "
what
which he had de-
nounced, and which, as was asserted, "forced the son to pass the grave of his father, the widower of his wife, the
mother of her
child, to seek in
tomed house of worship that novel practices at their able
?
"
some remote and unaccus-
own church had rendered unaccept-
Lord Fortescue, being thus brought
to reply that " the innovations complained
had caused preaching
all
in
which the
spiritual sustenance
the mischief, were three in
to book,
of,
had
and which
number
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; namely,
the surplice, the sentences in the Offertory,
and the collection these extracts
after service."
may
It is likely
enough that
raise a smile of incredulity
;
but
is
it
necessary to bear the actual state of things in mind in estimating the nature and extent of the ritual reform, as
most Anglicans of every school would now agree first
since
inaugurated at the obscure
grown
into
one of the
little
stateliest
to call
it,
chapel which has
churches of London.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
330
It
was while Mr. Oakeley was
that the disturbance arose at
at
still
Margaret Street
Oxford about
his friend
and
brother fellow Mr. Ward, whose Ideal of a Christian Church led to his being deprived of his
M.A. degree by a decree of
Convocation of very questionable
who had nothing
Mr. Oakeley,
legality.
do with the book, chivalrously placed
to
himself by his friend's side, declaring that he also " claimed the right to hold, though not to teach_,
and
this
avowal led to one of the
tical causes celkbres in
became so
frequent,
all
Roman
doctrine
" ;
earliest of those ecclesias-
the Arches Court which afterwards
and have
at last brought the
whole
machinery of the Anglican Church Courts under the hammer
But the defendant did not care
of a Royal Commission. to await
its
leader Mr.
Within a iew months
termination.
Newman had
his great
decided on leaving the Church of
England, and Mr. Oakeley almost immediately followed him.
After going
Edmund's St.
College,
through a theological course at
Ware, and serving
made
years afterwards
retained both offices
till
Duncan
Terrace, and was two
a Canon of Westminster, and he his death.
At
Islington, as before
Margaret Street, Mr. Oakeley paid great attention to
musical and ceremonial arrangements, and he to
St.
time at
George's Cathedral, Southwark, he was in 1850 appointed
to the charge of St. John's,
at
for a short
have effected no inconsiderable reform
in his
new
as well as in his old
then
"
forbidden by the to a well-trained
Roman
in
England
ritual
choir of
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;he
men and
said
Discarding
of female pro-
almost universally in vogue
Catholic places of worship
may be
these respects
communion.
the services of the " shrieking sisterhood fessionals,
in
in
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; though
Roman
expressly
entrusted the singing boys, and had soon
CANON OAKELEY,
331
established for his church the reputation of one of the best
musical services in London.
But
it
would be a great mis-
take to imagine that, either there or at Margaret Street, his attention
was absorbed by
Both
Anglican and
in
his
externals,
however important.
ministry he always
later
his
showed himself an indefatigable parish
and
priest,
his
church was thronged by a multitude of devout worshippers. It
may
perhaps be regretted that the career of active use-
fulness which
since he gave for literary
he had deliberately marked out
up residence
work.
tional treatises,
he has
left
at
Oxford
Some volumes
left
and several pamphlets and review
behind him, which go
One
show
far to
made
of the most popular of the
Series of Lives of the English Saints
evidently,
articles,
a
name
his pen,
His style was
though perhaps unconsciously, modelled on Car-
Newman's, and has much of the grace, though
It
taint of bitterness.
harmony with mind
free,
as he
was
himself,
it
Eng-
should be added that his controversial writings,
such they can be called, are
any
in
Littlemore
lacks the concentrated force, of that great master of lish.
time
that under
was from
the Life of St. Augustine of Canterbury.
dinal
little
of sermons and devo-
circumstances he might have
different literature.
for himself
him so
if
from
Nothing could be more out of
his refined taste
and with
than, e.g., to designate the
once a minister, as another
his
whole tone of
Church of which he was
clerical convert did
ago, " a monarch's cast-off mistress,
now
in her
not long
dishonour-
able age vainly striving to cover her nakedness with the gifts
which purchased her seduction
gible sarcasm, as the
"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; rather an
unintelli-
Church was not enriched but greatly
impoverished at the Reformation
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; or to
describe English
332
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
He
Protestantism generally as an "offensive centipede."
kept up through
life,
was observed
as
before,
habits of
and
six years
friendly intercourse w^ith his old associates,
before his death he might have been seen at the Union
by the side of Mr. Matthew
Jubilee dinner at Oxford, sitting
Arnold, who was an undergraduate at Balliol when he was
One can hardly
a Fellow there.
help wondering, as the
Oxford converts of that generation are passing away one
by one
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;there are few of the more eminent now besides that â&#x20AC;&#x201D; how their departure may left
the two Cardinals
affect
far
better understanding between
Newman
munions on which Cardinal ago.
members of the discoursed
rival
There can be no doubt that the influence of
cedents and personal character has done
many ways
many
had shared to the
himself,
hatred of the Pope and
biographer
tells
their ante-
indirectly in
what once seemed an impassable
to bridge over
chasm, the more so as
much
com-
some years
of them, like Mr. Oakeley
full in
all
his
their earlier
days that
works which Dr. Hook's
us he used once to consider the essential
duty and characteristic of an Englishman.
And
Cardinal
Manning has thus been enabled,
in his
do much
social status of the Archi-
to raise the dignity
and
episcopal See of Westmhister, as well as influence. into,
but
It is
present position, to
its
directly spiritual
would be another point well worth inquiring
far too
wide a question to discuss here, what
kind and amount of permanent impression the Tractarian converts have is
made on
their
adopted communion.
certainly a conspicuous difference,
There
which can hardly
fail
to strike outsiders, between the general tone not only of
Roman
Catholic society in England, but of
worship and preaching, as forty years ago.
it
is
now and
as
Roman
Catholic
was
thirty or
it
XXXVII. DR.
The a
GUMMING.
news of Dr. Cumming's death would have created
much
greater sensation, than
it
had
did,
it
occurred a
dozen years earHer, when the Prophet of Crown Court was in
still
all
his glory, or
when
at all events the perennial
stream of unfulfilled prophecy had not yet run dry.
two or three years before public view, and for
his
some time previously the
been retiring from his pulpit.
reminded of
his old reputation
For
death he had retired from public had
Those who were suddenly
by
learning, in July 1881,
that he had passed away, were probably surprised to find that he was only seventy-two years old.
Dr.
Cumming began
to preach, which
The
fact is that
meant with him
to
prophesy, at a very early age, and occupied his familiar tripod in
Crown Court
for nearly half
a century.
That he
should have managed during most of that period to retain his hold over a numerically not inconsiderable section of
the religious world
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; including at
other such notabilities
but
one time Duchesses and
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; may seem
startling at first sight,
may be said without disrespect to that eminent poet Dr. Cumming was the Martin Tupper of theology.
it
that
And
if
it
be true that Martin Tupper has his tens of
thousands of readers, especially of the
fair
sex,
where
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
334
AND BIOGRAPHY.
Tennyson has
his thousands, we need not marvel that who turned away from Newma or Westcott or even from Dean Stanley, as from a sealed book, should
multitudes
have eagerly imbibed the
announced
Avhich
of the Seventh
fiery contents
and listened with awful suspense
Vial,
— though
to the
announced
it
trumpet tone
in
vain
imminent approach of the Battle of Armageddon.
was indeed one
little
drawback,
for the
— the There
predictions confi-
dently repeated year by year, and usually about twice a
somehow never came
year,
to be again
true,
and the
had
of the
" uncertain sound,"
Last Trumpet was found to give a very
and the Last Warning Cry was
fateful dates
The Sounding
and again reconstructed.
uttered, not indeed exactly
to heedless ears, but to ears too
likely
to
be rendered
heedless for the future by disappointment of the expected result.
But these
moment
the self-complacency or the self-confidence of the
He
prophet himself. tion ready, as to at
little
why
incongruities never
been
fulfilled,
always had some excellent explana-
all
way
anticipated, or
of showing that in fact
it
really
had
though nobody but he who had dreamed the
dream had the
We
a
the prediction had not been fulfilled
the precise time or in the precise
some ingenious way
ruffled for
gift
know how
of discerning the interpretation thereof. the Times, though
it
often changes,
is
always consistent, and never lacks an opportune quotation to prove that
has been always
it
though he traced
equally consistent, and always
what
is
fools,"
Nor
is
"
knew he was
more, he always got a great perhaps,
in
Dr.
right.
Gumming,
his inspirations to a higher source,
the
many
Carlylese sense
this altogether inexplicable.
right."
people
—to
In the
—
"
was
And, mostly
believe him.
first
place,
it is
DR. only
fair to
335
admit that he had the courage of
His
nations.
GUMMING.
was almost as queer
as his literary taste
no doubt that he really believed
The Pope was
to
him
and detestation as
more formidable
to
one,
but there can be
;
the main what he said.
in
as real an object of mingled terror
Bunyan's
and
" Pilgrim,"
his final
The Doctor gave indeed
in his latter
a constant
to the Apocalypse.
days a strong proof
of the sincerity of his sentiments on this point,
made
much
only a
doom was
theme of Divine prediction from Genesis
that he
his halluci-
appear presently,
literary conscience, as will
if it
be true
a pilgrimage to Exeter with his family on
the Fifth of November, and took lodgings in the Cathedral
Yard,
"
Young Exeter " year by year
Protestant zeal
of
huge bonfire whereby
order to witness the
in
pleases
official
— or
presumably
warnings, cordons
rowdyism
its
of
"
testify
—
it
its
in defiance
and the
police,
reclamations of the inhabitants of that city," especially
to
angry
ancient and loyal
those living in the precincts,
who
are
in
dread as each November comes round of their Cathedral
and themselves being involved
in
a
common
conflagration.
Then again Dr. Cumming was not only manifestly in his
sincere
strange vagaries, but he had a pleasing presence, an
unfailing supply of the kind of eloquence which the British Philistine
can appreciate, and a geniality of temper
— not
perhaps quite in harmony with his awful denunciations
which made him personally popular.
And
if
each new
composition that appeared, under vvhatever variety of
—Babylon, A nnageddon, The Last Woe, tion,
&c.
—was
little else
than a new setting of the
that one might almost literally say fresh events were
title
The Great Tribula-
Ex uno
last,
disce onincs,
so
still
constantly happening which could be
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
336
somehow
or other dovetailed into the general plan, and
fresh articles
and books were being published, which could
be quoted at any indefinite lengthy whether for approval or censure, though neither events nor extracts were always
much
very
what
To
to the purpose.
unintelligible
use a favourite but some-
got rem
quotation of his own, he
quoniodo rem.
Dr.
and
Gumming
will live, if
may
ill-natured critics
he
lives at all,
by
his works,
possibly suggest that he has
monument (Ere perennhis, Nobody can wish to be unkind
more senses
built himself a
in
than one.
to his
but last
it
simply impossible to accept him
is
he claimed to
be, a great teacher
for
memory,
what
to the
and prophet of the
wrong
highest truth.
Whether
in the abstract,
need not be discussed here, but his ignor-
his theology
was
ance was as unbounded as his confidence fact
is
that he had a habit
all his life,
right or
;
and the plain
which grew into a
second nature, of talking nonsense without knowing brief
glance
at
two or three of
his
later
it.
works
A will
sufficiently illustrate the point of this criticism.
In 1867 the Ritualistic movement, as called,
to Dr.
was beginning
Gumming
it
to attract attention,
new
that a
has come to be
and
it
occurred
variation of the old Babylonish
He
melody would be appropriate.
accordingly seized his
opportunity, and at once preached and published twelve lectures to
under the fascinating
Rome.
The date given
had already been fixed
was then
title,
Ritualism the Highzvay
for the destruction of the
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; not indeed
definitively settled for
for the first
1868.
What
time
world
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
occurred in
the short interval might therefore have been supposed to
be not very important.
But
in
the preface to this
new
DR. CUMMIxNG. "
work the author professed himself
337
deeply persuaded that
never was our country in greater peril in
A
holiest interests."
—which
must have borrowed
Cumming's prophetic tone time was coming
sung his
Roman
leading
"
highest and
its
Catholic newspaper
once something of Dr.
for
— had avowed
when High Mass
its
belief that the
will
once more be
Westminster Abbey," and the prediction bore to
in
mind an almost Apocalyptic
On
significance.
the
other hand, a serial called the Protestant CJntrchman had " tabular statistics " the fearful
shown by
priests, chapels, convents,
and
growth of Romish year
colleges, since the fatal
1829; and this increase was mainly due, he thought, to Ritualism or
ming had
its
Tractarian parent.
especially Irish
— are
poor
learn, that
Roman
already
the context implied, what
it
Catholics,"
" Ritualist ceremonial "
— was
somehow
had made them such.
even
" to
and
to have
Mary
"
priests to officiate
be paid out of the
an
—a
Ritualist
responsible for the mischievous
which allowed Romish
and
might surprise themselves to
Then, again, the Directorium Anglicaniun
work
Gum-
Moreover, Dr.
just discovered that "vast masses of the poor
in
gaols,
Act and
rates,
according to their work,"
altar, sacrificial
vestments, and " a Virgin
supplied in aid of their ministrations.
And
there
were actually men eating the bread of our Protestant
—
Establishment, who dared to call themselves what their own Prayer Book calls them "priests," and took every
—
means, by the use of candles and rich dresses,
whether at the
ball,
which,
or the opera, or a Ritualistic church,
are no doubt very attractive," to inculcate
Here was a
"
sufficiently
Romish dogmas.
alarming basis of fact to go upon,
and an elaborate argument follows
— borrowed
wholesale,
338
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
by the way, from Tillotson
— against
the Real Presence,
capped by a somewhat obscure inference from what contained
a
in
passage
long
of
probably saw the Apostle John
have been as a
was neither
—to
And
"
—
he ever
if
did,
it
nut
who
must
the effect that in his day there
liturgy, priesthood,
Church.
tian
baby
is
Martyr, "
Justin
there
nor sacrifice
another
is
still
in the Chris-
more obscure
argumentation against the Ritualistic and Popish figment of the apostolic succession.
But the learned Doctor also
adds more suo some touching
little
e.
g.
how he once met
La
ture,
" in
He
anecdotes.
tells
us
that exquisite Corinthian struc-
Madeleine," a venerable French priest,
who was
already " a real Christian," and had thoughts of coming to
London
to attend the
May
Meetings.
On
another occa-
however, at Bruges his landlord assured him that
sion,
"his
life
would not be
safe," if
he attempted to preach
Christ in that priest-ridden city, but he would be listened to with enthusiasm, "
if
he liked to preach the Virgin Mary,
We
even in very bad French."
are
to infer
left
that
under the circumstances he wisely preferred to remain silent.
Three years have been the
later final
—that
is,
two years
catastrophe
after
what should
— came the Vatican Council,
and here of course was another great opportunity
Gumming. assembly
dom
He
had
in person, if the
of speech
and almost
Pope would allow him
when he got
sarcastic
for Dr.
offered, indeed, to attend that venerable
there
;
full free-
but a somewhat curt
message conveyed to " Dr.
Cumming
of Scotland," through Archbishop Manning, intimated that his offer could not be entertained like a
man, and put
;
so he took his repulse
into print those views
on The Fall of
DR. GUMMING.
Her
Babylon Foreshadowed in
339
and
Teaching, in History,
in
Prophecy, which he had once hoped to utter in the Council
One can
Chamber.
who had
hardly help regretting that Pius IX.,
a considerable sense of humour, did not give
him
the opportunity of discharging his " olive branch out of a
catapult
" '
at the heads of the assembled fathers.
In this
work, which covers nearly 500 pages, the date of the Battle
Armageddon
of
time
^^
new.
is
once more rearranged, and placed
about 1870"; but there
is
We
Romish
natural,"
are told that the
not very
too
is
it
some few good Christians three are
of their creed."
named
At
is
man
became a
And
It is "
first
Roman
Cain was,
Popery
coeval in
Adam's
in
first-
and not
in
principle, the
Catholic priest," for he offered "an unbloody
by
the by, did
evil " principle "
appears to
exactly typical of the Mass."
Melchisedech.
have survived final
" in spite
was a Papist before he
unfortunately
"
it is
Rome â&#x20AC;&#x201D; of
are assured that
in his original error,
subsequent conversion.
sacrifice,
in short,
;
time, so far from being a
we
Adam
Fall.
Protestant."
born followed his parent his
for the writer
Church of
nearly as old as the creation of man.
principle with the
it
super-
There have been, how-
in the
same
the
"
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; but then they were good
corruption of Protestantism,
this
m
else
impious to come from
above, and too artful to be the work of " the masterpiece of the Devil."
ever,
religion
which evidently means infra-natural,
immediately adds that
whom
much
And
same
So,
chosen people up to the time of their
in the
rejection, for
the
we
are asked, "
What
land,
from
the
sacred heights of Calvary to the pinnacles of the Alps, has
not been drenched with the blood of martyrs,
been slain by her
"
(Rome)
}
It
who have
was the year of the z
2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
340
Vatican Council, so we have of course a chapter to prove the
Ecumenical Councils, which
of
fallibility
strated
by the
Councils of the Church zvere o7'tJiodox
The
and
demon-
nineteen jLcreticair
are the author's, but he omits to
italics
is
that "in the fourth century nineteen
fact
add that only
two of these thirty-eight Councils were reputed Ecumenical,
both of which he historical
Teresias,"
apparently meaning
"
about
puzzles
There are
orthodox.
classifies as
some odd
the canonization of
Teresa, the
St.
revolting
immoralities of Pope Alexander VI. and of Borgia,
two
are treated as
of
"
Gregory " and
cated
the
in
different persons, "
Nyssen," whose personality
same uncomfortable
and some other very strange need not linger here.
We
of the end of the world 1870," but this
was
to last
is
who
and the proceedings
fashion.
is
bifur-
But on
this
we
historical complications
have seen already that the date fixed in this
is
volume
for "
about
based on a calculation that the world
6000 years, and had then reached the year
6002, which might seem to
show not that " the sands of mundane economy are nearly run out," -but that they had run out two years before. The prophet, however, our present
cautiously adds,
ments,
" I
give
mindful perhaps of former disappointdates.
refuse to decide."
I
book, issued some months "
one solution published
reversal or recasting,"
don may
"
with
later,
in
In another
he denied that there was
previous works that
demands
and thinks the battle of Armaged-
no great
difficulty "
be identified with
Sebastopol.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;in
This second work of 1870, entitled the Seventh Vial the rhythmical
Version
it
and euphonious diction of the
becomes the
"
Seventh Bowl
"
Revised
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; appeared
after
GUMMING.
DR.
341
the prorogation of the Vatican Council,
when
"this unclean
from the Pope had inspired 533 prelates to proclaim an aged priest infallible " and we hear a good deal about spirit
;
" the
false prophet,"
and how " Rome,
lie,"
"
and
the croaking frogs," and
filthy,
and
bigoted,
cruel,
"
the
the
is
nursery of brigands, the nest of priests, and the throne of
beggars
"
much more
with
;
to the
same
One
Rome.
entered
which
is
of the following year,
is
what might
and
by
Emmanuel had
Cumming's
peculiarity of Dr.
signally exemplified in this
This,
effect.
the way, was published just after Victor
his
style,
next volume
a less devout and
in
unworldly kind of literature be designated bookmaking.
The simple
fact
that at least half the
is
volume
is
made up
of extracts from the newspapers and serials of the day, the
Times, the Standard, the Westminster Review tically
described
religious
organ
"
"
as
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;and
making no
the_
taxed for the purpose. Great
Earthquake," we
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; euphemis-
pretension
be
to
a
Saturday Revieiv being heavily
Then
again, a propos of " the
have
nearly
seventy pages of
extracts on the natural history of earthquakes, and several
more about
Waves and
" tidal
roaring
"
;
waves," to illustrate
stars " are illustrated
about "spots
"
the Sea and the
while the " signs in the sun and
in the sun."
by a
moon
further series of extracts
The work on
the Cities of the
Nations, which appeared in the following year, reads very like a sequel to the
Seventh Vial, and
is
also largely
made
up of cuttings from the daily papers and other publications of the day, together with long extracts from " Alison, the historian,"
who was a
great favourite of Dr. Cumming's.
In this work the author w^as able to exult over "the light that had broken on
Rome, and
the substitution of
"an
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
342
enlightened
civil
law
"
for the "
sanguinary canon law
" ;
but he had to mourn over the sceptical teaching of Dr.
Colenso and his
allies
—
for Dr.
the sceptics as well as on the
Gumming
kept an eye on
— and
he urged some
Pope
very odd arguments, partly based on personal experiences
But one cannot help
of his own, in reply to them.
sus-
pecting that this modern and
books
—the
mundane element in his and still more the gossiping
gossiping stories
extracts they are so
full
— constituted one of
of
There are
cipal charms.
religious people
reading newspapers or novels, and
them on Sundays.
To
who
their prin-
object to
especially object
such persons
it
quite a godsend to meet with an indubitably pious "
Sunday book," which was nevertheless choke
in a
If
;
their curiosity
manner not simply innocent, but
on the other hand we inquire
Gumming had world
is
why
hardly far to seek.
grow weary
will
in the
was
gratified
the popularity Dr.
Even the
last,
religious
end of the dull monotony of
perpetual repetitions and predictions constantly falsified the event
;
but there was a further cause
Gumming began
of
positively devotional.
enjoyed so long began to wane at
the explanation
and
full
They not only found
cuttings from the periodical press.
pleasure and piety combined
to
must have been
also.
When
by Dr.
to preach, the latent Protestantism of the
country had been recently lashed into fury by the Gatholic
Emancipation Act of 1829 with
its
Popery
direct "
;
and the Tractarian movement,
and incidental consequences, kept the
passion at fever heat for
many
But times had changed before the
new storms were breaking over
"No
years afterwards.
close of his ministry
;
the theological horizon, and
the old watchwords offered no guidance or protection amid
DR.
GUMMING.
343
dangers a former age had not experienced or foreseen. spite of the inspiration
seas.
A
knew not Joseph, and
Dr.
Prophet had no chart to steer by in these untried generation had grown up which
Gumming found
In
he almost claimed, the Protestant
his occupation
gone from him.
If
we
could hope his career might act as a warning to others against a course of unconscious, but not wholly innocuous,
charlatanism, vain.
But
to suggest to deserve.
it
it is
would be true difficult to
to say that
he did not
live in
point the moral without seeming
an imputation he was too transparently credulous
XXXVIII.
DEAN STANLEY. The
death of the late Dean of Westminster after only a
few days'
illness, at
no very advanced age and
in the full
vigour of his powers, removed with startling abruptness a
There are very few
conspicuous figure from the scene. persons not occupying a
who have
State,
attention,
still
higher position, in Church or
death would
universal a chorus of lamentation,
And
much
attracted of late years so
or whose
even for those
who
find
it
have called
of public forth
so
comment, and eulogy.
impossible to join unre-
servedly in the effusive laudations so copiously showered
on
his
memory, one thing
at least is attested
prominence of the place he had made world's estimation from the
first.
For
by the very
for himself in the it
may
fairly
be
day when Stanley and Vaughan, then Dr. Arnold's two most promising and devoted pupils, were
said that, from the
"
bracketed even," as Bishop Wordsworth,
them, has since reminded ation at
Rugby, he always held
he possessed
in a
who examined Form examinThe fact is, that
the Sixth
us, in
his
own.
remarkable measure what
is
alleged to be,
under the conditions of modern society, becoming less possible, the gift of individuality,
Arnold would
say, "distinction."
or, as
less
and
Mr. Matthew
In his whole character,
DEAN STANLEY. and tone of mind, as
attitude,
sure beforehand subject,
body
and that
One
else.
what it
in his person, there
You
unmistakable idiosyncrasy.
345
he would take on any given
line
would be
like himself
and unlike every-
of his panegyrists has observed that the
Dean "never twaddled,
or declaimed, or repeated himself
Certainly he did not twaddle, nor was declamation
much
his line, for that implies real or simulated passion,
was not a
religious enthusiast,
his never repeating himself,
it
say that he repeated himself
less
still
in
and he
an actor, but as to
would be more accurate to
in
every volume or article he
published, almost in every sermon he preached. this
was an
could generally be pretty
To
say
does not, of course, mean that he repeated himself in
the way, for instance, that Dr.
Gumming
did,
but that one
leading idea, which was apt to become somewhat tedious
from constant as of his
life.
iteration,
He
formed the keynote of
his teaching
string,
and
ecclesiastical discipline
was
was always harping on one
whether history, or theology, or
the professed subject of discussion, the supreme excellence of liberalism or "latitudinarianism"
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the term
was one not of reproach but of honour turn out to be the moral of the tale.
made by his admirers
their special
in his
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; would
mouth
invariably
This has indeed been
theme of commendation,
but neither in an intellectual nor a moral sense can the praise be accepted without reserve. ever,
it
is
pleasant
to
unanimous agreement of
who came
principle,
all,
and genuine, and knew no ;
however widely
into contact with him.
conduct and demeanour his
or creed
In one respect, how-
be able to put on record
liberality
was
the
differing in
In his personal alike graceful
distinctions of opinion, school,
after the fiercest w^'anglings in the
Jerusalem
346
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. Dean and Archdeacon Denison, who
Chamber
the
the
opportunity of paying a
first
memory
converse
kind-hearted, life,
in
He
drawing-room.
private
tribute
seized to
his
Convocation, might be seen seated side by side
in
in friendly
warm
Deanery
the hospitable refuge of the
was, in short, a thoroughly amiable,
and generous man
in all
the relations of
and the various positions he successively occu-
pied, especially during his later years at Westminster,
gave
him abundant opportunities of exhibiting those estimable qualities, of
which he was never slow to avail himself.
It
has been said, probably with truth, that he never had a
enemy
personal
;
and
was added
to this kindliness of heart
made
the rare charm of conversational powers which
presence an
acquisition
There
more reason
is
the
company he
every
to
for
his
entered.
rendering this just tribute,
because, as will presently appear, there are decisive objections against unreservedly endorsing all the
commendations
bestowed on the impartial breadth of his
liberality in a
wider sphere.
But that inquiry runs up into a general
estimate of his position as a writer, a theologian, and a dignified
and
Churchman.
influential
Lord Beaconsfield exemplified
his
wonted
felicity of
phrase when he selected "picturesque sensibility" as the special characteristic of
Dean
Stanley's mind.
He was
not
a deep or philosophical thinker, and therefore was never likely to wield such influence as e.g. Cardinal
exercised on one side, allied to him. Professor
on the
other.
or,
to
name
Newman
has
more nearly
Jowett or the late Mr. Maurice
The marvellous
Newman's sermons
divines
at Oxford,
efl"ect
attributed
to
Dr.
which has been described
with thrilling force by the most unsympathetic hearers,
DEAN STANLEY.
who was
Stanley's,
by any discourse of Dean
produced
be
never
could
347
a graceful and picturesque rather than
a touching or eloquent preacher, and whose voice was the
For theology properly so
reverse of musical. is
for the abstract discussion of doctrine,
called, that
he had a positive
inaptitude and distaste, though he was constantly writing
about
was not so much that he
It
it.
idea of doctrine or
dogma
intellectual side
its
altogether,
analogies was matched
He
had an
noonday
Had
have
fully shared
were
in
of the
a
article of
"
the difference of a single little
willing to sub-
confessions as the Nicene
could almost imagine his sharing the fate
unhappy victim of Turkish red-tapism, who
to have been executed at
Mahometan
either
religion
or a Christian
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; but
creeds he adhered.
is
said
Constantinople, not for being
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
for
he was free to profess
because he could not decide, or at
least could not intelligibly explain, to
years ago
but
conceive
Gibbon's unphilosophical contempt for a
condemn the Arian
One
an
false,
the fourth century, he would
diphthong," and would have been as
Creed.
little
specific heresy as for
he lived
Christendom divided about
scribe or to
for discern-
to every eye
instinctive aversion to definite state-
subjects, not because they
martyred for a
the Creed.
forms.
for tracing impossible
because they were definite, and one could as his being
on
his inability to
by an equal incapacity
ing distinctions plain as the sun at his.
grasp the
his liberality
him were empty
His paradoxical and morbid passion
ments on abstract
failed to
and
was largely based on
appreciate distinctions which to
but
disliked this or that
and
particular tenet, as that he disliked
which of the
In a lecture to working
Dean Stanley
rival
men some
ridiculed the notion of psychology
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
348
or theology being at
all
concerned
by the Darwinian theory of the referred, in
"
He
profane and
its
idyls,"
homage
He
an Oxford University Sermon, to Renan's Vie
de Jesus, with " Galilean
the problems raised
in
origin of species.
pastoral
loathsome ravings about
loves,
id genus
et
om?ie,
as
offered to Christ from an unexpected quarter."
told the students of St. Andrew's, on another occasion,
that " the faith of each successive epoch of Christendom
has varied enormously from the faith of
—which
its
predecessors
only shows his strange incapacity for distinguish-
ing fixed doctrines from passing phases of opinion that " the true faith
than to
indebted is
regarded by
either
the
all
"
the
excommunicated Spinoza," who
competent interpreters as having been
"
was vouchsafed the
published
Creeds,
dismissing,
as
clearest glimpse
In a paper on the three
into the nature of the Deity,"
only a year before his death, while
no better than
"
algebraic
symbols
"arithmetical enigmas," the doctrines they are
supposed to contain, he seeks to broader and
loftier,
of " Christianity, as
Gothe,
Mill,
it
from them some
has appeared to Voltaire, Rousseau,
He would
Renan."
"
Strauss, he recoiled from
and not the
and
not have said in so
words, with Strauss in the Leben Jesu, that "the
but from
in
elicit
"
commonly
but scarcely intelligible, conception
moral contents of Christianity
unhke
— and
has been to no one more largely
"
an Atheist or at best a Pantheist, but to whom,
Dean thought,
many
"
are all
alone valuable,
to last,
whenever he spoke
least typical
work on Christian
first
— as
in his latest
Institutions,
and
On
the
highly characteristic posthumous paper "
Revised Version of the
New
for,
definite statements
Testament
",
published in the
DEAN STANLEY. Times
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; of
the great doctrines which
"
349
all
Christians alike
hold," he invariably and exclusively referred to the moral,
as distinct from the doctrinal, teaching of the Gospel. is
to understand
difficult
how such vague and
It
colourless
exhortations can, as Archbishop Tait declared after his
death in Convocation, have
"
confirmed in the faith vast
numbers whose temptations lay scepticism " ness
is
;
for, if
entirely in the direction of
anything beyond faith
must
intended, the question
were they to be confirmed
faith
loyalty to his friends
To
in
was stronger than
his critical
He was
a theologian at
all,
not and never could have his theo-
combined with the
paradox which grew out of them,
The
materially afiected his character as an historian also.
same vagueness
of
less
greatly to
is
and unfortunately
logical or anti-theological peculiarities,
inveterate passion for
acumen.
Dean was
a theologian than an ecclesiastical historian-
become
what
But the Archbishop's
?
say with one of his eulogists that the
understate the case.
moral good-
at once arise, in
mind which
led
him rather
to
adumbrate
than to define his theological views reappeared
in his treat-
ment both
As
of Jewish and Christian history.
he was versatile rather than accurate,
a writer
brilliant rather
than
profound, and was always happier in illustrating his subject
than like
in
explaining
it.
And
hence
in truth those
works,
Sinai and Palestine, and the interesting Memorials of
Canterbury and of Westminster, which gave the amplest scope for pictorial illustration and the least for theological or ecclesiastical disquisition, were at once the most pleasing
and most which
instructive of his writings
first
category by
;
the Life of Dr. Arnold,
brought him into public notice, stands itself,
in a
from the singular charm as well of the
350
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
subject as of the treatment.
In his Lectures on the Eastern
Church, his description of the Council of Nice throws far greater light on the details of the national costume
temperament
assembled
the
of
momentous, but to
mind comparatively
his
they met together to decide for
Church
;
all
and
than
on the
trivial,
question
prelates
future ages of the
while elsewhere he dismisses the whole series of
General Councils as of no practical value, because they failed to accomplish,
what of course they never attempted
or from the nature of the case could possibly have achieved,
and did not create the
art,
the science, the literature, the
poetry, the philanthropy, or even the theology of Chris-
tendom.
It did
not occur to him that the same line of
argument would equally prove the
Roman
English Parliament to be shams.
All competent judges
again will agree with Mr. Lecky that
Senate or the
Christianity has
created three things generally recognised as special types
and expressions of
its
religious sentiment, "the church bell,
the organ, and the Gothic Cathedral."
But Dean Stanley's
paradoxical temper led him to argue in Good Words, in defiance of
all
historical evidence, that there
distinctively Christian,
still
less distinctively
Gothic architecture, and that, in
fact, it
is
has closer
with Protestantism than with Catholicism.
affinities
But there
need to go further into detail on a familiar theme.
who
nothing
Catholic, in
is
no
Those
are acquainted with his writings will be aware that
Dr. Stanley was hardly more reliable as ^n historian than as a divine
;
and
it
was a
peculiarity of his
mind
that,
while he was constantly making mistakes, which were at
once detected and exposed by his
critics,
be persuaded to admit them himself.
he could never
DEAN STANLEY.
remains to say something of the Dean's career as a
It
Churchman,
" the successor,"
himself, " of the
the
351
fitness in his
English
was fond of
own views and
singularity of his
matters, there
as he
was a
curious,
policy in Church
though probably accidental,
independent of
episcopal
all
of Westminster were
superior jurisdiction save that of the
the
styling
considering
occupying the one post of eminence
Church
The mitred Abbots when
And
Abbots of Westminster."
exempt from
Roman
Pontiff,
Abbey was suppressed by Henry VIII.
immunity passed on
to
in the
control.
the
all
and
same
the Deans, subject only to the
supreme authority of the new Head of the Church, which for centuries past
has meant that for practical purposes
This exceptional immunity of
they can do as they please. the
Abbey Church enabled Dean Stanley
ments there which could have been
tried
to try experi-
nowhere
one occasion he induced a layman to preach
else.
On
in the nave,
and more than once he invited suspended clergymen or Nonconformist ministers to occupy the pulpit
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; an
ofifer
they had what most people considered the good taste to decline.
That however was only one
ecclesiastical liberalism
illustration of the
which shaped the Dean's peculiar
view of the relations of Church and State.
He
is
credited
with being fearless and impartial in the breadth of his toleration,
and always ready
In one sense this
hardly be said that tudinarian
is
in the
to defend the
but not
But
in the outer it
is
in
unpopular
another.
It
present day the liberal or
really the popular side,
a wider popularity Westminster.
true,
is
side.
need lati-
and few men enjoyed
world than the Dean of
true that he braved, one might
almost say scorned, ecclesiastical public opinion, and
among
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
352
his
own
order and in the Church of England generahy he
was an object of
But
suspicion.
and independent
dignified
man
for a
opinion and very high authorities both at his back,
siastical
it
holding a
position, with a powerful public civil
and
eccle-
did not perhaps require any very
exceptional courage to face a clerical opposition which at
worst could only denounce him, and which, with personal forbearance to hesitated
to
denounce and
One
asperity, in return. little
reminded by
his lofty scorn of " sacerdotal " preten"
trampling on the pride "
of Plato,", as Plato quietly remarked,
wide,
On
hand
the other
was most readily and
wing of
his
own
without some
not
satirize,
can, hardly help indeed being a
sions of the old story of Diogenes
of his own,"
his
all
opponents, he never
individual
party.
We
with a greater pride
his liberality,
however
extended to the
freely
left
never heard for instance of his
voice being raised against the worrying Ritualist prosecutions or the harsh penalties
Yet, even assuming
them. to be
sound
respect
in law,
mistaken
which
all
in
is
much
a
in
every
strong assumption
— the
claim for toleration as Mr.
Gorham, or Dr. Colenso, or the
— of
whom
it
was
said
writers of Essays
did not escape, or Mr.
retire
"
incur legal censure, but
— or
felt
from an untenable position
Mr. Voysey, who
who
Brooke,
Stopford
;
and
the time that " they
at
escaped by the skin of their teeth
indeed
cases followed
and the Ritualist contention
— which
victims had surely as
Reviezvs
some
the Privy Council judgments
bound
and
Stanley manifested an active sympathy.
in
did
for all these It
may
not
honour
to
Dr.
be replied
that every one, however comprehensive his toleration,
most keenly
alive to the
wrongs of
his
own
is
party, and, of
DEAN STANLEY. course, that fairness
is
perfectly true
;
353
only something must
tolerance,
which
closely in
harmony with
towards partisans
exhibited
chiefly
is
whose extreme opinions
incline
to
one's own.
the
extremity most
And
the public pro-
by Churchmen of mark-
tests twice raised against himself
edly moderate and conservative temper
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; one
by Bishop
Wordsworth, then Canon of Westminster, against lation in the Deanery, the
the
in
be discounted from the impartial largeness of a
Dean
of Norwich, against his appointment as Select
Preacher at Oxford
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
needed for himself a claimed for others. liberalism
his instal-
next some few years later by
suffice
It
in historical
prove that Dr. Stanley
to
measure of the toleration he
full
was
characteristic of his one-sided
questions
that,
while he
fiercely
denounced "the atrocious Act of 1662," which imposed subscription to the Prayer-Book, and led to the ejection of
two thousand Nonconformist ministers from the which they had been
illegally thrust,
livings into
he had no word of
censure for the far more arbitrary and sweeping ejection of
some 7000 episcopal
clergy under the
Commonwealth, whose
places these intruders had usurped. his eagerness to secure for the
In practical matters,
Abbey
the remains of the
of forcing
Socinian author of Pickwick, at the cost
hand of
his
family and
directions, contrasted
resting-place in the
contravening his
oddly with the omission to
same hallowed
the
own express offer
a
precincts to the author
of the Christian Year.
And now of
for a
the relations
prominent place
He
word of
in
conclusion on the peculiar theory
Church and
in the
State,
which
held
a
Dean's entire teaching and policy.
never, of course, precisely defined
it,
any more than he
A A
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
35+
defined his theological views, but
would probably have
it
coincided pretty closely in practical result with the scheme
propounded by
his
old master, Dr. Arnold, that
Roman
except Jews and
Act of Parliament,
one national communion.
in
differences of belief or worship
him
of
Their
would have appeared
importance,
infinitesimal
sects
all
Catholics should be united, by
or,
to
main
one
rather,
advantage of a Church Establishment was to hold such
At
differences in check.
a great meeting convened in St.
James's Hall, under the presidency of Archbishop Longley, to protest against the disestablishment of the Irish Church,
he commenced a speech, which the fervently
frantic
howls of his
Tory audience would not allow him
declaring that he was
"
a
Whig
of the
by
to finish,
Whigs and
a Liberal
of the Liberals," and intended to support the motion on
He would
Liberal principles. length,
no doubt have explained
at
had he been suffered to proceed, what he took
occasion to set forth in print more fully elsewhere, that the
essence of an Established Church
supremacy of the Crown, that Joseph n. of Austria Frederick H.
was
his
aptly
model of a
—
"
my
named liberal
is,
is
"
under
to be
of the law," and
the that
brother the Sacristan," as
the
meddlesome lay-pope
monarch.
He was
careful to
add that the possession of endowments, and
still
any exclusive system of doctrine or
any separate
clerical order, is it
should be
polity, or
more of
not of the essence of the Church
made
;
that
as comprehensive as the nation,
all
theological tests
being abolished, "except, perhaps, the
Apostles' Creed"
—
from some
man
this
later writings
doubtful
exception
disappears
— and
that "every
on the subject
capable of rendering good service to the community
DEAN STANLEY. be recognised
a
as
355
The advantages
minister."
arrangement are further explained to be that
it
the Church the supremacy of just and good laws
one hardly sees bad, and
all
why
all
of this
secures to
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; though
Church laws should be necessarily
State laws necessarily good
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that
gives
it
scope for the growth of various diversities of opinion that
it
"
protects
humble and devout
souls
and
;
from being
borne down by the current of local and transitory clamour,"
which was supposed to
Bishop Colenso, whose
refer to
quarrel with the South African bishops height,
and whose pertinacity
in
was then
maintaining
at
conspicuous than his humility to ordinary observers. lecture he delivered
Dean pronounced
a
some years afterwards
in
In a
Scotland the
more emphatic eulogium on
still
its
was more
it
" the
principle of a national Establishment," not indeed that the
State gains anything from union with the Church, but, on
the contrary, "the contact,
however
Church
slight,
is
elevated and
enlarged by
with so magnificent and divine an
ordinance as the national commonwealth." strict
accordance with these views that, when
he habitually worshipped and preached
in
was
It in
in
Scotland,
the Established
Presbyterian Kirk, and held aloof entirely from the unestablished
Episcopal Communion.
The simple
establishment was to him a far more fundamental the Church ritual.
"
This
fact "
of
note of
than any specialty of doctrine, discipline, or is
not the place to discuss whether such an
establishment as he adumbrated and desired could ever
become it
came
a practical reality, or to be realised,
it
Goldwin Smith once called call
how
would "
far,
differ
if
per impossibile
from what Mr.
an established chaos."
To
such views Erastian would be an obvious misnomer.
A A 2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
356
Erastianism subordinates the Church to the State leyan hypothesis reduces
it
;
the Stan-
to an impalpable abstraction,
which cannot even be conceived of except as a variable accident of the
The
administration, having no independent
civil
principles, doctrines,
officers,
or
ordinances
of
own.
its
wildest heresies which disturbed the early or mediaeval
Church were
utterly alien to the
less
whole temper and
teaching of historical Christianity than such an estimate of
Had
religious obligations.
the
"
least
persecutions
ten
by
nine, for the first
nance as
would have secured and
the Imperial polity of
suffice to
last to
his
But
and comprehensiveness
life
it
"
ideal of
— as an ardent
—which Dean Stanley made
to promote,
the
must
it
have indicated the true nature of the
panegyrist has worded
aim of
at
justified
Rome — incomparably
grandest polity the world has ever seen.
" toleration, charity,
it,
" so magnificent and divine an ordi-
their submission to "
the early Christians shared
would have been diminished
"
it
the
and which he appears to the
have expected or hoped might some day be trans-
lated into
fact.
Its
very vagueness and impracticability
give a sort of nebulous grandeur to the ideal, but
wonderful that the
man who
never tired of preaching
it,
in
it is
desperately clung to
it,
not
and
season and out of season, as
the last word of religious truth and wisdom, should have
found himself out of harmony with almost every section of his clerical brethren. It
was a curious coincidence that within the same week
with Dr. Stanley there passed away another representative
and
retiring nature,
and a
—
many ways from him an man of shy bookworm, but also a man of
dignitary, differing widely in
old-fashioned high-churchman, a Conservative, a
DEAN STANLEY.
357
deep learning, great kindliness of disposition, and munificent liberality, to
whom more
than to any other individual
owing the splendid restoration Chancellor Harington,
who was
loved by
all
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
of Exeter Cathedral
who knew
him, and reverenced, one might almost say, throughout the
whole West of England.
No two men
utterly unlike in their opinions, habits,
of their
lives,
could be more
and the
time of their death were not divided.
Dean Stanley was not exactly
might have been to
do
difficult to find
who
Meanwhile,
Westminster Abbey, viewed as a centre of ence,
entire course
than these cathedral dignitaries,
in
the
if for
spiritual influ-
the ideal head,
any one better
it
qualified
justice in its secular aspects to a position of unique
historical, social,
and national
interest.
XXXIX. WILLIAM GEORGE WARD. In a sketch of Cardinal the Century, Mr.
Newman
Kegan Paul
Mr. Ward's name
is
and
justly enough, "
from
infers
it,
dinal) considered Mr.
originally published in
refers to the curious fact that
not once mentioned in the Apologia,
how
little
Ward an exponent
he (the Car-
of his
own
views."
At the same time there are few of the old Tractarian party who took a more prominent part in the Oxford movement than the able writer and metaphysician who, after a brief
and painful the
illness,
passed from
Ward," which could not of
all
among
us in July 1882, at
His popular sobriquet of
age of seventy.
to bring a smile to the faces
fail
who knew anything
" Ideal
of his outer man, was derived
from a work which at the time produced an immense sensation in
;
and Mr, Mozley has reminded us that he was,
more senses than
one, " the largest contributor to the
British Criticl' the recognised organ of the school.
Ward was
indeed a
and mental, his
it
man whose
was impossible
Mr.
personality, both physical
to overlook or ignore.
achievements at Winchester there
is
little
to'
Of
record
;
but even as an undergraduate he had distinguished himself as a frequent
and
telling speaker at the
from the time he gained
his
Oxford Union, and
double second
in
1834, and
WILLIAM GEORGE WARD. was soon afterwards Tait, a
the
in
Fellow of
with Archbishop
elected, together
Balliol, his
University and
in
name
the
rapidly grew famous
Though
Church.
Rugbean, but a Wykehamist, he
359
fell
early
not a
under Dr.
Arnold's influence, and represented at Oxford, as Mr.
Mozley puts
it,
"
the intellectual force, the irrefragable logic,
the absolute self-confidence, and the headlong impetuosity
Rugby school." There is a story of his once paying Rugby to consult Dr. Arnold on his intellectual difficulties, when he plied his teacher so unsparingly with of the
a visit to
questions and arguments that on his departure the indomitable Doctor was fain to confess himself utterly exhausted,
and to
retire at
But
once to bed.
his allegiance
to be transferred to a yet
more
was a
Oxford that he
tradition current at
was soon There
illustrious master.
w^as instantane-
by a single line in the Newman's Parochial Ser-
ously converted to Tractarianism preface to the third volume of
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; published
mons
in
1836
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to
the effect that " Ultra-Pro-
testantism could never have been silently corrupted into
Popery."
Converted at
events he was, very speedily
all
and very completely, from Arnoldian ideas,
and
his great literary
to
Anglo-Catholic
powers were at once devoted
As a writer he was Ward alone was enough
to the service of the rising school.
both startling and irrepressible to
fill
the world with alarms."
" ;
The
" doctrine of reserve,"
which was elaborately and somewhat ponderously preached
by Mr. Isaac Williams
in
one of the
later Tracts,
and
for
which the writer was mercilessly castigated by indignant Protestant
He
critics as "
not only
a Jesuit," was not at
knew what he meant, but
modern phrase would be
said
all it
in his line.
with what in
called " a brutal frankness."
And
36o
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
hence the enemies of the movement denounced him as at once impudent and treacherous, impudent for his avowed design of
"
un-Protestantizing the Church of England,"
treacherous for remaining to
"
Cuhrch
eat the bread of the
"
while he carried on this work, though in fact he never
The
held any ecclesiastical preferment.
writer of a long-
forgotten pasquinade, once widely circulated under the
title
of the OxJo7'd Argo, thus gibbeted him, in what unfortun-
was by no means the most
ately
offensive of his stanzas, in
point either of reverence or good taste
:
There's Balliol's honest knave,
Non-natural but
To
real,
them o'er the wave Winding a blast ideal.
And
if
waft
Mr. Ward's lucubrations acted on opponents
like
a red rag on a bull, they were in other ways hardly less
For one
irritating to his friends.
voluminous.
XC. covered 90 British
the
thing,
His Feiv More Words pages.
Qitic
editor that " for
so
The
in
length of his contributions to
overpowered the
many years
his idea of
young cuckoo, growing bigger and this the only grievance.
interest
was
philosophical,
From
much-enduring
Ward was
of a huge
bigger, elbowing the
legitimate progeny over the side of the
was
he was terribly
defence of Tract
the
and the
little first
editor,
Nor
nest."
Ward's chief
who
did not
profess to be a philosopher, records pathetically how,
if " I
did but touch a filament or two in one of his monstrous
cobwebs, off ran he instantly to
my
Newman
to complain of
gratuitous impertinence," so that he not only thought
of him as of a huge little
Cupid
young cuckoo, but
flying to his
also as of " a
plump
mother to show a wasp sting he
WILLIAM GEORGE WARD.
And
had just received."
361
" as for cutting short (his articles),
where was one to commence that operation when they were already without beginning or end
indeed
Ward had
less
.-'
Graces
"
from his friend Oakeley, who to the
much what Mr. Mozley
writer, very
in his earlier
Oxford days,
scholar;" his English felicitous,
At
the
but
is
"
last
remained, as a
describes
him
as being
an elegant and rather dilettante
always pleasant to read, and often
more remarkable
is
of style
than none, differing therein widely
for elegance
same time Mr. Mozley admits, what
is
than force.
not difficult
many readers of the Critic " looked to gem of the number." But moreover difficulties he threw in the way of editorial
to understand, that
Ward's
article as the
the practical revision
were vexatious enough
minute and detestable
;
it
" his
;
handwriting was
The MS.
defied correction.
consisted of bundles of irregular scraps of paper, which I
had
There
to despatch to the printer crying out for copy. "
was always indeed something of the humorous the alarming associated with the
and foe
The
alike.
brought about, as
is
crisis
well
name
of his
of
as well as
Ward, by
friend
Anglican career was
known, by the publication of
his
Ideal of a Christian Church and the censure pronounced on the book and
its
author by the Oxford Convocation
on that occasion he speech, to read
time
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;but
his wife.
sat
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; not
down
in the
his notes, as
a letter from the lady
Of the book
itself it is
:
and
middle of his great
was supposed
who
at the
afterwards became
superfluous at this distance
was marked by the keen
of time to say much.
It
and
which never deserted him, but he
logical acuteness
would probably have allowed himself
in later
insight
days
he did not exaggerate the slavery of the Church
"
that, if
working
362
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
in chains,"
at
which he had
somewhat
least
tried
idealized
AND BIOGRAPHY.
and found wanting, he had the actual working of the
Church which as yet he had only had the opportunity of observing
from without.
Oxford
1845 and
in
its
The
story
issue has
from almost every point of view, to
But
again.
it
may
for its
may
"
of
it
by the
the Edinburgh Review, referred to
in
accuracy
often,
at
and
need being told
"
writer of Mr. Ward's obituary in the
amusing
conflict
be worth while to observe that
very interesting and amusing account
Dean Stanley
the
of
been told too
"
the late
by the
Times, was chiefly
marvellous travesty of the
facts.
His own
be gauged by the novel information that
the votes ivere taken, and the majority was found to be
Tract XC], when the Senior Proctor,
for the censure [of
the present
words,
'
Dean
of St. Paul's, pronounced the famous
Nobis procuratoribiis non
dispersed."
The
proctors,
it
observe, have no such autocratic
of Convocation once given
;
and the swarm
placet',
ought to be unnecessary to
power of reversing a vote
the power they have, and
exercised on that memorable occasion,
is
to prohibit a
motion they deem objectionable being put to the vote at all.
Mr.
Ward was
deprived of his degree by a sentence,
the justice of which few adherents of any religious party
would now care to vindicate, and the
legality of
would have been challenged, probably with cared to retain his position at Oxford.
months he had vacated been received into the
his fellowship
success,
which
had he
But within a few
by marriage, and had
Roman Communion.
His marriage of course precluded him from pursuing an ecclesiastical career, but the
distinction
Pope recognised
his intellectual
by conferring on him the degree of Doctor of
WILLIAM GEORGE WARD. Wiseman appointed him
Philosophy, and Cardinal
Chair of Dogmatic Theology the Times stated
which he held
363
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; not
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;at the Seminary of
for several years,
to the
Moral Philosophy, as St.
Edmund's, Herts,
he came, by the death
till
of his uncle, into a considerable property in the Isle of
Wight.
In most respects he would have agreed with Sir
George C. Lewis, that amusements."
Of
" life
would be
tolerable, but for its
when com-
sionately fond, but he used to stop his ears, pelled to listen to
Gregorian
"
him of
always reminded
activity
was not checked
succession to a fortune
;
treatise
which, he said,
chanting,
original
either
by
His
sin."
literary
his conversion or his
constituted, in fact, his ruling
it
passion and his main interest in
an able
was pas-
operatic music, however, he
In i860 he published
life.
on Nature and Grace, and
for fifteen years
he held the editorship of the Dublin Revieiv, to which, as before to the British Critic, he was himself a copious contributor.
He had
while
an Anglican, and his Ultramontanism naturally
still
been, so
became more pronounced
in
have seen already that Dr.
him
as an exponent of his
to
speak, an
his
Ultramontane
adopted Church.
Newman
own views
We
never acknowledged at Oxford,
and
in his
Letter to Dr. Pusey on the Eirenicon, published in 1866,
while
commending
his " energy, acuteness,
reading," he peremptorily asserts
spokesman
for
extreme theological arrogance, in his
whom
view of the Pope's line
way
and
his
whose dissent he could
no sense a
very few "go
infallibility."
His
vehemence, not to say
of enforcing
into collision with writers
and theological
to be " in
English Catholics," of
his lengths in their
him
him
it,
frequently brought
of his
own communion,
least patiently endure,
notably with
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
364
Father Ryder of the Birmingham Oratory, and some of the contributors to the Rambler and the
those
Home and Foreign
and he had an unpleasant habit of intimating that
Revieiv,
who
differed
from him on some detail of theological
opinion, or ecclesiastical or educational discipline, ought in strict
Of his
consistency to be sceptics or atheists.
there can be no
But
unfair.
dealing with a theological opponent,
in
sincerity
shadow of doubt, nor did he ever intend
to
be
who had
the misfortune to be one of his co-religionists, fairness was to
him a psychological
doxy
impossibility.
Nobody
is
my doxy
;
"
was inconceivable
it
Catholic should not be heterodox, whose
from
ever
more consistently Warburton's dictum that
plified
his
He may
own.
same type of
fierce
be said
in
doxy
in the late
" differed
;
M.
Veuillot.
Ward was
unjust.
deep and powerful philosophical thinker
tion," Veuillot
rightly
named
was the
"
a
Veuillot was at
And if
more than a racy and shallow pamphleteer. is
ortho-
him that a
and aggressive Ultramontanism which
But the comparison would be doubly
John Knox
exem-
a sense to represent the
on the continent found a mouthpiece
best no
"
to
"
the ruffian of the Reforma-
ruffian of
modern Ultramontanism,
modified of course by this difference between the conditions of the sixteenth century and the nineteenth, that
command
Knox had
of knives and bludgeons, whereas Veuillot had
to content himself with stabbing reputations
the noblest of his Catholic contemporaries
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;of some
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; with
of
a pen
habitually dipped in the acidulated quintessence of vitriol.
Of Ward,
overbearing and arrogant as he was apt to be
theological controversy with his fellow Catholics,
be untrue to say vindictive.
this.
He was
it
\\\
would
not personally venomous or
WILLIAM GEORGE WARD. The Times was partly,
not
if
365
right in intimating
quite
Ward's
chiefly,
that
was
it
some
which
opposition
years ago wrecked the scheme of founding an Oratory
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
Roman Catholic College " at Oxford, as a religious centre for Roman Catholic undergraduates, for which Dr. Newman had already received generous promises of supnot " a
port and
warm
assurances of sympathy from a large body
Great as was Ward's admiration
of his co-religionists.
both personal and intellectual for his old leader, there was
from
to last a
first
marked divergence of sentiment and
opinion between them. religious controversy,
But, in spite of his keen interest in
and pugnacious advocacy of
side, his real greatness
was always rather
He was most
thinker than a theologian.
own
his
as a speculative
home
at
in the
Metaphysical Society, which he helped to found, and where
he met and argued on equal terms with some of the thinkers of the day, and
it
philosophical articles in
the British
Review which are the during
life
is
first
not his theological but his
and Dublin
Critic
He
likeliest to survive.
republished
one or two volumes of the former, but
who
all
are familiar with his series of papers on the Intuitional and Free-will
against the
controversies, directed
S. Mill
J.
conclusions or not, must desire to see reprinted like
the
theories
and Herbert Spencer, whether accepting
in
a permanent form
late
Mr. Mill, never
;
his
them
1
themselves
hesitated
add that the many controversies
While these sheets are passing through the
in
to
It is
which he was
press,
two
vols, are
advertised of Essays on the Philosophy of Theism by the late
Ward.
and
collected
leading opponents,
acknowledge him as a foeman worthy of their steeL^ fair to
of his
W. G.
366
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
engaged through
life
seldom or never involved any
ruption of personal friendships, though
it
inter-
has often been
observed that his relations were far more cordial with Protestants, from
whom he whom
" Liberal Catholics," self to
could afford to
differ,
than with
he could not easily bring him-
regard as any better than traitors in the camp.
In
one respect he was honourably distinguished from some of his clerical fellow-converts
who, owing to their marriage or
other circumstances, were constrained like himself to retire into lay
communion, and have been reproached with sink-
ing into a state of intellectual apathy.
Ward's nature
to suffer the
edge of
It
even rest for a moment, nor would he willingly
who came
into contact with
was not
in
his intellect to rust, or
him escape
let
" the
any one
keen en-
counter of their wits," which he was ever on the watch to challenge or eager to accept.
XL. DR.
On
PUSEY AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT. Movement
the 14th of July 1883 the Tractarian
became
entitled to celebrate
Sermon Cardinal
at
did anything so
has reminded
has told
1833, marks, as
14,
what must be considered
us,
commencement, though some years had yet
its
to elapse before
it
could be said to be in
much
contribute, as the
who on
full
Nor
swing.
same high authority
consolidation and eventual success
us, to its
as the accession to
divine
Mr. Keble's Assize
jubilee.
Oxford on Sunday, July
Newman
the date of
its
its
ranks of the learned and saintly
Sept. 18, 1882, passed away, in a ripe
and
honoured old age, amid the regrets of thousands of friends
and
disciples,
and with the universal respect of
men of all shades of opinion. comment from many points uneventful indeed in large
its
There
is
room
of view on a
his country-
of course for
life,
singularly
outward circumstances, but of such
and manifold influence on the
destinies of the
Church
of England, and the course of religious thought in this country,
that
to
it
making" might not
the
hackneyed epithet of "epoch-
unfitly
confidently anticipate that
be applied.
full
theme of such wide and varied
now
in
course of preparation
And we may
justice will be interest in the
by
the writer of
done
to a
biography all
others
368
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
most competent to undertake the
task, as well
from his
intimate personal knowledge of Dr. Pusey, as from his
having so largely inherited both the convictions and the
Meanwhile a
influence of the teacher he loved so well.
few general remarks are
all
that can be attempted here, on
the significance of a career which will retain
its
permanent
place in the annals both of Oxford and of the religious
life
of England.
For more than half a century the
Hebrew
filled
Professor of
and the long and yet
at an unusually early age, in 1828,
imperfect
late
Oxford held the post to which he was appointed,
at
list
of his works, copied from Crockford, which
more than half a column of the obituary notice
Guardian, would alone lifelong assiduity. failing power.
sufifice
Nor was
any
there to the last
studies might sufficiently account
pubhshed only two years before Farrar's Eternal Hope, decisive,
and
sign of
Clearness of style was never Dr. Pusey's
strong point, and for this his Hebrew, patristic, and
and
in the
to prove his unwearied
is
his
German
but his latest work,
;
death
in reply to Dr.
not only one of the most masterly
but perhaps the most tersely and clearly
written, that ever
emanated from him.
of his death he was
engaged
lectures for the next term,
had been unequal
Within a few days
in preparing his
though
for
Hebrew
some years past he
to the task of himself delivering either
lectures or sermons,
which were read by others
But, while throughout his long
life
for him.
Dr. Pusey realised the
which we German than with English
wont
ideal of a student, in a sense
are
rather with
professors or divines,
he was never a mere book-vvorm.
To
call
to associate
him a party
leader would convey an incorrect impression, for no one
PUSEY AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT.
DR.
could have less of the ambition of leadership or the of a partisan
yet
;
it
was
at
bottom as true an
369
spirit
instinct as
that which almost invariably dictates schoolboy nicknames
that identified with his
commenced
at
Oxford
name
fifty
the great religious revival
he then was) was earlier in the
field,
Newman
Mr.
years ago.
and
his
is
ably a mind of more rare and commanding genius
made at one time by the movement with the sarcastic
late Dr.
the attempt,
saddle the
mania " from the
first
completely
;
yet
Arnold, to
New-
sobriquet of "
failed.
(as
unquestion-
Whether
it
would
ever have been begun, or would have attained the influential position in the University
and the country which
it
soon acquired, without the impetus derived from his devoted
may
energy and transcendent powers, but^ once fairly started
on
the long run, as Cardinal teristic generosity,
immense
learning,
course,
its
Newman
it
well be doubted
;
has owed more in
has himself, with charac-
been forward to remind
us, " to
diligence, scholastic mind,
the great
and simple
devotion to the cause of religion " of his loved and distinguished "
colleague,
whom
he
"
used
to
call
6 /xeyas."
There was henceforth," adds the author of the Apologia,
" a
man who
could be the head and centre of the zealous
people in every part of the country
new opinions furnished the
gained versity.
for .
.
it
.
;
and not only
movement with
so,
who were adopting the who
but there was one
a front to the world, and
a recognition from other parties in the Uni-
Dr. Pusey was, to use the
common
expression,
a host in himself; he was able to give a name, a form, and
a personality to what was without him a sort of mob..
Such was the nally
;
benefit he conferred
.
.
.
on the Movement exter-
nor was the internal advantage at
all inferior
B B
to
it.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
370
He was mind
;
a
man
of large designs
he had a hopeful, sanguine
;
he had no fear of others
he was haunted by no
;
intellectual perplexities."
When
Dr. Pusey was appointed at the age of twenty-nine
to the chair of
Hebrew
at Oxford,
and
first
occupied the
canonry house at Christ Church which was ever afterwards his
home, he had already spent a considerable time
studying successively at three Gottingen, and
Bonn
German
universities
in
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;Jena,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and had published a work on German
theology, long since out of print, which incurred the charge
of rationalism, chiefly, no doubt, because anything coming
out of
was
Germany was then supposed
at all events the first
and
last
to deserve the
name.
It
time such a charge could
with any semblance of plausibility be brought against him. It is
somewhat curious
two
replies
filled
to recollect that the
Hugh James
later.
theologian.
a
Hebrew
who
movement of a
lecturer, a preacher,
and a
Dr. Pusey throughout a long and laborious
and consistently maintained the cause of
resolutely
Christian
As
book provoked
Rose, of Cambridge,
a conspicuous place in the Church
few years
life
from
orthodoxy against
But while
assailants.
all
circumstances rather than choice often forced on him the office
of a controversialist, and his
made him always an principle, there
own
deepest convictions
unflinching upholder of the dogmatic
was ever about him a largeness of mind
and a depth of Christian sympathy which rendered bitterness of feeling or expression
often bitterly attacked,
while he
felt
it
all
He was
and from opposite quarters, but
his duty, not so
in the interests of his
impossible.
much
for his
own sake
as
Church, to defend himself against
charges of disloyalty which involved an arraignment of his
PUSEY AND THE OXFORD MOVEMEx\T.
DR.
The
theological position, he never bitterly retaliated. called Evangelical party for
many
371
so-
years assailed him with
unsparing virulence, but when the appearance of Essays
and Reviezvs seemed to truths held in
him
to
menace
to indicate a serious
common by
all
sincere believers in the
Gospel, he did not hesitate to appeal to the readers of the
Record
for
sympathy and support
The
enemy.
many
of his followers, brought
ally,
with
into
what was evidently
against
common
in resisting the
secession in 1845 of his great friend
claims he
him
to
a most
position about which he
in
and
necessity
unwelcome
unable to admit,
felt
him of
conflict,
defence of a
had never entertained a doubt.
But of controversial animus against the great Communion which had attracted so many of those on whose continued support he had once confidently reckoned, or against the seceders themselves, whose fidelity to conscience he re-
spected while he dissented from their conclusions, there
no trace
in his writings,
And when the growing which had prompted
was none
appeal to the Evangelicals, seemed
on the part of
all
who
cherished their
traditional faith in Divine Revelation, not only in
but throughout Europe, he put title
of
An
Eirenicon, a
immediate practical
monument both
forth,
England
under the winning
work which, however barren of any
result, will certainly live, as
an abiding
of deep theological learning and of calm
far-sighted Christian
wisdom and
wild, paradoxical, or, in the
charity.
He was
never
bad sense of the word, enthu-
no one, begging Dr. Arnold's pardon, could be less Don Quixote. And if he sometimes lent his great
siastic
like
is
in his heart.
pressure of the Rationalistic attacks,
his
to call for united action
as there
name
;
to phases of opinion or practice
which were considered B B 2
372
*'
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
extreme," this arose from a
to virtue's side.
So
" safe
men
on which
over dangerous
Newman
far
fault,
if
fault
be,
it
which leant
from sharing that base disposition,
" are
allies, his
apt to pride themselves, to throw generosity of temper, as Cardinal
has somewhere observed, always inclined him
rather to go
beyond than
to fall short of his
convictions, in defending those with
agreed, though
it
whom
own
deliberate
he substantially
He
were to his own hindrance.
dis-
approved, for instance, at the time of the publication of
Tract
XC,
though
contained nothing to which he did
it
not in principle assent.
But when the author was assailed
with a storm of authoritative censure and popular abuse,
he at once came forward with an elaborate and unqualified vindication of
it
when
the
position,
and
So, again, at a later period,
it.
Oxford movement
itself
had won a recognised
had become the fashion
to contrast " Ritualism " with
new and
Tractarianism, as a
parasitical
excrescence,
might have been supposed that Dr. Pusey, who knew
and cared
less
about ceremonial details
been not inaptly
said, that " to
— so
condemn
it.
On
it
has
the end he remained in
practice a Berkshire country clergyman"
stand aloof from this
that
it
little
new development,
if
—would
at least
he did not openly
the contrary, while mingling words of
counsel and caution with his commendations, he did not hesitate to throw his shield over those
to be honestly carrying out in practice
or not
—the
principles
whom
which he had devoted
reaffirming and propagating
had incurred an obloquy
;
to
he believed
— whether judiciously his life
to
the fact that in doing so they
which
" the old Tractarians,"
as they were sometimes termed in contradistinction from theirja?<ier disciples,
were no longer subjected, was to him
DR.
PUSEY AND THE OXFORD MOVEMENT.
an additional reason not
When
ledging them.
for disclaiming but for
Sisterhoods were a
new
373
acknow-
thing in the
English Church, and were almost as universally censured or disparaged as they are
now
encouraged, he was the
to
man and champion
first
universally accepted
come forward
less
power
to
it
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;though
not
no one
mere personal popularity
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
beneath him to say or do what lay
in his
sought or cared
never thought
He was
of this salutary revival.
indifferent to the force of public opinion
and
as the spokes-
for
disarm unreasonable prejudice and distrust; but
he would not consent to escape unmerited criticism by the sacrifice of his friends,
even when he might think that in
particular points they were indiscreet or mistaken.
The main intimated,
interest of Dr. Pusey's
life,
as has been already
relations to religion
lies in its
and to the Church
of which he was so conspicuous an ornament.
wonderful change, which during the
last
fifty
And
the
years has
passed over the worship, the teaching, and the general tone of the Anglican Church, constitutes at once
and
its
who
disagree with
him must
On
lived in vain.
as yet to pronounce
do so would be
alike confess that he has not
;
it
would be premature
any comprehensive and in
for
final verdict
effect to predict the future of the
National Church, and to
throughout Europe
explanation
the ultimate results of the movement,
which he did so much to promote,
to
its
Those who agree and those
crowning triumph.
it
some extent of was part
in
Christianity
fact of the general
Catholic reaction which followed on the French Revolution.
But
it
may
safely be asserted that
mark on the Communion he served so well, as few,
if
he has
left
his
so faithfully and loved
any, of her prelates or divines have done
374
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. Such as he found
since the Reformation, it
can never again become
after
him
;
it
be
will
to decide whether or not
it
years ago
it fifty
for those
who come from the
shall decline
higher standard which his teaching and example so largely contributed to establish. the place to speak.
Of
his private life this
outward course, but not wanting
More than
forty years
is
hardly
was uniform and monotonous
It
ago he
in severe trials
lost a wife to
in its
and sorrows.
whom
he was
deeply attached, and soon afterwards his eldest daughter
between two and three years before his death son was suddenly taken from him, who,
many would
be crushing bodily
in spite of
infirmities,
;
his only
what
to
had been not
only a comfort and support to his father in his advancing age, but a ready
labours.
and invaluable assistant
in
his
His sufferings from the separation, and
cases alienation, of friends, are too well
being dwelt upon.
But through
even tenor of his course
energy never flagged.
;
His
all trials
his spirit life
some
to need
he preserved the
was not soured, and
many
teaches
denial, charity, generosity, industry,
known
literary in
his
lessons of self-
and perseverance
;
but
perhaps the most precious memorial he has bequeathed not to his
own
disciples only, but to all
who,
in
whatever
ministry of action or of thought, would "serve their generation after the counsel of
God "
unselfish singleness of purpose,
of success.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
the
which
is
example of that the surest secret
XLI.
THE LATE PROVOST OF
ORIEL.
It cannot exactly be said that the death of the
late
venerable Provost of Oriel, at the advanced age of ninetythree,
the
removed a prominent
first
place. Dr.
from residence at his duties as
Oriel,
from Oxford
life.
In
retired eight years before
and from
all
active discharge of
head of the College, which devolved on the
Vice-Provost, Mr. Monro,
His death threw open the competition,
figure
Hawkins had
as
the
who
has since succeeded him.
office for the first
time to lay
canonry which formed part of
endowment has now been annexed chair of Scripture Exegesis, which
the
to
happened by a curious
moment through
coincidence to be also vacant at the same
But neither can
the resignation of Dr. Liddon.
its
ill-endowed
it
be said
that the late Provost, though so long a well-known and familiar figure at Oxford, ever exercised
any commanding
influence as a leader of thought in the University or the
Church of England generally. critical
and cautious rather than
teristic attitude
His tone of mind was original,
was not such as to
kindle enthusiasm.
He
and
his charac-
conciliate disciples or
may be called School, and Dry High and
belonged to what
the broader section of the old
disliked innovations either religious or academical
beyond a
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
376
very limited range, and hence he had Httle sympathy with
two great
either of the
and the
tarian
intellectual
movements, the Trac-
which passed successively
Rationalistic,
over the Oxford world of his day.
account
Cardinal
of his personal
the Apologia
in
Newman's
influence over
himself remarkably illustrates this temper of mind
was the
first
my
cautious in limiting
who
and
taught
me
to
He
statements.
clearing
my
weigh led
words, and to be
me
to that
exact
mind
himself,
and he used
to
He
upon."
did, however,
own knowledge mind
or
of
and of
man
a
influence
of
me
severely
first
Sermons
I
was engaged
though probably beyond
intention,
his
Mr. Newman's
at the time in a Catholicizing direction, as well
by
him a copy of
his
the books he lent him. as by giving
famous University Sermon on
But the
much
is
snub
wrote and other compositions that
I
ideas,
He
.
.
.
on reading, as he was kind enough to do, the that
mode
sense in discussion and in contro-
obviating mistakes by anticipation.
most
He
"
my
and of distinguishing between cognate
versy,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
:
in
"
special interest of Dr.
Unauthoritative Tradition."
Hawkins's
life
lies
not so
any paramount influence which he exerted over
others, as in the exceptional
prominence of the men and
the events he was brought into contact with during his long
University career, and the marvellous changes he lived to witness during the half-century of his provostship, as well in
Oriel
and Oxford as
in the entire social, political,
religious condition of the age.
Born
in the
and
very year of
the outbreak of the French Revolution, and elected to his fellowship two years before the battle of Waterloo, and to
the headship of his College the year before the Catholic
Eknancipation Act was passed, he seems, while
many who
THE LATE PROVOST OF knew him
intimately,
and many more to
form and sharp, clear-cut face with
among
white hair remain are
engaged
actively
still
ORIEL.
their
whom
his erect
wreath of snow-
its
most familiar
in the
377
work of
recollections>
already to
life,
belong rather to history than to the living world. it
Nor can
be forgotten that in his person passes away,
any means the
greatest, the last but
than himself— of that historic
group,
one
—a
if
not by
far greater
including
Keble,
Whateley, and Arnold, who combined to make the name of Oriel illustrious. It
was
in
1828, the
same year when Dr. Arnold, partly
through his own strong recommendation, was elected head-
master of Rugby, that Hawkins succeeded to the provostship of Oriel, in place of Copleston, author of the Prcelcctiones Academiccs
— considered —who had
Ciceronian Latinity Llandafif.
at the
time a model
of
been raised to the See of
His election strangely enough was
brought
about through the influence of Mr. Newman, who there-
upon succeeded him as vicar of
St.
Mary's, the
rival
candidates being Tyler, a late Fellow of the College and
then a
London
rector,
and John Keble.
The
latter
is
said to have jokingly proposed that " the Fellows should
divide the prize, giving Tyler the red gown,
work, and himself the money."
between Hawkins and Keble.
Hawkins the
But the choice It is idle
now
on the reasons which may have induced Mr.
really lay
to speculate
Newman
throw his whole weight on the side of Hawkins
;
but
it
to is
the light of subsequent events,
impossible not to
feel, in
how much
hinged on the decision, not only as
really
regards the fortunes of Oriel, but of the English Church.
The
Christian Year, indeed, would not in any case have
378
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
been
lost to the world, for
but
the later studies and
inevitably have
channel
if,
and
had appeared the year before energies of
its
;
author must
been directed into a somewhat different
down
instead of going
where he had ample logical
it
a country living,
to
leisure to devote himself to the theo-
questions of the day, he had,
ecclesiastical
during that busy and eventful period, occupied the headship of the most conspicuous College in Oxford.
greater
Still
might have been the difference as regards Mr. Newman's
and the whole history of the Tractarian movement,
career,
which so largely depended on him,
if
been
tutorial
forcibly
diverted
from the
College, to which he had
had not
work of
his
keenly addicted himself, and
own
thus driven by no seeking of his
another and wider sphere. words, "with a Provost
his activity
to find satisfaction in
In 1828, to cite Mr. Mozley's
who owed
his
election
him,
to
himself tutor, and with two other tutors, Robert Wilberforce
and Hurrell Froude, entirely devoted to him," he
seemed
to
have the College at
his
feet.
Within two
years he and his friends had found themselves compelled
by the action of the new Provost to resign their tutorships. They had desired to introduce some reforms moderate into enough when compared with subsequent changes
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
the College system, such as the use of illustrate the ancient classics,
modern books
to
paying an exacter regard to
the character and special gifts of each undergraduate, and establishing a
between tutor and
closer relation
Dr. Hawkins would not hear of revolutionary, and moreover a authority, and
PVench
" his
it
menace
idea," says
king's, Letat, dest inoi."
pupil.
he thought the scheme
;
to his
own supreme
Mr. Mozley, It
"
was the
would even then have
THE LATE PROVOST OF
ORIEL.
379
been an almost unprecedented stretch of authority
Head
for the
of a College to dismiss his tutors without
some
better reason than a mere difference of opinion, but the
Provost did what came practically to just the same thing.
He
"
announced that no more undergraduates would be
entered to their names, so that in three years they would
have no classes
and he anticipated
at all,"
which speedily followed
their resignation,
announcement, by a
this
which they had advocated, when he called
who was then
former Fellow
Lectures six years
late'r
far
more
on existing practice than any
revolutionary innovation
in
Hampden, a
married, and whose
Bampton
gained for him such an equivocal
notoriety, to give the College lectures in their place.
The
truth
colleges
little
— Dr.
be somewhat arbitrary
in his exercise of
whom
snubbing severely, as Dr. stance,
may
serve
method of procedure. Nov.
10,
asked a
1841,
Mr.
Newman
words
if
in the it.
to
he was
by
habit of
A
circum-
after this affair of
exemplify his peremptory
Mr. Hope, dated
In a letter to
Newman
man why he was
first
liked, especially
much
to
and
it,
he was
which occurred some ten years
the tutorships,
heads of
Hawkins was always apt
was feared rather than
his undergraduates,
— and
than autocrats before the
less
University Commission
respected, he
power lasted
that while his
is
were
says:
"Our
Provost has
not at Chapel on Nov.
5,
and
because he did not like the State Service has said he will 1
not give him testimonials for orders."
Memoir of
J. R.
Hope
Scott, vol.
i.
p.
31
5-
^
To
give a
Those who have denunciations,
ever heard the 5 Nov. Service—with its' reiterated " the hellish malice of Popish conspirators," in prayer after prayer, of and "all su:h workers of iniquity as turn religion into rebellion and often have myself) faith into faction "—read in church or chapel (as I
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
38o
same temper, which occurred some
fresh illustration of the
twelve years later
whom
he had
^
reason to
Community,
Irvingite
He
closely
belonging to the
suspect of
on the Provost before the
called
fellowship examinations to put date.
from another College,
Scholar
a
:
down
his
name
as a candi-
proceeded at once to cross-question his
on
his
religious
and
opinions,
spite
in
visitor
of
his
assurance that he was prepared ex animo to subscribe the
39 Articles, and was a regular attendant at the Chapel Services and "
You may
believe
Communions, he refused believe
a good
all
we
do,"
and
more,
deal
to allow
him
he observed, won't
that
"
to stand.
but you
do."
The
Provost had the absolute power of refusing permission to stand, and die
would of course have been authorized and
even bound at that time to reject a candidate who declined to subscribe the
Anglican formularies
;
but
it
was a very
arbitrary exercise of his official rights to go behind the
declaration of one
and
in fact
who
professed himself ready to comply,
did comply, with
all
the statutable requirements
of the University in the matter.
On
another occasion he
displayed the same animus in a characteristic but amusing his own College, of excellent who had therefore felt unable to honours. The Provost knew this well,
manner towards a member of abilities
go
in
but feeble health,
for classical
but did not choose to recognise the plea, and accordingly
took occasion one day at his own dinner-table, after the schools were over, but will appreciate the justice
the Provost to have been
— as
he had forgotten
and propriety
— as
—before
the
of this refusal, even supposing
he probably was not
—within his statut-
able rights. ^
This circumstance came directly under
at Balliol, the victim
my own
being a fellow-Scholar of mine.
cognisance,
when
THE LATE PROVOST OF was announced,
result
is
to ask the offender
not yet out,
spite
in
that,
of manner, his
way
reply,
addressing undergraduates, ;
and
there was someas
it,
may
be said mutatis mutandis of his style of reading
prayers and preaching in the College Chapel.
very tolerant of deflections his
and of
a certain old-world courtesy
of
of
thing cold, incisive, and at times sarcastic about also
class
There were other
was not conciliatory
especially freshmen,
he
class
The
which need not be repeated here,
stories current in Oriel,
showing
" ;
was the appropriate
sir,"
course there was no more to be said.
381
what
This time he found his match
had taken. list
ORIEL.
own somewhat first
or
Nor was he
those under his control from
rigid standard of practice
in matters academical
double
in
religious.
He
and opinion
was himself a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; there were only two schools in that day â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and
one of his theories, not generally accepted, was that any-
body who took
classical
might
also, if
he pleased, take
mathematical honours, as the study of mathematics would supply the requisite relaxation reading.
and an
It
was more from
for the
mind from
critical distrust
of
instinctive dislike of enthusiasm, than
classical
new
what
special reverence for the past, that, without being
commonly
called narrow-minded,
he was
ideas
from any is
in all his feelings
Ne
and habits of thought cautiously conservative.
quid
nimis was a principle deeply ingrained in his moral and
Those
acquainted with
him
will
intellectual
nature.
recollect, as
an instance rather of his courtesy than of the
exactness Dr.
Newman
ascribes to him, that, at whatever
hour they happened to meet him
was eleven o'clock morning, Mr.
in the street,
though
at night, he never failed to say " ,"
as he lifted his cap in passing.
it
Good
AND BIOGRAPHY.
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
382
That a man thus minded would have quite as Httle sympathy with the complete transformation which has passed over Oxford
life
during the
last
quarter of a century
movement which
as with the great religious
agitated
depths during the quarter of a century before,
its
It is not
readily understood.
and
clerical restrictions
merely that
all
to
it
be
will
religious tests
have been swept away, though that
a reform Dr. Hawkins could not be expected to approve.
is
But other changes, which perhaps cut
made
whether better or worse there at least radically different
of 1850.
So vast indeed
to realise
its
lifetime,
is
no need here to
discuss,
but
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; from the Oxford of 1828 or even the revolution that
is
it is
difficult
having come to pass, not only within a single
but during the
When
College.
deeper, have
still
to-day a totally different place
the Oxford of
official rule
of the
same Head of a
Hawkins became Provost the
Dr.
first
had not yet
of the Tractarian controversy
faint whispers
been heard, and the great leader of the movement, which
was so powerfully
known only promise still
and
when
as
to affect both
an active
Evangelical
that
Oxford and England, was
College tutor of intellectual opinions.
He
was
Provost
movement was succeeded by another
of
a very different kind which, through the instrumentality of three successive
Commissions, has revolutionized the
whole discipline and of teaching
remodelled, and a versity
has
life
of Oxford.
and of examination
in
new
various
professoriate
ways
The system both been
has
been
created
completely ;
Uni-
the
developed
at
the
expense of the Colleges, and a new element independent of
Colleges
tached,"
altogether,
called
or
in
recalled
the into
person
of
the
"
unat-
academical existence,
THE LATE PROVOST OF which had
its
383
place indeed in mediseval Oxford, but has
been unknown there for the
last
government and mutual
internal
ORIEL.
three
centuries
;
the
relations of the Colleges
each other have undergone important modifications,
to
much
while they have lost or are losing of character and
viduality
de
esprit
of their old indi-
corps,
through the
introduction of married Fellows and other causes, the
which yet remains to be worked
result of
changes the
late
Provost lived to witness, and
them he was
ing out of the greater part of
an
active,
full
All these
out.
in the carry-
called to take
though often perhaps an unwilling,
And
part.
ominous signs had already become manifest,
the
first
his
withdrawal from Oxford, but before his death, of a
after
yet more startling and sweeping revolution, not only
academic but social
life
in
reproduce in sober earnest on the banks of the the
Cam
dowagers
the poet's satiric for deans,
dream
and sweet
Isis
would make
them, whereas
it
"
and
of " prudes for proctors,
girl
graduates
;
but with
"
a view the precise opposite of the Princess Ida's, "
in
England, which threatens to
who
death for any male thing but to peep at
mixed education,"
would have shuddered
at, is
now
in a sense
"
our fathers
the central aim.^
What
Provost Hawkins would have thought of such a programme not difficult to conceive.
it is
later
years was inclined to Oriel
illustrious "
He
probably too during his
fear,
phalanx who
with the
still
of that
last
survives
Phaeton had got into the chariot of the sun
him, that " ;
but so
an English dean, wiser in his generation than has recently advocated the right of women to enter the Christian ministry and to preach whether they are also to administer 1
It is
significant that
St. Paul,
;
Sacraments
is
not yet explained.
384
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
long as health and strength remained to him for the
— and he was eighty—he acquiesced calmly,
administration of his Collegiate office five if
before he dropped the reins
not cheerfully, in the
new
of things, which
condition
reduced the Provost from almost an autocrat into
more than primus one of
inter pares.
It
little
was a trying ordeal
for
temperament and antecedents, and we have the
his
who knew him
testimony of those
years at Oxford that he bore the
best during those latter trial well.
may
It
even
have served to evoke and strengthen those nobler elements of his nature, which had not always been so manifest on the surface, but which in earlier days had attracted, as
Cardinal
Newman
last survivor,
He was
assures us, his hearty love.
the
not only of a generation, but of a class which
For the Heads of Houses, as he had
has passed away.
known them, were a
class
who dwelt
apart, like the deni-
zens of the Homeric Olympus, in an awful solitude, and
wielded a power that could not easily be reckoned with or restrained. all
could
—that they them
It
would be a
be said of a
it
" lay
libel to
man
and somewhat
cum
though
leisure,
—
dignitate,
it
frigid
grandeur, an
was often a learned
which seemed to belong to a bygone day.
events, whether
we
regret
it
charm,
sentative
familiar, is
laid
many
still
in
and which was not without
extinct in
was
to
modern Oxford. his
At
all
or not, that peculiar type of
academical dignity, with which
were once
least of
Hawkins
beside their nectar," but there was about
as a class a stately
air of otiiim
its
say of them
so energetic as Dr.
rest,
on
one
middle its
life
merits or
Its last repre-
of the closing
days of November, 1882, under the shadow of Rochester Cathedral.
XLII.
ARCHBISHOP It has been
said,
and said
TAIT.
truly, that
Archbishop Tait,
though not a great theologian, or a great statesman, or
And
a great bishop, was yet a great man. that he has really than all
left his
mark on
is
other respects was sufficiently unlike him.
him by a
more
who somewhat of "the old is
It
in
cannot
commendation bestowed on
writer in the Quarterly
Ritualists,"
also true
any primate since the time of Laud, who
therefore be objected that the
if
it
the Church of England
Review {^or January
1883),
ostentatiously posed as the representative
High Church too high
;
Party,"
as
"opposed
to the
but his panegyrist praises him,
not too well, not too wisely either
;
his least estimable
peculiarities are exalted into virtues, while his real merits
are to a large extent overlooked.
Both
in
matters great
and small the reviewer seems to have misconceived the character and aims of the late Archbishop. his line of action nor of
pupil of Arnold in
any more
"
Neither in
thought can he be called "the
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; and he was of course not Arnold's pupil except sense â&#x20AC;&#x201D; nor can he be
literal
in
said,
the most vague and general way, to have been engaged in "carrying into effect the spirit of Arnold's life."
He
was indeed a warm admirer of Arnold, but a paper he c c
386
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
contributed shortly before his death to Maanillau shows
how
entirely he
range
of
was, was always
humorous
which, considerable
influence,
purely
as one of his
select
the
had miscalculated both the nature and
Arnold's
personal.
It
"
distinctive excellences
aspect
any
of
as
it
odd again to
is
an eye for
which
situation,"
the
reviewer no less oddly holds to be eminently the privilege
of Scotchmen,
apparently
forgetful
of
a
familiar
proverb on the subject, which points quite the other
way
;
that he " did not exhibit," and did not possess, " the high logical
race
and speculative power characteristic of the Scottish
" is
perfectly true, as also that he did possess a tact
and strong common sense which might often stand him out, in
of several
spite
for practical purposes
in better stead.
rather
too
The
article
studied
through-
disclaimers,
betrays a manifest tendency to represent the suppression of Ritualism as the crowning aim and glory of his episco-
pate and primacy, and to slur over or minimize the virtual
acknowledgment he made, with
characteristic
candour and
generosity, on his death-bed, that in the legislative action
which he had promoted with that view some years before
he had
fallen
strange,
by the by,
into a serious after
mistake.
however indiscreetly published, Wilbeiforce,
say that
to
It
sounds rather
the revelations on
"Mr.
in
the
the subject,
Life of
Disraeli,
in
Bishop Tait, who had been a decided Liberal
Bishop
nominating in politics (to
the primacy), set an honourable example of subordinating political to religious considerations in ecclesiastical appoint-
ments."
That
is
precisely what,
if
we may
trust
Wilberforce's testimony, he would not have done
been allowed his own way
in the matter,
if
Bishop he had
and certainly was
ARCHBISHOP not in the habit of doing.
On
TAIT.
3S7
one point, however,
pleasant to be able to agree with the reviewer,
speaks of the universal
and profound at large,"
regret,
"
it
is
when he
expression of admiration, affection,
on the part of the Church and nation
evoked by the death of the
the tribute was not undeserved.
late
Primate
;
and
In the main, and putting
aside the silly sneer at the party which
the writer, the following statement
is
is
the bete noir of
a just one
:
By common
consent, not excluding that of the narrow alone expressed any hostile feelings towards him, he asserted the influence and dignity of the great office with which he was entrusted, with a success which few of his predecessors, and none of his immediate predecessors, had attained. They had, indeed, all been men of beautiful personal character, of mild wisdom, and of laborious devotion to their duties. But Archbishop Tait added to all these excellences, by a touch like that of genius, something which at once raised the office to a higher point of influence. He was felt not merely to be the official head of the Church, but to be the true representative of the Church to the nation at large. He was a leader as well as a ruler; and the Church in his person exerted an influence which awakened a friendly response from every class of his countrymen, whether members of its communion or not. He was not merely a living power himself; he made his office a living power, and animated it with a new spirit. ch'que
who
But the chief
interest of the article
which the writer
and certainly
was the not at
lies
fails to
answer at
all
secret of this remarkable achievement
all
had been,
}
;
"
"
What It
did
events consist in the alleged fact that "Arch-
which he was translated the
to answer,
to the purpose
bishop Tait had been almost a Primate
for, in
in a question
asks, but scarcely attempts
first
"
in
the post from
窶馬amely, the bishopric of London
place, this
is
not a fact
;
and secondly,
;
if it
so far from explaining his subsequent influence, C C 2
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AxND BIOGRAPHY.
388
it
would
itself
Laud, during
explanation.
require
tenure of the see of London, was
"
almost Primate
the feeble rule of Abbot, and there
is
who during Bishop
and indeed during the
Tait's
But the only
it.
episcopate at London,
earlier years of his archiepiscopate,
could with any accuracy be called
And
Bishop Wilberforce.
"
excellent authority for saying that,
to the
in
preparing the
his
Archbishop
for
any
when
letters
it.
was
be
it
There
is
credit
the late
volume of the
first
"
almost Primate
nobody, to
spoken, was readier than himself to admit
Ashwell,
his
under
quite enough in his
character and antecedents to account for
person
"
Canon
Life, applied
he might have of Bishop
Wilberforce's, promising of course to publish nothing with-
make
out his sanction, the answer was a free permission to
any use of the correspondence he pleased, coupled with the observation, "
I
wish
it
who was
to be clearly understood
the true primate of the Church of England while Bishop
Wilberforce lived."
The
reply illustrates a side of the late
Archbishop's character, not perhaps always as fully recognised as
it
impress
all
deserved to be, but which could not
who were brought
fail
to
into personal contact with
him, and must have had something to do with the universal
and confidence he
respect
somewhat
stern exterior
Under a
inspired.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; more
commonly
the Scotch temperament than a sense of cealed a
from
cold
and
associated with
humour
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;he
con-
warmth and generosity of heart, the more admirable
his lack of imaginative
course more natural to
men
power
;
for
sympathy
of a lively imagination,
is
of
who
can readily enter into a state of mind different from their
own.
His friendships were warm and constant
nothiner has been heard of his enmities.
Two
;
little
or
of his old
ARCHBISHOP Oxford
whose
friends,
TAIT.
389
he not only did
religious opinions
not agree with, but could hardly even understand religious
sentiment was very
type,
was natural from
as
Roman
Catholics
;
much
of the
early
his
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; for his
Presbyterian
training
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; became
but neither their change of communion,
nor his own subsequent elevation to high ecclesiastical
any interruption of friendship or friendly
dignity, led to
intercourse between them.
of
mind
in his
that he
was due
It
own Church, even when
harmony with
to the
same habit
had a sincere respect and love of goodness
his
it
took a shape quite out of
And
personal convictions.
hence, in
spite of the trenchant denunciations of Ritualism
his
London and Canterbury Charges,
much
refers with so
and more than
knew
satisfaction,
great Gospel truths
No
"
would
say,
in
whom
acknowledged, bishop and
to
in
for the souls
prosecution was ever,
Mr. Mackonochie,
it
is
said,
London
for one, has publicly
terms honourable alike to the Arch-
himself, the
kindness and sympathy he
always received from him as his diocesan. possible for
he
preaching " the
instituted with his sanction in the diocese either of
or of Canterbury.
in
he was throughout tolerant,
and earnestly labouring
Ritualist
both
which the reviewer
tolerant, of individual Ritualists,
to be zealous, as he
of men.
to
any one brought
Nor was
it
into intimate relations with
him, whether agreeing or not with his opinions, to doubt the reality of his piety.
On
the other hand, he had a
breadth of view and discernment of the vast possibilities of his high prelates,
office,
which
is
not
common
of late
among Anglican
indicated in a remarkable passage the
reviewer cites from his last Charge in London, but was far
more prominently shown
after his
translation to the
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY
390
primacy
who
and he was probably the
;
did not think his dignity
first
Bishop of London
compromised by going to
preach to the religious pariahs of his huge diocese in an
omnibus yard
:
How
Church of England, and far is the national especially the Church of this Diocese, fulfilling the work which Christ has committed to it, and how are we each The national Church and of us fulfilling our own part ? the Church of this Diocese for, indeed, it is as difficult to separate the two as it is to separate the diocese from its particular parishes, and the parishes from those who London, above all other dioceses, imist be minister in them. indissolubly connected ivith the luJiole national CJmrcJi. do not ignore those powerful elements of the softening
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
We
nor influences of country life, not found among ourselves the effect of the position, so different from ours, in which nor the vast the country Clergy stand to their flocks power of University life, moulding the thoughts of our But still London is the centre to London rising youth. flows yearly, in a steady tide, a large body of persons of all from London the stream of classes from every county ;
;
:
:
influence,
however unobserved,
sets in irresistibly,
through
newspapers, books, letters, the converse of friends, to hall, parsonage, farmhouse, and cottage, in the remotest country If we in London are faithless, all England suffers. London could but become the really Christian centre of the nation, how would our national Christianity grow
districts.
If
!
One
sentence
is
here italicized,
by way both
contrast.
London
as in one sense the centre of the
If
of emphasis
Bishop Tait regarded the see of
and of
life
of the National
Church, he learnt afterwards to regard the see of Canter-
bury as the centre of a first
still
wider organization.
From
the
he had insisted that the Primate required the aid of
a Suffragan, because of his immense correspondence from all
parts of the world, and " the care of
in
communion with
all
the Churches
"
the see of Canterbury, which was in
ARCHBISHOP some
sort
compare
kid upon him
his
would be
it
;
TAIT.
391
curious, indeed, to
language on the subject with that of some of
the most eminent of the early and mediaeval Popes.
would
be too much to say that there was about
it
ception
of his
primatial
office
a
Nor
his con-
Hildebrandine
certain
element, in the best sense of the term, in spite of his entire
The Archbishop
absence of sympathy with mediaevalism.
of Canterbury has sometimes been designated, whether in
Papa, but until the
jest or earnest, alteruis orbis
when an Anglican
century,
be formed, such a
anyhow
title
could have
little
certain that, although the phrase
occurred to him. Archbishop Tait was the situation, with it is
what looks
meaning.
may
It
his
is
never have to seize the
first
And
an intuition of genius.
like
more remarkable, considering
the
last half-
Colonial episcopate began to
somewhat Pres-
byterian type of mind, that he should have been so forward,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;that was not at
not indeed to magnify himself
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;but
to
magnify
his office.
was most emphatically
This estimate of
when,
proclaimed
addressed " from the chair of
St.
Augustine
all his
its
way
grandeur
in
1878,
" in his
he
metro-
politan Cathedral the prelates assembled from
all
the world in the second Pananglican Conference,
who found,
as
the Church
Quarterly expressed
it
parts of
at the time, their
" natural Patriarchate at Canterbury." It is
not intended here to offer any complete reply to
the question which the Quarterly Review leaves unanswered, as to the secret of Archbishop Tait's extensive influence.
Nor would
how
it
it
came
logian, or a
indeed be easy to define with any precision to pass that one,
who was
not a learned theo-
deep thinker, or a born ruler of men, conciliated
to himself in his lifetime so general a
homage from
different
392
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY
Church of England and from some outside
parties in the its pale,
was
as
AND BIOGRAPHY.
testified
by an exceptional unanimity
the effort to pay honour to his memory.
weak
points in his character and
He
admirers would deny.
in
That there were few of his
his policy
never understood the importance
of dogma, and was thus quite incapable of appreciating the value of such a document
e.
g. as the
Athanasian Creed, of
which another Broad Church prelate of more philosophical mind, Bishop Cotton of Calcutta, had learnt to form a juster estimate.
was due
It
insight, not to
any
to the
same
of intellectual
defect
intentional unfairness,
still
less to .any
personal jealousies or caprice, that his whole view of the
Oxford movement, which he expounded mentioned
The paper
and inexact.
nobility of his nature, discussion. for the
in
an
article
already
Macmillaits Magazine, was both superficial
in
reveals throughout at once the
and
his inaptitude for speculative
His notion that the Tractarians are responsible
scepticism of
modern Oxford
—which
foresaw, and did their best to guard against
they alone
— and
that
it
might have been averted by a wider acceptance of Dr. Arnold's " reasonable and large-hearted system of Christian teaching"
—when
characteristic.
in fact
he had no system at
It is perfectly true that
charged with being himself a sceptic, or scepticism,"
to the
—
"
is
curiously
is
unjustly
the father of
but the notorious scepticism of some of his
leading disciples to his entire
all
Arnold
not unjustly attributed,
is
in
part at least,
want of any theological system.
Archbishop
;
— many, no doubt,
in the
To
return
words of the
Quarterly reviewer, did not consider " that he duly appreciated the importance of the Apostolic organization which
the
Church of England
inherits,
or the extent to which
ARCHBISHOP her just claims on
TAIT.
the nation
393
But the conviction was shared
direction.
disagreed with him
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;by
has taken a prominent part
in
Scripture phrase,
episcopal
They felt "a good man and a career,
He was office,
mean
or petty or
he was,
that
in
In spite of
just."
chiefly in the earlier period
which he would probably have
afterwards himself acknowledged and
generous
for organizing
Church as he under-
aims.
some conspicuous mistakes, of his
by men of
Dean Stanley â&#x20AC;&#x201D; that he
at heart the best interests of his
his
alike
movement
stood them, and that there was nothing personal about
a contrary
Archdeacon Denison, who
the
a memorial fund, no less than by
had
it."
in
by those who agreed and those
the most opposite schools,
who
upon
founded
are
Others thought he did not go far enough
in his estimates of his clergy
deplored, he was
and of
their work.
men who are made great by their who make their office great and
not one of those
but one of those
;
the dignity of a grand position, too often feebly sustained,
has undoubtedly been enhanced
much
to recover for
it
in
his hands.
He
did
the influence and prestige which had
been seriously compromised by the otiose incompetence, diversified
by some
rather ludicrous blunders, of his penul-
timate predecessor. charities,
He was more
and nobly upheld the
than
liberal
be admitted on
all
sides.
While
it
is
analyse more exactly the secret of his power, true that he
had
in
intellectual greatness.
his
LamThus much
beth for a dignified and gracious hospitality. will
in
traditional repute of
difficult it
to
remains
him the elements both of moral and
XLIII.
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS. The death
of
Dean
Close, in
December
exactly the last of the Evangelicals lives
and reigns
at Liverpool
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; for
1882,
removed not
Bishop Ryle
still
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; but the last surviving patriarch
of the old Evangelical party.
When we
reflect that Dr.
Close was born before the end of the last century, and took his degree in
1820 at Cambridge, where he was the con-
temporary of Thirlwall, Hare, and Whevvell, and a ciple of
Simeon,
it
will
dis-
be perceived at once that he lived to
witness the triumph and the decline of what in his earlier
years was the rising, and became afterwards for a time the
dominant, party origin
ment destined old
in the
Church of England,
and gradual increase of the great to supersede
it.
When
High Church party was supposed
as well as the
religious
move-
he was ordained, the to be in
its
dotage
;
a leading bishop of the day was credibly reported to have said he could count its
most
on
his fingers the
distinctive tenet.
in fact to
men who
believed in
High Churchmanship had come
be generally looked upon as
little
else than a
negative protest against " Methodism," which loved ortho-
doxy
less
than
it
hated enthusiasm, and cared more for
port wine than for either the future Tractarian or
surmise.
And
its
school
hatreds or
its
loves, while of
there was as yet
yet Dr. Close outlived
no sign
one venerable
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS. leader of the movement,
had so long and so had once taken a survives
him
as an octogenarian Cardinal,
It is in truth
it
inevitably suggests, rather than in
life is
own
to
career, that
preacher, and
is
his reputation
as a leading Evangelical
said to have ruled the
Mr, Clough, when Tutor of
town with a rod of
Oriel,
used to
illustrate
a passage in the Clouds of Aristophanes by the pairs
He
be sought.
above thirty years the incumbent of Cheltenham,
where he gained
iron.
who
in its guidance,
special significance attaching to his
for
Church he
more prominent part
the main interest of Dr. Close's
was
months
three
regrets of the
faithfully served, while another,
still
in the historical review
any
who passed away
him amid the universal
before
395
of slippers," which Dr. Close was said
aimually from his female devotees.
"
1700
to receive
It is curious that
one
of his Evangelical colleagues at Cheltenham, the late Dr.
Boyd, there
like himself, is
gelical preacher
wrong
became a dean
;
curious, because,
if
one position more than another where an Evan-
would seem to be the wrong man
place, that position
is
a deanery.
One
in the
naturally
associates with the idea of a Cathedral a stately edifice,
solemn
ritual,
choral worship, and frequent services, and
these are precisely the things against which Evangelicalism
has raised a constant and angry protest. Close's
One
most famous sermons bore the ominous
of Dr, title
of
Restoration of Churches the Restoration of Popery, and yet
nearly
all
our old English Cathedralsâ&#x20AC;&#x201D; not indeed includ-
ing that over which he was afterwards called to preside
have undergone during the process of restoration. fate
when
it fell
apologist for the
to "
It
last
few decades
this
Popish
looked like a kind of irony of
Dean Boyd's
lot to figure as
idolatrous " images in the
the
official
new Exeter
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
396
reredos,
which a more consistent representative of
had vainly
striven to abolish.
It is
his party-
not recorded that any
such incongruous task devolved on Dean Close, or indeed that the twenty-five years of dignified repose, which
"merry
Carlisle,"
at
were otherwise signalized than by
his
secured
post
"
adding to his lifelong denunciations of Ritualism, and Rationalism," a fresh and pic against " those twin vampires of
The nave and
and tobacco."
Tractarianism,
still
human
for
fiercer philip-
existence, beer
be
Dean Close was hardly them, even
to rebuild
Nor was
feasible.
ments, for which
the
Common-
it
likely that
Cathedral
other respects, he
by
and Bishops Reco7'd,
man
undertake
to
the choral arrange-
had in
not his
the task
left
before been
hands
;
in that,
of reform to his
But Lord Palmerston's premiership was
successors.
tinguished
the
supposing such an enterprise to
remarkable, would specially prosper as in
were
cloisters of Carlisle
destroyed by the Puritans during the wars of the wealth, and
Lord
him
the
Palmerston's bestowal of
a wholesale
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; a circumstance
when
dis-
promotion of Evangelical deans
after his death
remembered
for
good by the
some advocatus diaboli thought
proper, with questionable taste, to raise a discussion in
its
columns as to the religious character and "eternal prospects
"
of their patron.
McNeile,
And
who passed away
Dr. Close and
Dr.
Hugh
before him, were the two most
conspicuous, and therefore most conspicuously misplaced,
among
the Palmerstonian Deans.
It is difficult
for the present generation to realise the
Evangelicalism of
fifty
or sixty years ago.
It
has been
photographed, or rather daguerrotyped, with the touch of
a keen,
if
by no means sympathetic, observer
Reminiscences
;
in
Mozley's
and thousands of readers probably have
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS.
397
sighed or smiled over his typical portrait of the Evangelical
Vicar of St. Werburgh's, Derby, who villa,
" resided in a pretty
surrounded by extensive grounds, out of his parish,
was never seen
and a good step out of the town
"
parish except on Sundays, and "
knew
of his
parishioners
;
;
"
while he
"
tradesman of the strongest and
deputed to a wealthy
bitterest Evangelical prin-
who
the selection of his curates,"
ciples
their vicar, "
in his
absolutely nothing
preached, like
nothing more than the coarse blasphemies of
the market-place put into longer words and
strung into
sentences," and were never supposed to let " their tone falter into
mercy and
That
grace."
is
one side of the picture,
and no doubt Mr. Mozley may be trusted of his personal recollections to
which ought
it,
ever they
may
their origin
;
but there
in fairness to
be kept
accuracy
for the
also another side
is
in
What-
mind.
have afterwards become, the Evangelicals
were the
religious party of the day,
according to their lights, to revive a
spirit
who
in
strove,
of devotion
in
a
cold and apathetic age, and in certain respects their position
may
be compared mutatis mutandis
would have of the
on
modern
itself
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; though
Dr. Close
recoiled in horror from the suggestion
Each party
Ritualists.
in turn
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; to that
has drawn
not only the rancorous abuse of theological oppo-
nents, but the
still
more indiscriminate and
censure of a class of
critics,
whose one
often calumnious
maxim
religious
is
shun the danger of being righteous overmuch, and who mentally translate the old saying that the cowl does not
to
make
the
monk
into
religious professors,
if
the
to be hypocrites at bottom.
of this generation
who
never heard
who
of,
portentous aphorism that
you scratch the There
ever read,
a tale
surface, will
are,
all
be found
perhaps, not
many
and there may be some
which had a great run
in its
day,
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
398
by Mrs. Trollope, mother of the brilHant novehst whose England was not long ago deploring, published
loss all
about half a century ago under the WrcxJdll.
It
title
of The Vicar of
was almost avowedly designed as a caricature
of a well-known Evangelical clergyman of the day, not free
indeed from some of the
little
weaknesses of his school, who
has long since gone to his rest justly honoured by
knew
him, and
authoress
— who
whom
all
who
impossible to believe that the
it is
had herself known him well
— can
and sanctimonious
really identified with the coarse
have villain
However, the book was
depicted as the hero of her story.
intended, and accepted at the time, as at worst a perfectly legitimate
caricature, t)y
Evangelicals designate
observe
how
strikingly
"
that
section
its
tone
is
of society which
And
the world."
it
spite of the utter unlikeness of all the details,
and olTensive entitled
anti-Ritualist novel published
Under
ivJdch
Lord
?
The
curious to
is
recalled to
memory,
some years
Ritualistic vicar
like his predecessor of Wrexhill, represented as a
swindler and
profligate
silly
is
ago, not,
downright
— that the present day would — but each alike a monster of in
hardly have been tolerated spiritual
in
by a stupid
is
pride and oleaginous hypocrisy, leading captive
women, whom
into his net
;
for his
and each
own
selfish
alike too
purposes he entices
reproached, though of
is
course for very opposite reasons, with unfaithfulness to his
own Church.
The
Evangelicals were not really to blame
for raising a higher standard
of devotion in a singularly
worldly and apathetic age, nor even exactly putable " simplicity" or " scantiness as
"
for the indis-
of the message which,
Mr. Mozley justly complains, comprised their very
defective
and arbitrary summary of Scripture teaching, but
because,
when
its
meagreness and inadequacy had been
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS. demonstrated, they persistently refused correct their inumpsimiis.
abandon
to
by
faith
might or might not be
personal assurance truths
Justification
—we are not concerned
399
or
only and
theological
with that question here
—but
a doctrine which came to be virtually embodied in the "
popular doggerel,
was
death," '^
As
Doing, deadly doing, doing ends
clearly
shown
to
in
be a practical falsehood.
to the effect of this preaching repeated
Sunday
after
Sunday," says Mr. Mozley, speaking from his own experience, "
was
it
was simply none.
.
.
.
As
often as not everybody
asleep, except a few too stupid to
or quite asleep.
be ever quite awake
The sermon was bnitum fuhneiiy
And
hence the sceptre gradually passed from the grasp of the
who had
Evangelical school to those only, but
studied not Scripture
Church history and human nature, more deeply
than their teachers. to say that a
Or
it
would perhaps be more correct
change passed over the
spirit
of the party,
viewed not as a religious system but as a body of living men,
— Mr.
for with
only two exceptions
Williams
— every one of the Tractarian leaders, and without
Keble and Mr. Isaac
an exception every single leading convert, had been brought
up an Evangelical
;
and the same might be said of many
who are prominent among the Ritualists of our own From the standpoint of their rivals, the collapse Evangelical Christianity
movement was is
summed up
day. of the
explicable enough, for whereas
in Scripture
under the attributes
of grace and truth, Evangelicalism ignored or rejected the ecclesiastical authority of faith
of grace, and therefore
it
and the sacramental channels
only needed the lapse of time to
exhibit the radical defects of the system.
divergence of those
e.g.
The
startling
between the career of Mr. Wilberforce and
who were
trained under his roof, but were after-
400
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY "
wards
and wide," might be considered
scattered far
once the reality of his
illustrate at
Be
of his creed. refuse his
that as
cold indifferentism of the
"
and the
religious
to
deficiencies
man can
rise in a reaction
well
from the
sceaihan rationalisticiim'' which
had Cornwallis and Hoadley is
faith
may, no
it
sympathy to what took
Something
AND BIOGRAPHY.
for its representative prelates.
due to the piety which roused
such a
itself at
period of spiritual stagnation to form the Church Mission-
arySociety and abolish the Slave Trade, and whose
earliest
was not directed against any form of Catholic
protest
principle, but against a negation of all Christian principle,
whether of
faith or
Wesleyanism had been cast out
life.
much
the Establishment, not so it
was legitimately chargeable
intolerable to " a
for the errors
as for the moral earnestness
Church dying of dignity/'
as
most zealous champions afterwards confessed gelicalism succeeded in
Where
pale.
it
failed
making good
was
of
with which
its
;
some of
its
but Evan-
footing within the
at a subsequent stage,
negative and antagonistic elements became, in
determining characteristics of the school.
when the fact,
the
The diminutive
washing-stand, which served as a font, wheeled into the darkest corner of the church, or the tiny slop-basin, placed
on "the communion-table," when required old font
was perhaps relegated
garden
the table
;
and concealed descended less,"
itself,
behind
for use, while the
to uses vile in the vicarage
covered with a worm-eaten cloth,
hideous three-decker which
the
in stories, " small
by degrees and
beautifully
from preacher to parson, and from parson to
and sometimes used as a receptacle tiguous sitters
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; kneeling
phenomena outraged of religious reverence.
was out of fashion then
alike
all
And
clerk,
for the hats of con;
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; such
sense of aesthetic fitness and
the teaching
became gradually
DEAN CLOSE AND THE EVANGELICALS. as
meagre and negative
as the ritual.
Much
401
of the earher
movement had been drained off into Tractarian and much of its intelligence was merged in the
zeal of the
channels,
Broad Church theology which consistent
"
Recordites," like
The residuum
the late Dr. Close, abhorred.
presented the
ungracious appearance of a party clinging to the letter but
unmindful of the
maintain
of
spirit
invective, but feeble in
popularity, not so
its
to the standard of the world its
;
;
loud in
desperately striving to
much by
raising the world
by accommodating the Gospel
to the level of the Gospel as
fervour of
traditionary past
its
argument
;
which had
lost
the original
preaching, without reforming the coldness of
its
worship, and would fain compensate for the poverty of
its
theology by the narrow exclusiveness of
creed.
its
This
was the spectacle presented as time went on to external observers by the party, which had thriven under neglect
and persecution, but proved unequal
to the subtler trial of
prosperity and the fatal temptation to persecute in It
its
turn.
triumphed, when struggling to vindicate the powers of a
paralysed Christianity arrest
it
;
failed in the suicidal effort to
a larger movement, springing from
vindication of the
Church.
It
is
rights
midst, in
its
and functions of the Christian
a far cry from William Wilberforce and
"
Fletcher of Madeley
"
the three aggrieved
"
" in
to the
Church Association, and
buckram.
to reopen the discussion raised
There
is
no need now
by Dean Close himself
in
the Times a year or two before his death, whether the It is quite
Evangelical party as such has ceased to exist. certain that
has ceased to dominate, and that
abundant
plied
and
it
"
it
has sup-
" recruits to the rival forces of " Ritualism
Rationalism
",
against which
he made
it
his
life's
ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY.
403
business to contend.
If
it
be true that
"
he was the Pope
of Cheltenham, with pontifical prerogatives from which the
temporal had not been severed," there can be no sort of
doubt that
in the
absolutism of that Protestant pontificate,
neither at -Cheltenham nor elsewhere, has he any success-
He was
ors.
he was the
not exactly " the last of the Mohicans," but
last surviving representative of
Broad Church
as yet
was
own on equal terms
Few men resistance
not,
and when
against
to
High Church
their
in their early career
it
;
Tractarianism than the great prelate
must have been a
reflection to
rivals.
took a more active part
preceded Dr. Close by a fortnight grave
an age when
his party held their
him
in his last
in his
in
who
passage to the
painful, if not instructive,
hours on earth, that Archbishop
Tait had laboured almost with his dying breath to reconcile
the feuds he had once
deemed
There could hardly have been a more
to be irreconcilable. significant
ment, not perhaps that the Evangelical party
announceis
extinct,
but that the cause, which Dean Close had learnt virtually to identify with the Gospel, has past.
needed
Evangelicalism did ;
the grand
its
become a thing of the
work when that work was
mistake of
its
inability to understand that others
labours and their task was done.
THE END.
professors
had entered
was
their
into their
BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
THE
DOCTRINE
CATHOLIC
ATONEMENT; An
Historical Review.
on the Principle of Theological Developments. 8vo.
THE
OF
With an Introduction Third Edition.
14s.
THE FIRST AGE OF CHRISTIANITY CHURCH.
from the German of J. DOLLINGER, D.D., D.C.L. Third Edition. 2 vols. 8vo.
1
Translated
and the von
I.
Crown
8s.
CATHOLIC ESCHATOLOGY AND UNIVERAn
SALISM.
Second Edition.
POEMS.
Essay on the Doctrine of Future Retribution. Revised and Enlarged. Crown 8vo. 7s. 6d.
Crown
Third Edition.
London: W. H.
ALLEN &
CO.,
8vo.
3s. 6d.
Waterloo Place, S.W.
13,
LECTURES ON THE RE-UNION OF THE CHURCHES. J.
Translated, with Preface, from the
L VON DOLLINGER,
1
87 1.
Crown
Svo.
German
of
5s.
OF OBER-AMMERGAU
RECOLLECTIONS IN
Crown
D.D., D.C.L.
3s. 6d.
Svo.
AN EIRENICON OF THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY.
Proposal for Catholic Communion. By a Minister New Edition, with Introduction,
Church of England. Notes, and Appendices. 8vo.
of the
los. 6d.
RIVINGTONS, London, Oxford, and Cambridge.
HISTORY OF THE COUNCILS OF THE CHURCH,
Vol.
II.
Hefele, D.D., Bishop
Translated
from the
of Rottenburg.
Edinburgh
:
T.
&
T.
Svo.
German
of
C
J.
12s.
CLARK.
MORAL AND RELIGIOUS ESTIMATE OF VIVISECTION. London
:
Svo.
6d.
JOHN HODGES,
24,
King William
Street, Strand.
II,
Henrietta Street, Covent Garden,
JV.C.
{Late 193, Piccadilly, W.)
March,
18S4.
CATALOGUE OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
CHAPMAN
& HALL,
LIMITED. INCLUDING
DRAWING EXAMPLES, DIAGRAMS, MODELS, INSTRUMENTS, ETC. ISSUED
UNDER THE AUTHORITY OF
THE SCIENCE AND ART DEPARTMENT, SOUTH KENSINGTON, FOR THE USE OF SCHOOLS AND ART AND SCIENCE CLASSES.
MILITARY BIOGRAPHIES. & HALL are preMessrs. paring for publication a Series of Volumes dedicated to the Lives of Great Military
CHAPMAN
Commanders.
The volumes are designed of
critical
to
form a
set
Biographies, illustrative of the
operations and the art of war, by writers of distinction in the profession of arms, whose
competence to weigh the military qualities and deeds of the Chiefs can be accepted.
Maps Avill, when necessary, accompany the volumes, for the convenience of students. The aim of these volumes is to be both popular and scientific, combining the narrative of the most romantic and instructive of human lives with a clear examination of the genius of the soldier.
The
first
volume,
GREAT," by
Col.
'^FREDERICK THE C.
B.
Brackenbury,
containing Maps, will appear in March.
"MARSHAL LOUDON," Malleson,
C.S.I.,
will follow
it;
by
Col.
the
two
Lives presenting the opposing aspects of the Seven Years' War.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
CHAPMAN & ABBOTT
HALL, LIMITED.
[ED WIN), formerly Head Master of
the Philolosrical
School—
A CONCORDANCE OF THE ORIGINAL POETICAL WORKS OF ALEXANDER
ADAMS
POPE.
Medium
8vo, 21s.
(FRANCIS)—
HISTORY OF THE ELEMENTARY SCHOOL CONTEST IN ENGLAND. Demy 8vo,
6s.
BADEN-POWELL (GEORGE)—
STATE AID AND STATE INTERFERENCE. trated
BARTLEY
by Results
in
Commerce and
Industry.
Crown
Illus-
S%'0, gs.
T.)—
(G. C.
A HANDY BOOK FOR GUARDIANS OF THE POOR. Crown THE PARISH NET: HOW IT'S DRAGGED AND WHAT IT CATCHES. Crown THE SEVEN AGES OF A VILLAGE PAUPER. Crown BAYAED: HISTORY OF THE GOOD CHEVALIER, 8vo, cloth, 3s.
Bvo, cloth, 7s. 6d.
8vo, cloth, 5s.
SANS PEUR ET
REPROCHE.
SANS Compiled by the Loyal Serviteur; translated into English from the French of Loredan Larchey. With over zoo Illustrations. Royal 8vo, 21s.
BEESLEY (EDWARD SPENCER)— CATILINE, CLODIUS, AND TIBERIUS.
Large crown
8vo, 6s.
BELL
(DR. y^AMES), Principal of the Somerset House Ladoratory-
THE CHEMISTRY OF FOODS.
With Microscopic
Illustrations.
Part Part
I.
TEA, COFFEE, SUGAR, Etc.
II.
2s.
6d.
MILK, BUTTER, CEREALS, PREPARED STARCHES,
Large Crown Svo,
BENNET (WILLIAM)
Etc.
3s.
The Late—
KING OF THE PEAK: Crown Svo, (IF.)—
Large crown 8vo,
a Romance.
With
Portrait.
6s.
BENSON
MANUAL OF THE SCIENCE OF COLOUR. Frontispiece and Illustrations.
Coloured
i2nio, cloth, 2s. 6d.
PRINCIPLES OF THE SCIENCE OF COLOUR.
Small
4to, cloth, 15s.
BINGHAM
(CAPT.
THE HON.
D.)—
NAPOLEON'S DESPATCHES. BIRD WOOD
(SIR
GEORGE
C.
3 vols,
THE INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF 174 Illustrations.
demy Svo. im the Press.
M.), C.S.I.—
New Edition. Demy
INDIA.
With
Map and
Svo, 14s.
BLACKIE (JOHN STUART) F.R.S.E.—
ALTAVONA: FACT AND FICTION FROM MY LIFE IN
THE HIGHLANDS.
Third Edition.
Crown
Svo, 6s.
BLAKE (EDITH OSBORNE)—
THE REALITIES OF FREEMASONRY. Demy Svo, 9s.
BLA THER WICK (DR.)—
PERSONAL RECOLLECTIONS OF PETER STONNOR, Esq.
With
Illustrations
by James Guthrie and A.
S.
Boyd.
Crown
Svo, 6s.
A
2
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY BOYLE (FREDERICK)—
ON THE BORDERLAND— BETWIXT THE REALMS OF FACT AND FANCY. Crown 8vo, los. 6d. (THOMAS), of the Royal Military Academy, Woohvlch—
BRADLEY
ELEMENTS OF GEOMETRICAL DRAWING.
BRAY
Parts, with Sixty Plates.
Oblong
folio,
In
Two
half bound, each Part i6s.
(MRS.)—
AUTOBIOGRAPHY
OF
(born
died
1789,
1883).
Author of the "Life of Thomas Stothard, R.A.," "The White Hoods," &c. Edited by John A. Kempe. With Portraits. Crown Svo, los. 6d.
MRS. BRAY'S NOVELS AND ROMANCES. and Revised
JVeia
Editions, with Frontispieces.
THE WHITE HOODS; a Romance Flanders. DE FOIX a Romance of Beam.
of
;
THE TALP.A or, The Moor of Portugal. THE PROTESTANT; a Tale of the Times ;
I
of
|
Queen Mary.
NOVELS FOUNDED ON TRADITIONS OF DEVON AND CORNWALL. FITZ OF FITZFORD a Tale ;
of Destiny.
TTFMT5V np POMEROY. PHMT^RDV HENRY DE TRELAWNY OF TRELAWNE.
WARLEIGH or. The Fatal Oak. COURTENAY OF WALREDDON. HARTLAND FOREST AND ROSE;
I
TEAGUE.
'
MISCELLANEOUS TALES.
A FATHER'S CURSE AND A DAUGHTER'S SACRIFICE. TRIALS OF THE HEART. BROADLEY (A. M.)—
HOW WE DEFENDED
ARABI AND HIS FRIENDS.
A
Story of Egypt and the Egyptians. Second Edition. Demy Svo. 12s.
Illustrated
by Frederick Villiers.
BUCKLAND (FRANK)—
LOG-BOOK OF A FISHERMAN AND ZOOLOGIST. Third Edition. With numerous
Illustrations.
Crown
Svo, 5s.
BURCHETT (R.)— DEFINITIONS OF GEOMETRY. New
Edition.
24mo,
cloth, sd.
LINEAR PERSPECTIVE, for the Use of Schools of Art. Twenty-first Thousand. With Post Svo, PRACTICAL GEOMETRY The Course of Construction Illustrations.
cloth, 7s.
:
With
of Plane Geometrical Figures. Svo, cloth,
BURNAND
THE
Eighteenth Edition.
Post
5s.
Camb.— Personal Reminiscences of the Club, Cambridge. Second Edition. Demy Svo, 12s.
C). B.A., Trln. Coll. "A. D. C. ;" being (F.
University Amateur Dramatic
CAMPION
137 Diagrams.
(J.
S.).—
ON THE FRONTIER.
Reminiscences of Wild Sports,
Personal Adventures, and Strange Scenes.
Demy
ON FOOT Demy
With
Illustrations.
Second Edition.
Svo, i6s.
IN SPAIN. With
Illustrations.
Second Edition.
Svo, 16s.
CARLYLE (THOMAS)— See pages
iS
and
19.
CARLYLE BIRTHDAY BOOK Permission of Mr.
Thomas Carlvle.
(THE).
Small crown,
Prepared by
3s.
CHAMPEAUX (ALFRED)— TAPESTRY. With Woodcuts. Cloth, 2s. 6d. CHRISTIANITY AND COMMON SENSE. A Plea
for the
Worship of our Heavenly Father, and also for the Opening of Museums and By a Barrister. Demy Svo, 7s. 6d.
Galleries on Sundays.
CHAPMAN &CHURCH {A. PLAIN crown
FOOD
H), M.A., Oxon.—
WORDS ABOUT WATER.
Illustrated.
Large
Svo, sewed, 6d.
A
:
Short Account of the Sources, Constituents,
and Uses of Food.
Large crown Svo,
PRECIOUS STONES Artistic Relations.
CLINTON
HALL, LIMITED.
{R.
With
cloth, 3s.
considered in their Scientific and
:
Large crown Svo,
Illustrations.
2s.
6d.
H.)—
A COMPENDIUM OF ENGLISH HISTORY,
from the
Earliest Times to a.d. 1872. With Copious Quotations on the Leading Events and the Constitutional History, together with Appendices. Post Svo, 7s. 6d.
COBDEN, RICHARD, LIFE OF.
By John Morley.
With For-
In 2 vols., demy Svo, 32s. Edition. Portrait. Large crown Svo, ys. 6d. Popular Edition, with Portrait, sewed, is.; cloth, 2s. trait.
New
CHAPMAN & A^'etv
HALL'S SIX SH8LLING NOVELS:
and Cheaper Editions of Popular Novels.
FAUCIT OF EALLIOL. By Herman Merivale. AYALA'S ANGEL. By Anthony Trollope. THE VICAR'S PEOPLE. By G. Manville Fenn. AUNT HEPSY'S FOUNDLING. By Mrs. Leith Adams.
AN AUSTRALIAN HEROINE. By Mrs. Campbell Praed. FASHION AND PASSION, OR LIFE IN MAYFAIR. By the Duke
HARD LINES. By Hawley Smart. COLENSO [FRANCES E.)—
HISTORY OF THE ZULU WAR AND Assisted in those portions of the work which touch Lieut. -Colonel Edward Durnford. Demy Svo, iSs.
COOKER Y—
de Pomar.
ITS ORIGIN.
upon Military
INIatters
by
HANDBOOK FOR THE NATIONAL
OFFICIAL
TRAINING SCHOOL FOR COOKERY. Containing Lessons on Cookery; forming the Course of Instruction in the School. Compiled by " R. O. C." Tenth Thousand. Large crown Svo, 8s.
HOW TO COOK from the
Official
Kensington.
FISH.
Handbook
Compiled by
A
SICK-ROOM COOKERY. for the National School for Crown Svo, sewed, 6d.
Series of Lessons in Cookery,
National Training School for Cookery, South R. O. C." Crown Svo, sewed- 3d.
to the •'
From
the Official
Cookery, South Kensington.
Handbook
Compiled by " R. O. C."
CRAIK [GEORGE LILLIE)—
ENGLISH OF SHAKESPEARE. logical
Commentary on
his Julius Csesar.
Illustrated in a Philo-
Sixth Edition.
Post Svo, cloth,
ss.
OUTLINES OF THE HISTORY OF THE ENGLISH LANGUAGE.
CRA WFORD
[F.
Ninth Edition.
Post Svo, cloth,
2s. 6d.
MARION)—
TO LEEWARD. New
Crown
Edition.
Svo, 5s.
CRIPPS [WILFRED]—
COLLEGE AND CORPORATION PLATE. With numerous Large crown DAME TROT AND HER PIG (The Wonderful History of). Illustrations.
With Coloured
DAUBOURG
Illustrations.
Svo, cloth, 2S. 6d.
Crown
4to, 3s. 6d.
[E.]—
INTERIOR ARCHITECTURE. cases,
Doors, Vestibules, Stair-
Anterooms, Drawing, Dining, and Bed Rooms, Libraries, Bank and News-
paper Offices, Shop Fronts and Interiors.
Half-imperial, cloth,
£2
12s. 6d.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY DAVIDSON
[ELLIS A.)—
PRETTY ARTS FOR THE EMPLOYMENT LEISURE HOURS. A
Book
for Ladies.
With
Illustrations.
THE AMATEUR HOUSE CARPENTER Building, Making, and Repairing. With numerous by the Author. Royal Svo, los. 6d.
DA VISON THE MISSES)— (
TRIQUETI MARBLES
the
in
:
Illustrations,
Demy
OF
Svo, 6s.
a Guide in drawn on Wood
ALBERT MEMORIAL
CHAPEL, WINDSOR. A
Series of Photographs. Dedicated by express perthe Queen. The Work consists of 117 Photographs, with descriptive Letterpress, mounted on 49 sheets of cardboard, half-imperial. £,10 106.
Her Majesty
mission to
DA Y WILLIAM)— (
THE RACEHORSE
IN TRAINING,
Racing and Racing Reform, to which Edition.
Demy
is
with
on
Hints
added a Chapter on Shoeing.
Fourth
Svo, 12s.
D'HAUSSONVILLE (VICOMTE)—
SALON OF MADAME NECKER. Trollope.
DE KONINCK[L.
2 vols.
Crown
Translated by H. M.
Svo, 18s.
and DIETZ (£.)—
L.)
PRACTICAL MANUAL OF CHEMICAL ASSAYING, Edited, with notes, by
as applied to the Manufacture of Iron. Post Svo, cloth, 6s.
Robert Mallet.
DICKENS [CHARLES)— See fages 20-24.
THE LETTERS OF CHARLES DICKENS. by
his Sister-in-Law
and
Charles Dickens Edition
"
Edited
his Eldest Daughter. Two vols, uniform with " of his Works. Crown Svo, Ss.
THE CHARLES DICKENS
The
BIRTHDAY BOOK.
Compiled and Edited by his Eldest Daughter. With Five Illustrations by his Youngest Daughter. In a handsome fcap. 410 volume, 12s.
DIXON IF. HEPWORTH)— BRITISH CYPRUS. With DRAYSON [LIEUT.-COL. A. W.)— (
Frontispiece.
Demy
Svo, 15s.
THE CAUSE OF THE SUPPOSED PROPER MOTIQN OF THE FIXED STARS. Demy THE CAUSE, DATE, AND DURATION OF THE LAST GLACIAL EPOCH OF GEOLOGY. Demy PRACTICAL MILITARY SURVEYING AND Svo, cloth, los.
Svo, cloth, los.
SKETCHING.
Fifth Edition.
DYCE'S COLLECTION.
A
Post Svo, cloth,
4s. 6d.
Catalogue of Printed Books and Manuscripts Dyce to the South Kensington Museum.
bequeathed by the Rev. Alexander Royal Svo, half-morocco, 14s. 2 vols.
A
Collection of Paintings, Miniatures, Drawings, Engravings, Rings, and Miscellaneous Objects, bequeathed by the Rev. Alexander Dyce to the
So^th Kensington Museum.
Royal
Svo, half-morocco, 6s. 6d.
DYCE [WilliA AI), R.A.—
DRAWING-BOOK OF THE GOVERNMENT SCHOOL OF DESIGN OR, ELEMENTARY OUTLINES OF ORNAMENT. ;
selected Plates.
Text
to Ditto.
Folio, sewed, 5s.
;
mounted,
Fifty
iSs.
Sewed, 6d.
EGYPTIAN ART—
A HISTORY OF ART IN ANCIENT EGYPT. G. Perrot and C. Chipiez. Translated by 600 Illustrations. 2 vols. Royal Svo, £1 2s.
Walter Armstrong. With
By orer
ELLIOT [FRANCES)-
PICTURES OF OLD ROME. cloth, 6s.
New
Edition.
Post Svo,
CHAPMAN &ELLIS [CAPTAIN
HALL, LIMITED.
A. B.)—
THE LAND OF
FETISH.
Demy
8vo.
12s.
ENGEL (CARLy-
A DESCRIPTIVE
ILLUSTRATED CATALOGUE
and
OF THE MUSICAL INSTRUMENTS in the SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM, preceded by an Essay on the History of Musical Instruments. Second Royal Svo, half-morocco,
Edition.
12s.
MUSICAL INSTRUMENTS. Large crown Svo,
ESCOTT
[T.
With numerous Woodcuts.
cloth, as. 6d.
H. S.)—
OF THE EMPIRE
PILLARS
Demy
Sketches.
Short
:
F.S.A.—
REPRESENTATIVE STATESMEN: 2 Tols.
Large crown Svo,
1676-1745.
Demy
Pohtical
Studies,
;^i 4s.
ROBERT WALPOLE.
SIR
Biographical
Svo, los. 6d.
E WALD (ALEXANDER CHARLES),
A
Pohtical
Biography,
Svo, iSs.
FANE [VIOLET)—
QUEEN OF THE FAIRIES (A Village Story), and other Poems. Crown ANTHONY BABINGTON a Drama. Crown Svo, 6s. Svo, 6s.
:
EEARNLEY [W.)— LESSONS IN HORSE JUDGING, INIERING
OF HUNTERS.
With
AND THE Crown
Illustrations.
SUM-
Svo, 4s.
FITZ-PATRICK [W. J.)—
LIFE OF CHARLES LEVER.
FLEMING [GEORGE),
Demy
2 vols.
Svo, 30s.
F.R.C.S.—
ANIMAL PLAGUES: THEIR HISTORY, NATURE, AND PREVENTION.
Svo, cloth. 15s.
PRACTICAL HORSE-SHOEING. Second Edition, enlarged.
With 37
Illustrations.
Svo, sewed, 2s.
RABIES AND HYDROPHOBIA: THEIR HISTORY, NATURE, CAUSES, SYMPTOMS, AND PREVENTION.
tions.
With
S Illustra-
Svo, cloth, 15s.
A MANUAL OF VETERINARY SANITARY SCIENCE
AND POLICE. With 33 Illustrations. FOR STEP [JOHN), M. P. for Berwick—
THE CHRONICLE
of
2 vols.
JAMES
I.,
SURNAMED THE CONQUEROR.
Demy
Svo, 36s.
KING
of
ARAGON,
Written by Himself. Translated from the Catalan by the late John Forster, M.P. for Berwick. With an Historical Introduction by Don Pascual de Gayangos. 2 vols. Royal Svo, 2Ss.
FORSTER [JOHN)— THE LIFE OF and other
CHARLES DICKENS.
Illustrations.
15th Thousand.
3 vols.
With
Svo, cloth,
£2
Portraits
2s.
THE LIFE OF CHARLES DICKENS. Uniform with the Library Edition Dickens's Works. Demy £\ THE LIFE OF CHARLES DICKENS. Uniform with Library Post THE LIFE OF CHARLES DICKENS. Uniform with With Numerous "C. D." THE LIFE OF CHARLES DICKENS. Uniform with Household With Barnard. Crown by WALTER SAVAGE LANDOR a Biography, 1775-1864. Illustrated
the
the
of
Edition.
Edition.
Illustrations.
2 vols.
F.
Illustrations
Portrait.
A New and
Revised Edition.
Demy
7s.
4to, cloth, 5s
:
With
Ss.
Svo, los. 6d.
Edition.
the
Svo,
2 vols.
Svo, 12s.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY tOR TNIGHTL V RE VIE W—
FORTNIGHTLY REVIEW.— First Dec. 1866.
New
6 vols.
May, 1865,
Series,
to
Cloth, 13s. each.
In Half-yearly Volumes.
1867 to 1872.
Series,
Cloth,
13s. each.
From
present
the
January, 1873, to
Volumes.
time,
Half-yearly
in
Cloth, i6s. each.
CONTENTS OF FORTNIGHTLY REVIEW. the
commencement to end of {C. D. E.)—
Sewed,
1878.
From
as.
FORTNUM A DESCRIPTIVE and ILLUSTRATED CATALOGUE OF THE BRONZES OF EUROPEAN ORIGIN SINGTON MUSEUM, with an Introductory Notice.
£l
lOS.
A DESCRIPTIVE
and
in
the
SOUTH KEN-
Royal 8vo, half-morocco,
ILLUSTRATED CATALOGUE
OF MAIOLICA, HISPANO-MORESCO. PERSIAN, DAMASCUS, AND Royal in the SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM.
RHODIAN WARES Svo, half-morocco, £2.
MAIOLICA. 8vo, cloth,
numerous
With
Woodcuts.
Large
crown
Large
crown
2S. 66..
BRONZES.
numerous
With
Woodcuts.
Svo, cloth, 2S. 6d.
FRANCATELLI
[C.
E.)—
ROYAL CONFECTIONER Practical Treatise.
FRANK'S
New and
English and Foreign.
:
Cheap Edition.
With
Crown
Illustrations.
A
Svo, 5s.
W.)—
[A.
JAPANESE POTTERY. rous Illustrations and Marks.
Nume-
Being a Native Report.
Large crown Svo,
cloth, 2s. 6d.
GALLEN G A (ANTONIO)—
IBERIAN REMINISCENCES.
Fifteen Years' Travelling
With a Map.
Impressions of Spain and Portugal.
2 vols.
Demy
Svo, 32s.
A SUMMER TOUR IN RUSSIA. With Demy DEMOCRACY ACROSS THE CHANNEL.
Map.
a
Svo, 14s.
Crown
Svo, 3s.
GORST
M.P.-
[J. E.), Q.C..
An ELECTION MANUAL.
Containing the Parhamentary Crown Prisons—
Elections (Corrupt and Illegal Practices) Act, 1883, with Notes.
GRIFFITHS [MAJOR ARTHUR), H.M.
Inspector of
CHRONICLES OF NEWGATE. Edition in
i
Demy
vol.
Svo, 2S. 6d.
New
Illustrated. [/«
Svo.
March.
HALL [SIDNEY)—
A TRAVELLING ATLAS OF THE ENGLISH COUNTIES. Fifty Maps, coloured. New Edition, including the Railways, corrected up to the present date. Demy Svo, in roan tuck, los. 6d.
HARDY [LADY DUFFUS)— DOWN SOUTH. Demy
THROUGH
of an American Tour.
HATTON
8vo.
14s.
CITIES and PRAIRIE LANDS.
(JOSEPH) and
Demy
HARVEY
NEWFOUNDLAND.
Sketches
Svo, 14s.
(REV.
71/.)—
The Oldest
British
Colony.
Its
History, Past and Present, and its Prospects in the Future. Illustrated from Photographs and Sketches specially made for this work. Demy Svo, iSs.
TO-DAY IN AMERICA. the
New.
2 vols.
Crown
Studies for the
Old World and
Svo, iSs.
HE A PHY (AfUSGRAVE)—
GLIMPSES AND GLEAMS.
Crown
Svo, 5s.
CHAPMAN &-
HALL, LIMITED.
HILDEBRAND {HANS)—
INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF SCANDINAVIA IN THE
PAGAN TIME. HILL (MISS G. )—
Large crown 8vo,
Illustrated.
2s. 6d.
THE PLEASURES AND PROFITS OF OUR LITTLE POULTRY FARM.
Small crown 8vo,
HITCHMAN [FRANCIS]— THE PUBLIC LIFE OF FIELD.
2 vols.
Demy
£1
8vo,
3s.
THE EARL OF BEACONS-
12s.
HOLBEIN—
TWELVE HEADS AFTER HOLBEIN. Drawings
in
portfolio.
£z
Her Majesty's
Collection at Windsor.
Selected from
Reproduced
in
Autotype, in
i6s.
HOLLINGSHEAD (JOHN)-
FOOTLIGHTS.
Crown
8vo.
7s. 6d.
HOVELACQUE [ABEL]-
THE SCIENCE OF LANGUAGE: LINGUISTICS, PHILOLOGY, AND ETYMOLOGY. With Maps. Large crown HOW I BECAME A SPORTSMAN. By "Avon." Illustrated. Crown
8vo, cloth, 5s.
Svo.
6s.
HUMPHR IS
[H.D.]—
PRINCIPLES OF PERSPECTIVE. Series of
Examples.
Oblong
folio,
Illustrated in £1 is.
a
half-bound, and Text Svo, cloth,
IRON [RALPH]—
THE STORY OF AN AFRICAN FARM. New Crown
JAMES
L,
Edition.
Svo, 5s.
KING OF ARAGON (THE CHRONICLE
OF),
SURNAMED THE CONQUEROR.
Translated from Written by Himself. the Catalan by the late John Forster, M.P. for Berwick. With an Historical Introduction by Don Pascual de Gayangos. 2 vols. Royal Svo. 28s.
JARRY [GENERAL]— OUTPOST DUTY.
Translated, with
TREATISES ON
MILITARY RECONNAISSANCE AND ON ROAD-MAKING. By W. C. E. Napier. [W. T.]—
Gen.
JEANS
Third Edition.
Crown
CREATORS OF THE AGE OF STEEL. Sir
W.
Major-
Svo, 5s.
Memoirs of
Siemens, Sir H. Bessemer, Sir J. Whitworth, Sir J. Brown, and other
Inventors.
Crown
Svo, 7s. 6d.
JOHNSON [DR. SAMUEL]— LIFE AND CONVERSATIONS.
By A. Main.
Crown
8vo, los. 6d.
JONES [CAPTAIN DOUGLAS), R.A.—
NOTES ON MILITARY LAW. Crown Svo, 4s. TONES COLLECTION (HANDBOOK OF THE) IN THE SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM. Illustrated. Large crown Svo, 2s. 6d. KEMPIS [THOMAS A]— OF THE IMITATION OF CHRIST. Four Books. Beautifully Illustrated Edition.
Demy
Svo, i6s.
KENT [CHARLES]—
HUMOUR AND PATHOS OF CHARLES
DICKENS,
WITH ILLUSTRATIONS OF HIS .MASTERY OF THE TERRIBLE AND PICTURESQUE. Portrait. Crown Z\o. 6s. KLACZKO [M. JULIAN] — TWO CHANCELLORS PRINCE GORTCHAKOF and :
PRINCE BISMARCK.
Translated by Mrs. Tait.
New and cheaper Edition, 6s.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
LACORDAIRE'S CONFERENCES. JESUS CHRIST, GOD, AND GOD AND MAN, New Edition in LA VELE YE [EMILE DE)—
THE
ELEMENTS
Translated
bj'
W. Pollard,
OF
i vol.
Crown
8vo, 6i.
ECONOMY.
POLITICAL
Crown
B.A., St. John's College, Oxford.
8vo, 6s.
LEFEVRE [ANDRE]—
PHILOSOPHY,
Historical
an Introduction, by A.
W. Keane,
and B.A.
Critical. Translated, Large crown 8vo, 7s. 6d.
with
LETOURNEAU [DR. CHARLES)— SOCIOLOGY. Based upon
Ethnology. Translated by Henry M. Trollope. Large crown 8vo, los. Translated by William MacCall. With Illus-
BIOLOGY. trations.
Large crown
Bvo, 6s.
LILLY (W. S.)—
ANCIENT RELIGION AND MODERN THOUGHT. Press. One demy 8vo. [In LOW (C. R.)— SOLDIERS OF THE VICTORIAN AGE. 2 vols. Demy vol.
8vo,
£1
tJie
los.
LUCAS [CAPTAIN]-
THE ZULUS AND THE BRITISH FRONTIER. Demy CAMP LIFE AND SPORT IN SOUTH AFRICA. 8vo, i6s.
With Episodes
LYTTON
in Kaffir
With
Warfare.
Demy
Illustrations.
8vo. 12s.
[ROBERT, EARL]—
WORKS-
POETICAL
FABLES IN SONG.
2 vols. Fcap. 8vo, 12s. Fcap. 8vo, 6s.
THE WANDERER.
POEMS, HISTORICAL AND CHARACTERISTIC.
MA CE WEN CONS TANCE]—
Fcap.
6s.
[
ROUGH DIAMONDS LIFE. Crown Svo, 3s. [DR. J. W.)—
:
OR,
SKETCHES FROM REAL
6d.
MALLET
COTTON ITS
:
THE CHEMICAL,
SUCCESSFUL CULTIVATION.
&c.,
CONDITIONS OF
Post Svo, cloth,
7s. 6d.
MALLET [ROBERT]—
PRACTICAL MANUAL OF CHEMICAL ASSAYING, as applied to the Manufacture of Iron.
Edited, with notes, by
By
Robert Mallet.
L. L.
De Koninck
Post Svo, cloth,
and E. Dietz.
6s.
GREAT NEAPOLITAN EARTHQUAKE OF
1857.
First Principles of Observational Seismology, as developed in the Report to the Royal Society of London. Maps and numerous Illustrations. 2 vols. Royal Svo, cloth, £^ 3s.
MASKELL WILLIAM)— (
A DESCRIPTION OF THE MEDI/EVAL,
in the
IVORIES,
ANCIENT AND
SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM,
With numerous Photograplis and Woodcuts.
with a Preface.
Royal Svo, half-morocco, £1
is.
AND MEDIEVAL. With numerous Woodcuts. Large crown HANDBOOK TO THE DYCE AND FORSTER ColIVORIES ANCIENT :
Svo, cloth, 2s. 6d.
lections. With
McCOAN
[J.
Illustrations.
Large crown Svo,
cloth, 2s. 6d.
CARLILE)—
OUR NEW PROTECTORATE. Geography, Races, Resources, and Large crown Svo, £\ 4s.
Turkey
Government.
in Asia: Its
With Map.
2 vols.
CHAPMAN
HALL, LLMLTED.
(&^
MEREDITH {GEORGE)—
MODERN LOVE AND POEMS OF THE ENGLISH AND BALLADS.
ROADSIDE, WITH POEMS
MERIVALE {HERMAN CHARLES)— BINKO'S BLUES. A Tale for Illustrated
by Edgar Giberne.
Fcap. cloth,
Children of
6s.
Growths.
all
Small crown 8vo.
[In the Press.
THE WHITE PILGRIM, and other Poems.
Crown
8vo, 9s.
FAUCIT OF BALLIOL. Crown 8vo, 6s. MOLES WORTH (W. NASSAU)— HISTORY OF ENGLAND FROM THE YEAR
1830
TO THE RESIGNATION OF THE GLADSTONE MINISTRY, 1874. Crown
ABRIDGED EDITION. MORLEY (HENRY)— ENGLISH WRITERS. AND ANGLO-SAXONS. English Literature.
(Making
Vol.
3 vols.
8vo, iBs.
Part
II.
Vol.
I.
Part
7s.
I.
With an Introductory Sketch of
Part II.
Bvo, cloth,
2 vols.)
Large crown,
£z
6d.
THE CELTS the Four Periods of
FROM THE CONQUEST TO CHAUCER. 2s.
FROM CHAUCER TO DUNBAR.
I.
Svo, cloth, 12s.
TABLES OF ENGLISH LITERATURE.
Containing
20 Charts. Second Edition, with Index. Royal 4to, cloth, 12s. In Three Parts. Parts I. and II., containing Three Charts, each is. 6d. Part III., containing 14 Charts, 7s. Part III. also kept in Sections, i, 2, and *^'' The Charts sold separately. IS. 6d. each ; 3 and 4 together, 3s.
MORLEY (JOHN)— LIFE OF RICHARD COBDEN. Edition.
sewed,
4to,
is.
Bound
With
Portrait.
COBDEN.
Fourth Thousand.
2 vols.
Demy
Svo,
£i
12s.
DIDEROT AND THE ENCYCLOPEDISTS. Bvo,
£i
vols.
Large
Svo, 7s. 6d.
VOLTAIRE. ROUSSEAU.
Large crown 8vo,
6s.
Large crown 8vo,
9s.
DIDEROT AND THE ENCYCLOPEDISTS. crown
2
6s.
NEW UNIFORM EDITION. LIFE OF RICHARD COBDEN. With Portrait. crown
Popular
in cloth, 2S.
AND CORRESPONDENCE OF RICHARD
LIFE Demy
5.
Large
Svo, 12s.
CRITICAL MISCELLANIES.
First Series.
Large crown
Svo, 6s.
CRITICAL MISCELLANIES. Second Series, umhe Press. ON COMPROMISE. New Edition. Large crown Svo, 3s. 6d. STRUGGLE FOR NATIONAL EDUCATION. Third Edition.
MUNTZ
Demy
Svo, cloth, 3s.
(EUGENE), From
RAPHAEL
:
the
HIS
French of—
LIFE,
WORKS, AND TIMES.
Edited by W: Armstrong. Illustrated with 155 page Plates. Imperial Svo, 36s.
Wood
Engravings and 41 Full-
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
MURPHY
[J.
M.)—
RAMBLES IN NORTH-WEST AMERICA. Map.
Frontispiece and
rous Illustrations.
With
8vo, i6s.
MURRAY [ANDREW), F.L.S.— ECONOMIC ENTOMOLOGY. Large crown 8vo,
7s.
Aptera.
nume-
AVitli
6d.
NAPIER [MAJ.-GEN. W.C.E.)— TRANSLATION OF GEN. JARRY'S
OUTPOST DUTY.
TREATISES ON MILITARY RECONNAISSANCE AND ON ROAD-MAKING. Third Edition. Crown 8vo, 5s.
With
NECKER [MADAME\—
THE SALON 'of MADAME NECKER. d'Haussonvillk.
Translated by H.
M. Trollope.
NESBITT [ALEXANDER]— GLASS. Illustrated. Large crown NE VINSON [HENRY]—
By Vicomte Crown
2 vols.
8vo, iBs.
8vo, cloth, 2s. 6d.
A SKETCH OF HERDER AND HIS TIMES. With a Demy 8vo, NEWTON [E. TULLEY], F.G.S.— THE TYPICAL PARTS IN THE SKELETONS OF Portrait.
14s.
A CAT, DUCK, AND CODFISH,
Description arranged in a Tabular form.
NORMAN
TONKIN 8vo, with
or,
;
Maps,
Comparatiye
being a Catalogue with
Demy 8vo, cloth, 3s. and Bengal Staff Corps—
of the golh Light Infantry
[C. B.], late
FRANCE IN THE FAR
Demy
EAST.
14s.
OLIVER [PROFESSOR),
F.R.S., dfc.—
ILLUSTRATIONS OF THE PRINCIPAL NATURAL ORDERS OF THE VEGETABLE KINGDOM, PREPARED FOR THE SCIENCE AND ART DEPARTMENT, SOUTH KENSINGTON. With Oblong
log Plates.
PERROT [GEORGES]
8vo, plain, i6s.
and
CHALD^A AND
;
coloured,
£1
6s.
CHIPIEZ [CHARLES]—
ASSYRIA, A HISTORY OF
Walter Armstrong, B.A. Oxon. With 452 Uniform with " Ancient Egyptian Art." 42s.
Translated by
Demy
Svo.
ANCIENT EGYPT, A HISTORY OF ART lated from the French Imperial 8vo, 42s.
POLLEN
[J.
by W. Armstrong.
With over 600
ART
Illustrations,
IN.
IN. a vols.
Trans-
Illustrations.
2 vols.
H.)—
ANCIENT
WOODWORK
FURNITURE
AND
THE SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM.
With an
AND IN
MODERN
Introduction, and Illustrated with numerous Coloured Photographs and Woodcuts. Royal Svo, half-morocco, £i is.
GOLD AND SILVER SMITH'S WORK. With numerous Woodcuts. Large crown ANCIENT AND MODERN FURNITURE AND Svo, cloth, 2s. 6d.
WOODWORK.
With numerous Woodcuts.
POLLOK [LIEUT.-COLONEL]— SPORT IN BRITISH CASSYAH AND JYNTIAH tricts
POYNTER
BURMAH, ASSAM,
2 vols.
[E. J.],
Demy
With Notes of Sport in the Hilly DisMadras Presidency. With Illustrations and 2
Svo, £,^ 4s.
R.A.—
TEN LECTURES ON ART. PRAED
crown Svo,
[MRS.
cloth, 2s. 6d.
AND THE
HILLS.
of the Northern Division,
Maps.
Large crown Svo,
Second Edition.
Large
9s.
CAMPBELL]—
AN AUSTRALIAN HEROINE.
Cheap
Edition.
Crown
8vo, 6s.
NADINE.
MOLOCH.
Cheap Edition. Crown Cheap Edition.
Svo, 5s. [/« the Press.
CHAPMAN ^ HALL, LIMITED. PRINSEP
(
'
13
VAL), A.R.A.—
IMPERIAL INDIA.
Containing numerous Illustrations
and Maps made during a Tour to the Courts of the Principal Rajahs and Princes of India. Second Edition. Demy 8vo, ;^i is.
PUCKETT {R. CAMPBELL),
SCIOGRAPHY; Crown
Edition.
Ph.D., Bonn University—
or,
RAMSDEN {LADY GWENDOLEN)— A BIRTHDAY BOOK. Illustrated. tions
Third
Radial Projection of Shadows.
8vo, cloth, 6s.
Containing 46
from Original Drawings, and numerous other Illustrations.
REDGRAVE {GILBERT)— PRE-CHRISTIAN
ORNAMENTATION. With numerous
from the German and edited.
IllustraRoyal 8vo, 21s.
Translated
Illustrations.
Crown
8vo.
[/« the Fress.
REDGRA VE {GILBERT R.)— MANUAL OF DESIGN, Addresses of
compiled from the Writings and
Richard Redgrave, R. A. With Woodcuts. Large crown
8vo, cloth,
2S. 6d.
REDGRA VE {RICHARD)—
MANUAL AND CATECHISM ON COLOUR.
24mo,
cloth, gd.
REDGRA VE {SAMUEL)—
CATALOGUE OF THE
A DESCRIPTIVE
His-
torical COLLECTION OF WATER-COLOUR PAINTINGS IN THE
SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM. Royal
other Illustrations.
8vo,
£1
RENAN {ERNEST)— RECOLLECTIONS OF the original French by C. B.
With numerous Chromo-lithographs and
is.
MY YOUTH.
Pitman, and
revised by
Translated from Madame Renan. Crown
8vo, 8s.
RIANO {JUAN
F.)—
THE INDUSTRIAL ARTS crown 8vo,
IN SPAIN.
Illustrated.
Large
cloth, 4s.
ROBINSON {JAMES F. )—
BRITISH BEE FARMING. Large crown Svo,
ROBINSON
{J.
Its
Profits
and Pleasures.
5s.
C.)—
ITALIAN SCULPTURE OF THE MIDDLE AGES AND PERIOD OF THE REVIVAL OF
ART. With
2c5
Engravings.
Royal
Svo, cloth, 7s. 6d.
ROBSON {GEORGE)—
ELEMENTARY BUILDING CONSTRUCTION. trated
sewed,
by a Design
ROBSON {REV.
AN
for
an Entrance Lodge and Gate.
13 Plates.
IllusOblong folio,
8s.
J. H.), M.A.,
LL.M.—
ELEMENTARY
Post Svo,
TREATISE
ON ALGEBRA.
6s.
ROCK {THE VERY REV. CANON), D.D.— ON TEXTILE FABRICS. A Descriptive and
Illustrated
Catalogue of the Collection of Church Vestments, Dresses, Silk Stuffs, Needlework, and Tapestries in the South Kensington I\Iuseum. Royal Svo, half-morocco
£x
IIS. 6d.
TEXTILE FABRICS. crown Svo,
cloth, 2s. 6d.
With numerous Woodcuts.
Large
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
14
ROLAND {ARTHUR)—
FARMING FOR PLEASURE AND PROFIT. by William Adlett.
8 vols.
Large crown Svo,
5s.
Edited
each.
DAIRY-FARMING, MANAGEMENT OF COWS, &c. POULTRY-KEEPING. TREE-PLANTING, FOR ORNAMENTATION OR PROFIT. STOCK-KEEPING AND CATTLE-REARING. DRAINAGE OF LAND, IRRIGATION, MANURES, &c. ROOT-GROWING, HOPS, &c. MANAGEMENT OF GRASS LANDS.
MARKET GARDENING.
years Clerk of the Parliament in Victoria — [G. W.), for ma A HISTORY OF AUSTRALIA. With a Coloured Map. Vols, Demy A HISTORY OF NEW ZEALAND. 3 vols. Demy Svo.
RUSDEN
?iy
Svo, 50s.
3
with Maps,
50s.
SAL USB UR Y PHILIP H. (
B.)-~
TWO MONTHS WITH TCHERNAIEFF Large crown Svo,
IN SERVIA.
gs.
SCOTT-STEVENSON {MRS.)—
ON SUMMER
SEAS.
Including the Mediterranean, the
yEgean, the Ionian, and the Euxine, and a voyage
Demy
Map.
down
With a
the Danube.
Svo, i6s.
OUR HOME IN CYPRUS. With a Map and IllustraDemy Third OUR RIDE THROUGH ASIA MINOR. With Map. SIMMONDS
Svo, 14s.
Edition.
tions.
Demy
Svo, iSs.
L.)~
{T.
ANIMAL PRODUCTS: With numerous
Uses, and Value.
their
Preparation, Commercial
Illustrations.
Large crown Svo,
7s. 6d.
WLE F)— SMART SALVAGE. A {HA
HARD
Collection of Stories. Crown Svo, los. 6d. LINES, i vol. Crown Svo, 6s.
SMITH [MAJOR
R.
MURDOCK), R.E.—
PERSIAN ART.
Second Edition, with additional
Large crown Svo, [S.G. B.)-
tions.
52-.
CLAIR
TWELVE YEARS' RESIDENCE Revised Edition.
Crown
BULGARIA.
Seventh Edition, with Additions and
Crown
Svo, cloth, los. 6d.
ST.
ANGELO.
CASTLE
IN
Svo, gs.
STORY [IV. W.)— ROBA DI ROMA. Portrait.
Illustra-
2s.
With
Illustrations.
Crown
Svo, los. 6d.
SUTCLIFFE (JOHN)—
THE SCULPTOR AND ART STUDENT'S GUIDE to the Proportions of the Human Form, with Measurements in feet and inches of Full-Grown Figures of Both Se.ves and of Various Ages. By Dr. G. Schadow, Member of the Academies, Stockholm, Dresden, Rome, &c. &c. Translated by Plates reproduced by J. Sutcliffe. Oblong folio, 31s. 6d. J. J. Wright.
TANNER
{PROFESSOR). F.C.S.— Interest ; or, Threefold
HOLT CASTLE Svo, 4s. 6d.
JACK'S
EDUCATION;
FARMING.
Second Edition.
OR,
Crown
in
Land.
Crown
HOW HE LEARNT
Svo, 3s. 6d.
TOPINARD{DR. PAUL)—
ANTHROPOLOGY. Broca.
With numerous
With a Preface by Professor Paul
Illustrations.
Large crown Svo,
7s, 6d.
CHAPMAN &- HALL, LLMITED. TRAILL
15
D.)~
[H.
THE NEW LUCIAN. Demy
Dead.
Being a Series of Dialogues of the
8vo, 12s.
TROLLOPE [ANTHONY]—
AYALA'S ANGEL. Crown 8vo. 6s. LIFE OF CICERO. 2 vols. 8vo. £t 4s. THE CHRONICLES OF BARSETSHIRE.
A
Uniform
Edition, in S vols., large crown 8vo, handsomely printed, each vol. containing Frontispiece. 6s. each.
THE WARDEN and BARCHESTER TOWERS. 2 vols.
THE SMALL HOUSE AT ALLINGTON. 2 vols. LAST CHRONICLE OF
DR. THORNE. FRAMLEY PARSONAGE.
TROLLOPE
BARSET.
2 vols.
THOMAS ADOLPHUS)— HAUNTS OF ITALIAN POETS.
[MR. and AIRS.
HOMES AND Crown
2 vols.
Svo, i8s.
UNIVERSAL—
UNIVERSAL CATALOGUE OF BOOKS ON ART. Compiled for the use of the National .\rt Librarj', and the Schools of Art United Kingdom. In 2 vols. Crown 4to, half-morocco, £1 2s.
in the
Supplemental Volume to Ditto.
VERON [EUGENE)— ^ESTHETICS. crown
Translated by
W, H. Armstrong.
Large
Svo, 7s. 6d.
WALE [REV. HENRY JOHN), M.A.—
POCKET BOOK, MY GRANDFATHER'S " Sword and Surplice."
Author of
1796.
WATSON [ALFRED E.
Demy Svo,
from
SKETCHES IN THE HUNTING FIELD. by John Sturgess.
WESTWOOD (7.
O.).
1
701 to
12s.
T.)
Crown
Cheap Edition.
ALA., F.L.S.,
Illustrated
Svo, 6s.
S^c—
CATALOGUE OF THE FICTILE IVORIES IN THE SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM. Collections of Classical
WHEELER
[G.
and Mediaeval
With an Account of the Continental Royal Sv'o, half-morocco, £1 4s.
Ivories.
P.)—
VISIT OF
THE PRINCE OF WALES. A
H.R.H.'s Journeyings
in India, Ceylon, Spain,
Chronicle of
and PortugaL Large crown
Svo, 12s.
WHITE [WALTER)—
HOLIDAYS IN TYROL: Kufstein, Klobenstein, and Paneveggio. Large crown A MONTH IN YORKSHIRE. Post Svo. With a Map. Fifth Edition. A LONDONER'S WALK TO THE LAND'S END, AND Svo, 14s.
4s.
ATRIPTOTHESCILLYISLES.
Post Svo. With 4 Maps. Third Edition.
4s.
WILDFO WLER—
SHOOTING, YACHTING, AND SEA-FISHING TRIPS, at
Home
shot."
and on the Continent. Second Cro%vn Svo, £\ is.
Series.
By
" Wildfowler," " Snap-
2 vols.
SHOOTING AND FISHING TRIPS IN ENGLAND, FRANCE, ALSACE, BELGIUM, HOLLAND, AND BAVARIA. Edition, with Illustrations.
Large crown Svo,
WILL-O'-THE-WISPS, THE. of Marie Petersen by 7S. 6d.
Charlotte
J.
New
Ss.
Translated from the German Hart With Illustrations. Crown Svo,
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
l6
WORNUM{R. N.)~
ANALYSIS OF ORNAMENT: THE CHARACTERISTICS OF STYLES. An Introduction to the Study of the History of OrnaRoyal 8vo, cloth, 8s. mental Art. With many Illustrations. Ninth Edition.
WORSAAE [J.
J.
A.)—
INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF DENMARK, FROM THE EARLIEST TIMES TO THE DANISH CONQUEST OF ENGLAND. With Maps and
Illustrations.
WYLDE [ATHERTON) — MY CHIEF AND
Crown
Svo, 3s. 6d.
OR, SIX
I;
MONTHS
AFTER THE LANGALIBALELE OUTBREAK. Dumford, and
YEO
Demy
Illustrations.
With
NATAL
IN
Portrait of Colonel
Bvo, 14s.
BURNEY)—
{DR. J.
HEALTH RESORTS AND THEIR USES: BEING Vacation Studies in various Health Resorts.
Crown
Bvo, 8s.
YOUNGE{C. D.)~
PARALLEL LIVES OF ANCIENT AND MODERN HEROES. New
Edition.
«2mo,
cloth, 4s. 6d.
SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM DESCRIPTIVE AND ILLUSTRATED CATALOGUES. Royal
Svo, half-hound,
BRONZES OF EUROPEAN ORIGIN. £\
DYCE'S
By C. D.
E.
Fortnum.
lOS.
COLLECTION OF PRINTED BOOKS AND
MANUSCRIPTS.
2 vols.
14s.
DYCE'S COLLECTION OF PAINTINGS, ENGRAVINGS, &c.
6s. 6d.
AND WOODWORK,
FURNITURE
MODERN. By
J.
H. Pollen.
ANCIENT
GLASS VESSELS. By A. Nesbitt. i8s. GOLD AND SILVER SMITH'S WORK. £1
AND
£-l is.
By
J.
G. Pollen.
6s.
IVORIES,
ANCIENT AND MEDIEVAL. By W.
Maskell.
21S.
IVORIES, FICTILE.
By
J.
O.
Westwood.
£y
4s.
MAIOLICA, HISPANO-MORESCO, PERSIAN, DAMASCUS AND RHODIAN WARES. Bv
C. D. E.
Fortnum.
£i.
MUSICAL INSTRUMENTS. By C. Engel. 12s. SCULPTURE, ITALIAN SCULPTURE OF THE MIDDLE AGES.
By
J. C.
Robinson.
Cloth,
7s. 6d.
SWISS COINS. By R. S. Poole. £2 los. TEXTILE FABRICS. By Rev. D. Rock. £\ iis, 6d. WATER-COLOUR PAINTING. By S. Redgrave. £1 UNIVERSAL CATALOGUE OF WORKS OF ART. 2 Small 4to,
^i
is.
each.
UNIVERSAL CATALOGUE OF WORKS OF ART. mentary
vol.
is.
vols.
Supple-
CHAPMAN
HALL, LIMITED.
&-
SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM SCIENCE AND ART HANDBOOKS. Published for the Committee of the Council on Education.
ART
IN RUSSIA.
New Volume
Forming a
sington Art Handbooks.
With numerous
FRENCH POTTERY.
Illustrations.
With
8vo.
New Volume
Forming a
Kensington Art Handbooks.
of the South Ken-
Crown
Crown
Illustrations.
INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF DENMARK.
[/« the Press.
of the South
8vo.
\In the Press.
From
the
Earliest
Danish Conquest of England. By J. J. A. Worsaab, Hon. F.S.A., M.R.I.A., &c. &c. With Map and Woodcuts. Large crown 8vo, 3s. 6d.
Times
to the
INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF SCANDINAVIA IN THE PAGAN TIME. By Hans Hildebrand, Royal crown 8vo,
By Professor Church.
Large crown Bvo,
trations.
Antiquary of Sweden. Woodcuts.
Large
2s. 6d.
PRECIOUS STONES.
With Map and
BiRDWOOD, C.S.I.
With
Illus-
2s. 6d.
INDUSTRIAL ARTS OF INDIA.
By
174 Illustrations.
George
Sir
Demy
C.
M.
8vo, 14s.
HANDBOOK TO THE DYCE AND FORSTER COLLECTIONS.
By W. Maskell.
INDUSTRIAL ARTS Illustrated.
With
By Juan
6d.
2s.
F.
Riano.
4s.
By Alexander Nesbitt.
GLASS.
Large crown 8vo,
Illustrations.
IN SPAIN.
Large crown Bvo,
Large crown
Illustrated.
Bvo, 2s. 6d.
GOLD AND SILVER SMITH'S WORK. FORD Pollen.
With numerous Woodcuts.
By John Hunger-
Large crown Svo,
2S.
6d.
TAPESTRY. By Alfred Champeaux. With Woodcuts, 2S. 6d. BRONZES. By C. Drury E. Fortnum, F.S.A. With numerous Large crown Bvo,
Woodcuts.
2S. 6d.
PLAIN WORDS ABOUT WATER. By Oxon.
Illustrated.
Large crown Svo, sewed,
ANIMAL PRODUCTS and Value. Svo, 7s.
FOOD A :
By
A. H.
Church, M.A.,
6d.
their Preparation, Commercial Uses, With numerous Illustrations. Large crown
:
T. L. Sijuionds.
fid.
Short Account of the Sources, Constituents, and Uses
Food intended chiefly as a Guide to the Food Collection in the Bethnal Green Museum. By A. H. Church, M.A., Oxon. Large crown Svo, 3s.
of
;
SCIENCE CONFERENCES. sington
Vol. Vol.
Museum.
Crown
2 vols.
Ken-
Delivered at the South Svo, 6s. each.
— Physics and Mechanics. II. — Chemistry, Biology, Physical I.
Geography, Geology, Mineralogy, and
Meteorology.
ECONOMIC ENTOMOLOGY. Aptera.
With numerous
Illustrations.
JAPANESE POTTERY. A.
W. Franks.
By Andrew Murray, Large crown Bvo,
Numerous
Illustrations
and Marks.
F.L.S.
7s. fid.
Being a Native Report.
Edited by
Large crown Bvo,
2s. fid.
HANDBOOK TO THE SPECIAL LOAN COLLECTION of Scientific Apparatus.
INDUSTRIAL Illustrations.
Large crown Bvo,
ARTS:
Historical
Large crown Bvo,
TEXTILE FABRICS.
35.
By
With numerous Woodcuts.
Sketches.
With
242
3s.
the Very Rev.
Large crown Bvo,
Daniel Rock, D.D.
2S. fid.
JONES COLLECTION IN THE SOUTH KENSINGTON museum.
With
Portrait
and
Illustrations.
Large crown Svo,
2s, fid.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
i8
SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM SCIENCE & ART
YiK^V>liQOYiS,— Continued.
COLLEGE AND CORPORATION PLATE. With numerous
Cripps.
By Wilfred
cloih, 2S. 6d.
AND MEDIAEVAL.
IVORIES: ANCIENT Maskell.
Large crown 8vo,
Illustrations.
With numerous Woodcuts.
Large crown 8vo,
By William 2s. 6d.
ANCIENT AND MODERN FURNITURE AND WOODWORK. crown 8vo,
By John Hungerfokd Pollen.
With numerous Woodcuts.
MAIOLICA. ByC. DruryE. Fortnum, Large crown 8vo,
Woodcuts.
By James Bell,
F.S.A. A¥ith numerous
2s. 6d.
THE CHEMISTRY OF FOODS. trations.
Large
2S. 6d.
With Microscopic
Principal of the Somerset
House
Illus-
Laboratorj'.
— Tea, Coffee, Cocoa, Sugar, &c. Large crown 8vo, 6d. — Milk, Butter, Cereals, Prepared Starches, &c. Large crown 8vo, 6d. MUSICAL INSTRUMENTS. ByCARLENGEL. With numerous Part Part
2s.
I.
2s.
II.
Large crown
Woodcuts.
MANUAL OF
fid.
compiled from the Writings and
Richard Redgrave, R.A.
Addresses of
Woodcuts.
Svo, 2s.
DESIGN, Large crown Svo,
PERSIAN ART.
Murdock Smith,
R.
Large crown 8vo,
Edition, with additional Illustrations.
FREE EVENING LECTURES. the Special
Loan
By Gilbert R. Redgrave.
With
2s. fid.
By Major
Second
R.E.
2s.
Delivered in connection with Large crown Svo,
Collection of Scientific Apparatus, 1876.
8s.
(THOMAS) WORKS.
CARLYLE'S
CHEAP AND UNIFORM EDITION. Ill
2J
Crown
vols.,
THE FRENCH REVOLUTION A
History.
:
I vol., fis.
3 vols., i8s.
LIVES OF SCHILLER AND JOHN STERLING, vol., CRITICAL AND MISCELLANEOUS ESSAYS. 4 vols., £1. 4s. i
SARTOR
LATTER-DAY PAMPHLETS.
2 vols., 12s.
OLIVER CROMWELL'S LETTERS AND SPEECHES, with Elucidations, &c.
Svo, cloth, £'j ^s.
fis.
AND
RESARTUS
LECTURES ON HEROES,
i vol.,
CHARTISM AND PAST AND PRESENT. vol., TRANSLATIONS FROM THE 1
fis.
GERMAN OF MUS^EUS, TIECK, AND RICHTER. vol., WILHELM MEISTER, by Gothe. i
A
Translation
fis.
2 vols., 12s.
HISTORY OF FRIEDRICH THE SECOND,
called Frederick the Great.
7 vols., £,2 gs.
fis.
LIBRARY EDITION COMPLETE. Handsoniely
in
printed,
SARTOR RESARTUS. Teufelsdrockh.
With a
34
The
Portrait, 7s.
vols.,
Life
demy and
8vo, cloth,
Opinions
of
£15;
Herr
fid.
THE FRENCH REVOLUTION. A History.
3 vols., each 9s,
CHAPMAN &- HALL, LIMLTED. CARLYLE'S (THOMAS)
y^Q-^Yi^—Contimied.
AND EXAMINATION
LIFE OF FREDERICK SCHILLER OF HIS WORKS.
With Supplement of
I
Portrait
S72.
and
CRITICAL AND MISCELLANEOUS ESSAYS.
Plates, gs.
With
Portrait.
6 vols., each gs.
ON HEROES, HERO WORSHIP, AND THE HEROIC IN HISTORY.
7s.
6d.
PAST AND PRESENT. 9s. OLIVER CROMWELL'S LETTERS AND SPEECHES. Pgrtraits.
5 vols.,
each
LATTER-DAY PAMPHLETS.
9s.
LIFE OF JOHN STERLING.
With
Portrait, 9s.
HISTORY OF FREDERICK THE SECOND. each
AVith
gs.
10
vols.,
gs.
TRANSLATIONS FROM THE GERMAN. 3 vols., each 9s. EARLY KINGS OF NORWAY; ESSAY ON THE PORTRAITS OF JOHN KNOX; AND GENERAL INDEX.
With
Portrait
8vo, cloth, gs.
Illustrations.
EARLY KINGS OF NORWAY PORTRAITS OF JOHN KNOX.
AN ESSAY ON THE
also Crown
8vo, with Portrait
Illustrations,
7s. 6d.
PEOPLE'S EDITION. In J7
vols.^
small Crown 8vo.
J/
vols,
Price 2s. each
in ig, cloth
gilt,
vol.,
bound in
£3
for
cloth ;
or in
sets
of
14s.
SARTOR RESARTUS. FRENCH REVOLUTION. 3 vols. LIFE OF JOHN STERLING.
LATTER-DAY PAMPHLETS. LIFE OF SCHILLER. FREDERICK THE GREAT.
OLIVER CROMWELL'S LETTERS AND SPEECHES. 5 vols.
WILHELM MEISTER. 3 vols. TRANSLATIONS FROM MU-
ON
AND
HEROES
10 vols.
HERO
S^US, TIECK,
WORSHIP.
NEOUS ESSAYS.
AND RICHTER.
2 vols.
PAST AND PRESENT. CRITICAL AND MISCELLA-
THE EARLY KINGS OF NORWAY
Essay on the Portraits of Knox and General Index.
7 vols.
;
;
SIXPENNY EDITION. £^0,
sewed.
SARTOR RESARTUS. Eightieth Thousand. HEROES AND HERO WORSHIP. ESSAYS
:
Burns,
Johnson,
Scott,
The
Necklace.
The above are
also to be
had in
i
vol., 2s. 6d,
Diamond
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
DICKENS'S (CHARLES) WORKS. ORIGINAL EDITIONS. In Demy
8vo.
THE MYSTERY OF EDWIN DROOD. by
S.
L. Fildes, and a Portrait engraved by Baker.
OUR MUTUAL FRIEND. THE PICKWICK by Seymour and
With Forty
PAPERS. Cloth, £,\
Phiz.
Cloth, i;i
Cruikshank.
With Forty
"
Cloth,
With Forty
BOZ."
£1
SON.
With
Forty
Illustrations
by Phiz.
With Forty
by Phiz.
Illustrations
IS.
With Forty
Illustrations
by Phiz.
Cloth,
by Phiz.
Cloth,
IS.
LITTLE DORRIT. £^
by Phiz.
Illustrations
IS.
BLEAK HOUSE. /l
by George
Illustrations
With Forty
DAVID COPPERFIELD. £^
by Phiz.
Illustrations
IS.
DOM BEY AND £x
Illustrations
is.
MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT. £1
With Forty-three
IS.
SKETCHES BY
Cloth,
by Marcus
Illustrations
is.
NICHOLAS NICKLEBY.
Cloth,
Illustrations
Cloth, ;ii is.
Stone.
Cloth,
With
Cloth, 7s. 6d.
With Forty
Illustrations
IS.
THE OLD CURIOSITY trations
SHOP.
With Seventy-five IllusA New Edition. Uniform with
by George Cattermole and H. K. Browne.
the other volumes,
£\
is.
BARNABY RUDGE
a Tale of the
:
CHRISTMAS BOOKS
:
;
;
volume.
Cloth,
£\
by George Cruikshank.
A TALE OF TWO by
Phiz.
Battle of Life
TALE OF TWO
;
The Haunted House.
CITIES.
In one
is.
OLIVER TWIST. trations
and
Uniform with
Containing— The Christmas Carol
The Cricket on the Hearth The Chimes The With all the original Illustrations. Cloth, 12s.
OLIVER TWIST
With
Riots of 'Eighty.
Seventy-eight Illustrations by George Cattermole and H. K. Browne. the other volumes, £1 is.
Separately.
With Twenty-four
Illustrations
Cloth, iis.
CITIES.
Separately.
With Sixteen
Illus-
Cloth, 9s.
•^* The remainder of Dickens's Works were not originally printed in DemySvo,
CHAPMAN &'
HALL, LIMITED.
DICKENS'S (CHARLES) ^0^V.?>- Continued.
LIBRARY EDITION. In Post
8vo.
With
the Original Illustrations,
jo
vols., cloth,
PICKWICK PAPERS 43 Ulus NICHOLAS NICKLEBY 39 MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT 40 OLD CURIOSITY SHOP & REPRINTED PIECES 36 BARNABY RUDGE and HARD TIMES 36 BLEAK HOUSE 40 LITTLE DORRIT 40 DOMBEY AND SON 38 DAVID COPPERFIELD 38 OUR MUTUAL FRIEND 40 SKETCHES BY "BOZ" 39 OLIVER TWIST 24 CHRISTMAS BOOKS 17 16 A TALE OF TWO CITIES GREAT EXPECTATIONS 8 PICTURES FROM ITALY & AMERICAN NOTES 8 8 UNCOMMERCIAL TRAVELLER 8 CHILD'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND
EDWIN DROOD
and MISCELLANIES CHRISTMAS STORIES from ' Household
THE LIFE OF CHARLES DICKENS. Uniform with
12
Words," &c. 14
ByJOHN Forster. With Illustrations.
this Edition,
i vol.
THE "CHARLES DICKENS" In Crown
Svo.
In 21
vols.
,
£12.
rns., 2 vols.
cloth,
los. 6d.
EDITION.
with Illustrations,
£j
ids.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
DICKENS'S (CHARLES) ^Q^Yi?,— Continued.
THE ILLUSTRATED LIBRARY EDITION. Co7nplete in
This Edition
employed toe page
No
in
is
is
Demy
jo Volumes.
Svo, los. each
printed on a finer paper
any previous
The
edition.
and
or
set,
£i^.
a larger type than has been
type has been cast especially for
of a size to admit of the introduction of
made
such attractive issue has been
in
;
all
it,
and
the original illustrations.
of the writings of Mr. Dickens, which,
various as have been the forms of publication adapted to the
demands of an ever
widely-increasing popularity, have never yet been worthily presented in a really
handsome hbrary form.
The
minor writings
collection comprises all the
it
was Mr. Dickens's wish
to
preserve,
SKETCHES BY " BOZ." With PICKWICK PAPERS. 2 vols.
40 Illustrations by George Cruikshank.
With 42
Illustrations
by Phiz.
OLIVER TWIST. With 24 Illustrations by Cruikshank. NICHOLAS NICKLEBY. 2 vols. With 40 Illustrations by Phiz. OLD CURIOSITY SHOP and REPRINTED PIECES. 2 vols. With trations
BARNABY
by Cattermole, &c. RUDGE and HARD TIMES.
2 vols.
With
Illus-
Illustrations
by
Cattermole, &c.
MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT. 2 vols. With 4 Illustrations by Phiz. AMERICAN NOTES and PICTURES FROM ITALY, i vol.
With
8
Illustrations.
DOMBEY AND
SON.
2 vols.
With 40
Illustrations
by Phiz,
DAVID COPPERFIELD. 2 vols. With 40 Illustrations by Phiz. BLEAK HOUSE. 2 vols. With 40 Illustrations by Phiz. LITTLE DORRIT. 2 vols. With 40 Illustrations by Phiz. A TALE OF TWO CITIES. With 16 Illustrations by Phiz. THE UNCOMMERCIAL TRAVELLER. With 8 Illustrations by Marcus Stone. GREAT EXPECTATIONS. With 8 Illustrations by Marcus Stone.
OUR MUTUAL FRIEND. CHRISTMAS BOOKS.
2 vols.
With
With 40
Illustrations
17 Illustrations by Sir
by Marcus Stone,
Edwin Landseer, R.A.,
Maclise, R.A., &c. &c.
HISTORY OF ENGLAND. With CHRISTMAS STORIES. (From Round.")
With 14
the Year
Illustrations.
EDWIN DROOD AND OTHER Fildes.
by Marcus Stone. "Household Words" and "All
8 Illustrations
STORIES.
With
12 Illustrations by S. L.
CHAPMAN &>
HALL, LLMITED.
23
DICKENS'S (CHARLES) WORK.?.— Continued.
HOUSEHOLD EDITION. Complete in 22 Volumes.
Crown ^0,
cloth,
^4
MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT, with 59 Illustrations, cloth, 53. DAVID COPPERFIELD, with 60 Illustrations and a Portrait,
BLEAK HOUSE,
with 61 Illustrations, cloth,
8j. 6d.
cloth, 5s.
5s.
LITTLE DORRIT, with 58 Illustrations, cloth, 5s. PICKWICK PAPERS, with 56 Illustrations, cloth,
53.
OUR MUTUAL
FRIEND, with 58 Illustrations, cloth, 53. NICHOLAS NICKLEBY, with 59 Illustrations, cloth, 5s.
DOMBEY AND SON, with 61 Illustrations, cloth, 5s. EDWIN DROOD REPRINTED PIECES and other Stories, ;
;
with 30 Illustra-
tions, cloth, 5s.
THE LIFE OF DICKENS.
By John Forster. With 40
Illustrations.
Cloth, 5s.
BARNABY RUDGE, with 46 Illustrations, doth, 43. OLD CURIOSITY SHOP, with 32 Illustrations, cloth, 43. CHRISTMAS STORIES, with 23 Illustrations, cloth, 4s. OLIVER TWIST, with 28 Illustrations, cloth, 3s. GREAT EXPECTATIONS, with 26 Illustrations, cloth, 33. SKETCHES BY " BOZ," with 36 Illustrations, cloth, 3s. UNCOMMERCIAL TRAVELLER, with 26 Illustrations, cloth, 3s. CHRISTMAS BOOKS, with 28 Illustrations, cloth, 3s. THE HISTORY OF ENGLAND, with 15 Illustrations, cloth, 3s. AMERICAN NOTES and PICTURES FROM ITALY, with 18
Illustrations,
cloth, 33.
A
TALE OF TWO
HARD
TIMES,
CITIES, with 25
Illustrations, cloth, 3s.
with 20 Illustrations, cloth,
2S. 6d.
MR. DICKENS'S READINGS. Fcap. Svo, sewed.
CHRISTMAS CAROL IN PROSE.
CRICKET ON THE HEARTH. CHIMES A GOBLIN STORY.
MRS. GAMP.
:
A CHRISTMAS CAROL,
STORY OF LITTLE DOMBEY. is. POOR TRAVELLER, BOOTS AT THE HOLLY-TREE INN, and IS.
with the Original Coloured Plates,
being a reprint of the Original Edition.
Small Svo, red cloth,
gilt
edges, 5s.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
24
WORKS— Cow/zwa^^.
DICKENS'S (CHARLES)
LIBRARY EDITION THE POPULAR OF THE WORKS OF CHARLES DICKENS, In 30
Vols. , large
crown
%vo, price
£6 ;
separate Vols. 4^. each.
An
Edition printed on good paper, containing Illustrations selected from Each Volume has about 450 pages the Household Edition, on Plate Paper
and 16 full-page
Illustrations.
SKETCHES BY "BOZ." PICKWICK. 2 vols. OLIVER TWIST. NICHOLAS NICKLEBY.
2
MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT. DOMBEY AND SON. 2 DAVID COPPERFIELD. CHRISTMAS BOOKS.
2 vols. 2 vols.
OUR MUTUAL FRIEND.
vols.
2 vols.
CHILD'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND.
EDWIN DROOD and MISCELLANIES PICTURES FROM ITALY AND
2 vols.
CHRISTMAS STORIES. BLEAK HOUSE. 2 vols. LITTLE DORRIT.
OLD CURIOSITY SHOP and REPRINTED PIECES. vols. BARNABY RUDGE. 2 vols. TRAVELUNCOMMERCIAL LER. GREAT EXPECTATIONS. TALE OF TWO CITIES.
AMERICAN NOTES.
2 vols.
The Cheapest attd Handiest Editio7i of
THE WORKS OF CHARLES DICKENS. Works. The Pocket-Volume In 30
Edition of Charles Dickens's
Vols,
small fcap.
New and Cheap
?>vo,
£2
5s.
Issue of
THE WORKS OF CHARLES DICKENS. In pocket volumes.
PICKWICK PAPERS, with 8 Illustrations, cloth, 2s. NICHOLAS NICKLEBY, with 8 Illustrations, cloth, 2S. OLIVER TWIST, with 8 Illustrations, cloth, is. SKETCHES BY " BOZ," with 8 Illustrations, cloth, is. OLD CURIOSITY SHOP, with 8 Illustrations, cloth, 2S. BARNABY RUDGE, with 16 Illustrations, cloth, 2s. AMERICAN NOTES AND PICTURES FROM ITALY, with 8 Illustrations, cloth,'is.6d. CHRISTMAS BOOKS, with 8 Illustrations, cloth, is. 6d.
SIXPENNY REPRINTS.
A CHRISTMAS CAROL
and
HAUNTED MAN.
By Charles Dickens.
THE
Illustrated.
(H.
READINGS FROM" THE WORKS CHARLES DICKENS. As
selected
and read by himself and now published
OF
for the first time. Illustrated.
(III.)
THE CHIMES: A Goblin Story, and THE CRICKET ON THE HEARTH.
CHAPMAN ^
List
HALL, LIMITED.
of Boohs, Drawing Examples, Diagrams, Models, Instruments,
etc.,
IN'CLUDING
THOSE ISSUED UNDER THE AUTHORITY OF THE SCIENCE AND ART DEPARTMENT, SOUTH KENSINGTON, FOR THE USE OF SCHOOLS AND ART AND SCIENCE CLASSES.
CATALOGUE OF MODERN WORKS ON SCIENCE AND TECHNOLOGY.
BENSON W. )— PRINCIPLES
8vo, sewed, is.
(
Small
OF THE SCIENCE OF COLOUR.
4to, cloth, 153.
MANUAL OF THE SCIENCE OF COLOUR. Frontispiece and Illustrations.
BRADLEY [THOMAS),
of the
i2mo, cloth,
Coloured
2s. 6d.
Royal Military Academy, Woolwich—
ELEMENTS OF GEOMETRICAL DRAWING. Parts, with 60 Plates. Oblong folio, half-bound, each part i6s. Selections (from the above) of 20 Plates, for the use of the Academy, Woolwich. Oblong folio, half-bound, i6s.
In
Two
Royal Military
BURCHETT—
LINEAR PERSPECTIVE. With Illustrations. PostSvo^ys. PRACTICAL GEOMETRY. Post 8vo, 5s. DEFINITIONS OF GEOMETRY. Third Edition. 24mo, sewed, sd.
CARROLL {JOHN)—
FREEHAND DRAWING LESSONS FOR THE BLACK BOARD. 6s. (W. H.)—
CUBLEY
A SYSTEM OF ELEMENTARY DRAWING. Illustrations
DA VISON
and Examples.
Imperial ^to, sewed,
With
8s.
(ELLIS A. )—
DRAWING FOR ELEMENTARY SCHOOLS.
Post
Syo, 3S.
MODEL DRAWING. i2mo, 3s. THE AMATEUR HOUSE CARPENTER A :
Building, Making, and Repairing.
by the Author.
Demy
8vo, los. 6d.
With numerous
Illustrations,
Guide
in
drawn on Wood
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
26
DELAMOTTE
H.)—
[P.
PROGRESSIVE DRAWING-BOOK FOR BEGINNERS. i2mo,
3s. 6d.
DYCE—
DRAWING-BOOK OF THE GOVERNMENT SCHOOL OF DESIGN ELEMENTARY OUTLINES OF ORNAMENT. :
Small
folio,
sewed,
55.
:
mounted,
50 Plates.
iSs.
INTRODUCTION TO DITTO.
Fcap. 8vo, 6d.
FOSTER [VERE)—
DRAWING-BOOKS: {a)
Forty-two Numbers, at id. each.
{V)
Forty-six Numbers, at
d. each.
DRAWING-CARDS Freehand Drawing
:
The
set h includes the subjects in a.
:
First Grade, Sets L, IL, IIL, price is. each.
Second Grade, Set L, price
HENSLOW [PROFESSOR]— ILLUSTRATIONS TO
EMPLOYED IN THE
BE
PRACTICAL LESSONS ON BOTANY. Museum.
JACOBSTHAL
2s.
Prepared
for
South Kensington
Post Svo, sewed, 6d.
[E.]—
GRAMMATIK DER ORNAMENTE, Plates each. Price, unmounted, £2, 13s. 6d. The Parts can be had separately.
;
in 7 Parts mounted on cardboard,
of 20 £-i\ 4s.
JEWITT—
HANDBOOK OF PRACTICAL PERSPECTIVE.
iSmo,
cloth, IS. 6d.
KENNEDY {JOHN)—
GRADE PRACTICAL GEOMETRY. FREEHAND DRAWING-BOOK. i6mo, is.
FIRST
i2mo, 6d.
LINDLEY [JOHN]-
SYMMETRY OF VEGETATION: Observed
in the Delineation of Plants.
Principles
i2mo, sewed,
to
be
is.
AIAR SHALL—
HUMAN
BODY.
Diagrams.
NEWTON
(E.
2 vols.,
£1
Text and Plates reduced from the large is.
TULLEY), F.G.S.—
THE TYPICAL PARTS IN THE SKELETONS OF A CAT, DUCK,
AND CODFISH,
scriptions arranged in a
being a Catalogue with Comparative DeTabular Form. Demy Svo, 3s.
OLIVER [PROFESSOR)—
ILLUSTRATIONS OF THE VEGETABLE KINGDOM. 109 Plates.
POYNTER
[E.
Oblong Svo,
J.),
cloth.
Plain, i6s.; coloured,
R.A., issued tinder the
£x
6s.
siipcrintcndcficc
of—
ELEMENTARY, FREEHAND, ORNAMENT: Book
I.
„
II.
Simple Geometrical Forms, 6d. Conventionalised Floral Forms, &c., 6d.
CHAPMAN 6POYNTER
HALL, LIMITED.
[E. J.), R. A. —Continued.
FREEHAND— FIRST GRADE: Book „
I.
II.
III.
,,
IV. V. VI.
,,
„ „
Simple Objects and Ornament, 6d. Various Objects, 6d. Objects and Architectural Ornaments, 6d. Architectural Ornament, 6d. Objects of Glass and Pottery, 6d.
Common
Objects, 6d.
FREEHAND— SECOND GRADE: Book
I.
,,
II.
,,
III.
,,
IV.
Various Forms of Anthermion, &c., Greek, Roman, and Venetian, is. Italian Renaissance, is. Roman, Italian, Japanese, &c. is.
is.
THE SOUTH KENSINGTON DRAWING CARDS, Containing the same examples as the books Elementary Freehand Cards. Four packets, gd. each. First Grade Freehand Cards. Six packets, is. each. Second Grade Freehand Cards. Four packets, is. 6d. each :
REDGRA VE—
MANUAL AND CATECHISM ON COLOUR. Edition.
Fifth
24mo, sewed, gd.
ROBSON {GEORGE)^
ELEMENTARY BUILDING CONSTRUCTION. folio,
sewed,
Oblong
8s.
WALLIS [GEORGE]—
DRAWING-BOOK. Oblorxg, sewed, 3s. 6d.; mounted, 8s. WORNUM (R. N. )— THE CHARACTERISTICS OF STYLES: An Introduction to the Study of the History of Ornamental Art.
Royal 8vo,
DRAWING FOR YOUNG CHILDREN. Copies.
i6mo, cloth,
8s.
Containing
150
3s. fid.
EDUCATIONAL DIVISION OF SOUTH KENSINGTON MUSEUM
:
CLASSIFIED CATALOGUE OF.
Ninth Edition.
ELEMENTARY DRAWING COPY-BOOKS,
8vo, 7s.
for the
Use
of
Children from four years old and upwards, in Schools and Families. Compiled by a Student certificated by the Science and Art Department as an Art Teacher.
Seven Books
Book I „ IL ,,
III.
in 4to,
sewed
:
Book IV.
Letters, 8d. Ditto, 8d.
V. VI. Geometrical and Ornamental Forms, 8d. VII. *** Or in Sets of Seven Books,
Objects, 8d.
Leaves, Birds, Animals, &c., 8d. Leaves, Flowers, and Sprays I
4s. fid.
ENGINEER AND MACHINIST DRAWING-BOOK, 71 Plates.
Folio,
£1
12s.
;
mounted,
i6 Parts,
£>, 4s.
PRINCIPLES OF DECORATIVE ART. Folio, sewed, is. DIAGRAM OF THE COLOURS OF THE SPECTRUM, with Explanatory Letterpress, on
roller, los. fid.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
28
COPIES FOR OUTLINE DRAWING: DYCE'S
ELEMENTARY OUTLINES OF ORNAMENT,
mounted back and
front, i8s.
;
unmounted, sewed,
12 Plates,
mounted back and
front, 8s.
fid.
;
50 Selected Plates,
55.
WEITBRICHT'S OUTLINES OF ORNAMENT,
by
reproduced
unmounted,
Herman,
2s.
MORGHEN'S OUTLINES OF THE HUMAN FIGURE, reproduced by Herman, 20 Plates, mounted back and front, 15s.
OUTLINES OF TARSIA,
from
;
unmounted,
Four
Gruner,
3s. 4d.
mounted,
Plates,
3s.
fid.,
un-
mounted, 7d.
ALBERTOLLI'S FOLIAGE,
Four
mounted,
Plates,
3s. fid.
;
unmounted,
OUTLINE OF TRAJAN FRIEZE, mounted, is. WALLIS'S DRAWING-BOOK, mounted, Ss., unmounted, 3s. fid. OUTLINE DRAWINGS OF FLOWERS, Eight Plates, mounted,
sd.
^(s.
fid.
unmounted, 8d.
COPIES FOR SHADED DRAWING: COURSE OF DESIGN. By Ch. Bargue and 9
£1
at 3s. each.
(French), 20 Selected Sheets, 11 at 2s,
9s.
ARCHITECTURAL STUDIES. By J. B. Tripon. 10 Plates, £1. MECHANICAL STUDIES. By J. B. Tripon. 15s. per dozen. FOLIATED SCROLL FROM THE VATICAN, unmounted, sd.; mounted, is. 3d. TWELVE HEADS after Holbein, selected from his Drawings in Her Majesty's Collection at Windsor.
LESSONS IN SEPIA,
gs.
Reproduced
in
per dozen, or
Autotype.
is.
Half imperial,
;^i ifis.
each.
COLOURED EXAMPLES: A SMALL DIAGRAM OF COLOUR, mounted, is. fid. unmounted, CAMELLIA, mounted, 3s. gd. COTMAN'S PENCIL LANDSCAPES (set of g), mounted, 15s. ;
SEPIA DRAWINGS
„
(set of 5),
mounted, ^i.
ALLONGE'S LANDSCAPES IN CHARCOAL (Six),
SOLID MODELS, *Box of Models,
&c.
gd.
at 4s. each, or the tet, £,i 4s.
:
£,1 4s.
A Stand with a universal joint, to show the solid ircdels, &c., £1 i8s. *One Wire Quadrangle, with a circle and cross within it, and one straight wire. One solid cube. One Skeleton Wire Cube. One Sphere. One Cone. One Cylinder. One Hexagonal Prism. £,1 2s. Skeleton Cube in wood, 3s. fid. 18-inch Skeleton Cube in wood, 12s. *Three objects ofform Indian Jar,
in
Bottle,
Pottery:
"|
Celadon Jar, Vi8s.
fid.
)
*Five selected Vases in Majolica Ware, £2 iis. *Three selected Vases in Earthenware, i8s. Imperial Deal Frames, glazed, without sunk rings, los. each. *Davidson's Smaller Solid Models, in Box, £2, containing2 Square Slabs. Octagon Prism. Cylinder. 9 Oblong Blocks (steps). 2 Cubes. Cone. Square Blocks. Jointed Cross. *
Models, &c., entered as
sets,
can only be supplied
Triangular Prism
Pyramid, Equilateral. Pyramid, Isosceie*. Square Block. in sets.
CHAPMAN ^ SOLID MODELS, * Davidson's of the across,
HALL, LIMITED.
29
&ic.— Continued.
—
Advanced Drawing Models, £(). The following is a brief description Models An ObeUsk— composed of 2 Octagonal Slabs, 26 and 20 inches and each 3 inches high i Cube, 12 inches edge i Monolith (forming the body of the obelisk) 3 feet high i Pyramid, 6 inches base the complete object is thus nearly 5 feet high. A Market Cross— composed of 3 Slabs, 24, 18, and 12 inches across, and each 3 inches high i Upright, 3 fert high 2 Cross Arms', united by mortise and tenon joints complete height, 3 feet 9 inches. A StepLadder, 23 inches high. A Kitchen Table, 14K inches high. A Chair to correspond. A Four-legged Stool, with projecting top and cross rails, -height 14 inches. A Tub, with handles and projecting hoops, and the divisions between the staves plainly marked. A strong Trestle, 18 inches high. A Hollow Cylinder, 9 inches in diameter, and 12 inches long, divided lengthwise. A Hollow Sphere, 9 inches in diameter, divided into semi-spheres, oneof which is again divided into quarters the semi-sphere, when placed on the cylinder, gives the form and principles of shading a dome, whilst one of the quarters placed on half the cylinder forms a :
—
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
;
niche.
*Davidson's Apparatus
Teaching Practical Geometry
for
(22 models), £$.
^Binn's Models for Illustrating the Elementary Principles of Orthographic Projection as applied to Mechanical Drawing, in bo.x, £1 los. Miller's Class Drawing Models.— These Models are particularly adapted for teaching large classes ; the stand is very strong, and the universal joint will hold the Models in any position. IVood Models Square Prism, 12 inches side, 18 inches high; Hexagonal Prism, 14 inches side, 18 inches high; Cube, 14 inches side: Cylinder, 13 inches diameter, i<5 inches iiigh He.xagon Pyramid, 14 inches diameter, 22^ inches side ; Square Pyramid, 14 inches side, 22"^ inches side ; Cone, 13 inches diameter, 22J4 inches side Skeleton Cube, 19 inches solid wood T% inch square ; Intersecting Circles, 19 inches solid wood 2"^ by 1% inches. Wire Models : Triangular Prism, 17 inches side, 22 inches high ; Square Prism, 14 inches side, 20 inches high : Hexagonal Prism, 16 inches diameter, 21 inches high ; Cylinder, 14 inches diameter, 21 inches high ; Hexagon Pyramid, 18 inches diameter, 24 inches high ; Square Pyramid, 17 inches side, 24 inches high ; Cone, 17 inches side, 24 inches high ; Skeleton Cube, 19 inches side; Intersecting Circles' Plain Circle, 19 inches side ; Plain Square, 19 inches side. "Table, 19 inches side Stand. The set complete, ;^I4 13s. 27 inches by 21 1^ inches. :
;
;
;
Vulcanite Set Square, ss. Large Compasses, with chalk-holder,
ss.
X
square, 5s. two set squares and *Parkes's Case of Instruments, containing 6-inch compasses with pen and pencil leg, 5s. *Prize Instrument Case, with 6-inch compasses pen and pencil leg, 2 small compasses, *Slip,
pen and
scale, i8s.
6-inch Compasses, with shifting pen
and
point, 4s. 6d.
LARGE DIAGRAMS. ASTRONOMICAL
:
TWELVE SHEETS.
Ph. Dr., F.R.S.A. Prepared for the ComSheets, £2. Ss. ; on rollers and varnished, £^ 4s,
By John Drew,
mittee of Council on Education.
BOTANICAL NINE SHEETS.
Illustrating
HensloW; F.L.S.
;^2;
on
a Practical Method of Teaching Botany. By Professor rollers and varnished, £1 3s. /Thalamifioral
Dicotyledon
..
.
.
)An„;.c„.rn,n„. Angiospermous J
••
(
Monocotyledons
Calycifloral J K CoroUifloral ^
/ V,
DIAGRAM.
.SECTION.
DIVISION.
CLASS.
Incomplete
.. ..
..
..
..
. .
.
Gymnospermous Petaloid
. .
. .
(
Superior
\ Inferior
..\
(Glumaceous *
Models,
S:c.,
entered as
sets,
can only le supplied in
2&3 S
6 7 8
9 sets.
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY
30
BUILDING CONSTRUCTION: TEN SHEETS. By William J. Glenny, Professor of Drawing, King's College. In sets, £\ IS. LAXTON'S EXAMPLES OF BUILDING CONSTRUCTION IN TWO DIVISIONS, containing 32 Imperial Plates, £t.. BUSBRIDGE'S DRAWINGS OF BUILDING CONSTRUCTION. 11 Sheets. 2S.
Mounted,
gd.
5s. 6d.
GEOLOGICAL DIAGRAM OF BRITISH STRATA. By A Sheet, 4s. on roller and varnished, 7s. 6d.
H.
W, Bristow,
F.R.S.,
F.G.S.
;
MECHANICAL
:
DIAGRAMS OF THE MECHANICAL POWERS, AND THEIR APPLICATIONS IN MACHINERY AND THE ARTS GENERALLY. By Dr. John Anderson. 8 Diagrams, highly coloured on stout paper, 3 feet 6 inches by 2 Sheets ^i per set ; mounted on rollers, £2. feet 6 inches.
DIAGRAMS OF THE STEAM-ENGINE.
By Professor Goodeve Stout paper, 40 inches by 27 inches,
and Professor Shelley. highly coloured.
of
Sets
Diagrams (52^^ Sheets), £,^
41
mounted on
rollers,
MACHINE DETAILS. £2. 2S.
;
^11
6s.
;
varnished and
lis.
By
Professor Unwin. 16 Coloured Diagrams. on rollers and varnished, £-i 14s.
mounted
SELECTED EXAMPLES OF MACHINES, OF IRON AND WOOD By Stanislas Pettit.
60 Sheets,
^3
5s.
;
13s.
per dozen.
BUSBRIDGE'S DRAWINGS OF MACHINE CONSTRUCTION. I2S. 6d.
Mounted,
PHYSIOLOGICAL
Sheets,
(French).
50 Sheets,
£t. 5s. :
Illustrating Human Physiology, Life Size and Coloured from Prepared under the direction of John Marshall, F.R.S., F.R.C.S., &c. On canvas and rollers, varnished, £x is.
ELEVEN SHEETS. Nature.
Each
THE THE THE THE THE THE THE THE THE THE THE
I.
2 3.
4. 5. 6. 7.
8. g.
10.
II
HUMAN
Sheet, 12s. 6d.
SKELETON AND LIGAMENTS. MUSCLES, JOINTS, AND ANIMAL MECHANICS. VISCERA IN POSITION.-THE STRUCTURE OF THE LUNGS. ORGANS OF CIRCULATION. LYMPHATICS OR ABSORBENTS. ORGANS OF DIGESTION. BRAIN AND NERVES.-THE ORGANS OF THE VOICE. ORGANS OF THE SENSES, ORGANS OF THE SENSES. MICROSCOPIC STRUCTURE OF THE TEXTURES AND ORGANS. MICROSCOPIC STRUCTURE OF THE TEXTURES AND ORGANS, BODY, LIFE
Sheet, 12s. 6d.
;
SIZE.
on canvas and
Bv John Marshall, rollers,
3.
THE SKELETON, Front View. THE MUSCLES, Front View. THE SKELETON, Back View.
4.
THE'MUSCLES,
1.
2.
varnished,
Back View
5.
6. 7.
£i
is.
F.R.S., F.R.C.S. Explanatory Key,
Each is.
THE SKELETON, Side Vi THE MUSCLES, Side View. THE FEMALE SKELETON, Front View.
ZOOLOGICAL: TEN SHEETS. £7.
;
Illustrating the Classification of Animals.
on canvas and
The same, reduced
rollers,
in size
By Robert Patterson.
varnished, £-i los. in 9 Sheets, uncoloured, 12s.
on Royal paper,
PHYSIOLOGY AND ANATOMY OF THE HONEY BEE. Two
Diagrams.
7s. 6d.
CHAPMAN
By
&-
HALL, LIMITED.
GEORGES PERROT and CHARLES
Translated by
Walter Armstrong,
B.A., Oxon.
2 vols, royal 8vo,
^z
3i
CHIPIEZ.
With 452
Illustrations.
2s.
" It is profusely illustrated, not merely with representations of the actual remains preserved in the British Museum, the Louvre, and elsewhere, but also with ingenious conjectural representations of the principal buildings from which those remains have been taken. To Englishmen familiar with the magnificent collection of Assyrian antiquities preserved in the British Museum the volume should be especially welcome. may further mention that an English translation by I\Ir. Walter Armstrong, with the numerous illustrations of the original, has just been published by Messrs. Chapman and Hall." Times.
We
"The only dissatisfaction that we can feel in turning over the two beautiful volumes in illustration of Chaldsean and Assyrian Art, by Perrot and Chipiez, is in the reflection, that in this, as in somany other publications of a similar scope and nature, it is a foreign name that we see on the title page, and a translation only which we can lay to our national credit. The predominance of really important works on Archaeology which have to be translated for the larger reading public of England, and the comparative scarcity of original English works of a similar calibre, is a reproach to us which we would fain see removed ... it is most frequently to French and German writers that we are indebted for the best light and the most interesting criticisms on the arts of antiquity. Mr. Armstrong s translation is very well done. Builder.
MM.
'
"Thework
a valuable addition to arch^ological literature, and the thanks of the whole civilised world are due to the authors who have so carefully compiled the history of the arts of two peoples, often forgotten, but who were in reality the founders of Western civilisation." Graphic. is
Jlnckut Sgg^jtian
|r)istorg of By
GEORGES PERROT and CHARLES
Jlrt.
CHIPIEZ.
Containing 616 Enfrom the French by W. Armstrong. gravings, drawn after the Original, or from Authentic Documents. vols, imperial 8vo, £2. 2s.
Translated
2
" The study of Egyptology is one which grows from day to day, and which has now reached such proportions as to demand arrangement and selection almost more than increased collecThe well-known volumes of MM. Perrot and Chipiez supply this requiretion of material. ment to an e.xtent which had never hitherto been attempted, and which, before the latest researches of Mariette and Maspero, would have been impossible. Without waiting for the illustrious authors to complete their great undertaking, INIr. W. Armstrong has very properly seized their first instalment, and has presented to the English public all that has yet appeared of a most useful and fascinating work. To translate such a book, however, is a task that needs the revision of aspecialist, and this Mr. Arrnstrong has felt, for he has not sent out his version to the world without the sanction of Dr. Birch and Mr. Reginald Stuart Poole. The Mr. Armstrong adds, in an appendix, a result is in every way satisfactory to his readers. description of that startling discovery which occurred just after the French original of these volumes left the press namely, the finding of 38 royal mummies, with their sepulchral furniture, It forms a brilliant ending to a work of great value in a subterranean chamber at Thebes. and beauty." Pall Mall Gazette. The Saturday Revleiv,_ speaking of the French edition, says : " To say that this magnificent work is the best history of Egyptian art that we possess, is to state one of the least of its titles to the admiration of all lovers of antiquity, Egyptian or other. No previous Not only are the best work can be compared with it for method or completeness engravings from the older authorities utilised, but numerous unpublished designs have been M. Chipiez has added greatly to the value of a work, in which the trained eye of inserted. the architect is everywhere visible, by his restorations of various buildings and modes of conand the engravings in colours of the wall paintings are a noticeable feature in a struction work which is in every way remarkable. This history of Egyptian art is an invaluable treasure-house for the student and, we may add, there are few more delightful volumes for the cultivated idle who live at ease to turn over— every page is full of artistic interest."
—
;
;
^
BOOKS PUBLISHED BY CHAPMAN
32
HALL, LIMITED.
THE FORTNIGHTLY REVIEW. Edited by T.
H.
S.
T HE FORTNIGHTLY REVIEW every month, and a
Volume
is
the Contributors
RUTHERFORD ALCOCK. SAMUEL BAKER.
DR. MAUDSLEY. PROFESSOR MAX MULLER. G. OSBORNE MORGAN, Q.C, M.P. PROFESSOR HENRY MORLEY. WILLIAM MORRIS. PROFESSOR H. N. MOSELEY.
PROFESSOR BEESLY. PAUL BERT.
BARON GEORGETON BUNSEN. DR. BRIDGES.
HON. GEORGE C. BRODRICK. JAMES BRYCE, M.P.
THOMAS BURT, M.P. SIR GEORGE CAMPBELL,
—
CLIFFE LESLIE SIR JOHN LUBBOCK, M.P. THE EARL LYTTON. SIR H. S. MAINE. T. E.
MATHEW ARNOLD. PROFESSOR BAIN. SIR
published on the ist of
is
completed every Six Months.
The following are among
SIR
ESCOTT.
F.
M.P.
F.
W. H. MYERS. W. NEWMAN.
THE EARL OF CARNARVON.
PROFESSOR JOHN NICHOL.
EMILIO CASTELAR. M.P. J. CHAMBERLAIN, PROFESSOR SIDNEY COLVIN. MONTAGUE COOKSON, Q.C. L. H. COURTNEY, M.P. G. H. DARWIN. SIR GEORGE W. DASENT. PROFESSOR A. V. DICEY. RIGHT HON. H. F.\WCETT, M.P.
W.
EDWARD
A.
G.
LYON PLAYFAIR, M.P. DANTE GABRIEL ROSSETTI. LORD SHERBROOKE. HERBERT SPENCER.
RT. HON.
HON.
FREEMAN.
J.
HUTCHISON STIRLING. SWINBURNE. VON SYBEL.
A. C.
FROUDE. MRS. GARRET-ANDERSON. F.R.S. J. W. L. GLAISHER,
DR.
F.
STANLEY.
LESLIE STEPHEN.
A.
M. E. GRANT DUFF, THOMAS HARE.
E. L.
SIR J. FITZJAMES STEPHEN, Q.C.
SIR B.\RTLE FRERE, Bart. J.
PALGRAVE. H. PATER.
WALTER
RT. HON.
J. A.
SYMQNDS.
REV. EDWARD F. TALBOT (Warden of Keble College). SIR RICHARD TEMPLE, Bart. W. T. THORNTON.
THE
M.P.
HARRISON.
HON. LIONEL
LORD HOUGHTON. PROFESSOR HUXLEY. PROFESSOR R. C. JEBB. PROFESSOR JEVONS.
A.
TOLLEMACHE.
H. D. TRAILL.
ANTHONY TROLLOPE. PROFESSOR TYNDALL. A. J.
ANDREW
LANG. EMILE DE LAVELEYE.
WILSON.
THE EDITOR. &c. &c. &c.
The Fortnightly Review
CHAPMAN & HALL,
LIMITED,
is
published ai
ii,
COVENT GARDEN, CHARLES DICKENS AND EVANS,]
2s.
61.
HENRIETTA STREET, W.C.
[CRYSTAL PALACE PRESS.